[Page] THE HISTORY OF THE CREATION, AS IT IS WRITTEN BY MOSES in the first and second CHAPTERS of GENESIS, plainly opened and expounded in severall Sermons preached in London.

Whereunto is added a short Treatise of GODS actuall Providence, in ruling, ordering, and governing the world and all things therein.

By G. W. Batchelour of Divinity and Pa­stour of St. Iohn Evangelist.

[figure]

LONDON, Printed for John Bartlet at the signe of the gilt Cup, neare St. Austins-gate in Pauls Church-yard, 1641.

TO THE RIGHT HONOVRABLE AND NOBLE Lords FRANCIS Earle of BEDFORD, Robert Earle of Warwick, William Viscount Say and Seale, Edward Viscount Mandevilc, Robert Lord Brooke, John Lord Roberts, and the rest of the Honourable Lords Committees in the upper nou [...]e of the high Court of Parlia­ment, Grace and Peace with multiplicity of all Bles­sings temporall and eternall.

Most Noble LORDS,

THat which the learned Doctours of the Jews doe [...] say of their Masorah, to wit, That it is an hedge or defence to the Law. We Christians may more truly say of our weekly Sabbath, the Lords day, that it is the hedge of defence to true Christian Re­ligion. Masoreth sepes legi. For as their Masorah (which was their Annotations upon all the Scriptures of the old Testament, shewing the genuine reading and signification of every word in the Hebrew text, with what pricks, vow­els and accents it ought to be, and was anciently written and read by Moses and the Prophets, and by tradition from Ezra, and other succee­ding Fathers in all ages delivered over unto them) did serve as an hedge and fence to keep the Scriptures of the old Testament pure from all corruption and alteration, so that if any Scribe did in writing any co­py of them, omit or adde one word or letter; or alter and change any vowell, point or accent, his errour might easily by the notes and rules of their Masorah be discerned and amended: So the Lords holy week­ly [Page] Sabbath being rightly observed according to the Law of God, and the first institution and sanctification of it, that is, First, by cessation and rest from all worldly cares, and all secular affairs (in respect wher­of it is called in Scripture, [...] Sabbath, that is, rest and cessation.) Se­condly, by devoting it only to the worship and service of God, and by sanctifying it with preaching, reading and hearing of the word, prayer, meditation, and other works of piety and exercises of true Religion (in which respect it is called the Lords day, that is, the day of the Lord Christ, consecrated to his honor, and to the service and wor [...]hip of God in his name) It is most certainly (as we find by experience) a strong hedge and fence to true Christian Religion, by which true piety, and the true knowledge and worship of God, and true Faith in Christ, are upheld, maintained, increased and continued among all Christian nati­ons from generation to generation. Without observation of this week­ly Sabbath, and keeping this day of the Lord Christ holy, by holy assem­blies, the publik and private worship of God, the knowledge of Christ, the memory of our Redemption by him, and of his finishing and perfe­cting that great work, and resting from it in his resurrection, the pub­like preaching, reading and hearing of the word, and all other exercises of Christian religion, which are the most effectuall ordinary meanes of grace and furtherances to eternall life and blessednesse would undoub­tedly grow out of use, and at length utterly decay and vanish. This con­sideration did move me to insist more largely upon this subject, and to make many Sermons upon that Text, Gen. 2. 2, 3. which briefly relates the first institution of the Sabbath on the seventh day in the first weeke of the world; and Gods blessing and sanctifying of every seventh day in every week to be an holy Sabbath to his people. Out of which Sermons first publikly preached to mine owne peculiar flocke, I did afterwards compose this Treatise at the importunity of some of my best affected hearers, and imparted severall written copies of it unto divers of them, having at that time no hope to get it licensed for the Presse. For by Gods speciall providence I having handled the doctrine of the Creati­on, out of the 1. Chap. of Genesis, was by my order of preaching and ex­pounding of that Scripture, led along and brought to this Text, concer­ning Gods sanctifying of the seventh day, at that very time when a book of liberty for sports on the Lords day, was by the Bishops in every Diocesse sent to every Parish Church, and commanded to be publickly read by every Minister in time of divine Service in the audience of all [Page] the people: And because I proceeded to handle this subject, as the order of my text did lead me; and durst not balk that part of Gods word; I was three severall times convented before my Ordinary, and ad­monished under paine of suspension, to proceed no further in this do­ctrine, not for any errour which could be objected against any part or passage in it; but only because the times would not beare it; And because I did not hold it fit nor safe for me to obey man rather then God by concealing from my flock any part of Gods truth, and shunning to de­clare unto them the whole counsell of God; I have undergone the high displeasure of that Primate to whose jurisdiction my Church doth be­long, who upon divers false informations of catchers, which have bin imployed to entrap me in my words that they might have something wherof to accuse me, hath caused me to be convented before the Kings Majesty, and the Lords of his Honourable Privy Counsell, and hath charged and accused me to be a Preacher of factious and seditious Do­ctrine, and for many years the great troubler of the City of London: Wherupon I was committed close prisoner for two and twenty weeks, and through close custody was by sicknesse brought neare unto death, and could not obtain so much liberty as to be confined to the li­mits of my brothers house for the safety of my life, upon bayle of a 1000 pound given, untill by the testimony of fifty five Neighbour Ministers of best report in and about the City, I was declared to be innocent and free from all the crimes of which I was accused. Now blessed be God for your happy Assembly in this most hopefull Parliament, by which I have been eased of my strait bonds, and the times are so changed, that this Treatise, and divers others of my labours are licensed to passe by the Presse into the publik view of the world. I should not have da­red to commend it to the sight, and grave Judgement of your Ho­nours; If your godly Zeale for the sanctifying of the Lords day, and for the honouring of the name of the Sabbath (which appeared most evidently to us all, who of late were present at the time when that scandalous libell, intituled, Sunday no Sabbath, was most accurately and judiciously sifted and examined by your Honours, and justly cen­sured and condemned to the fire) had not encouraged me to this bold attempt.

Although I have in this Treatise propounded and assayed to proove out of the Text and other places of holy Scripture such a ground of the weekly Sabbath, as the learned in their writings have not heretofore [Page] observed: Yet because the end, use and scope of this discovery is most pious and godly, and it tends altogether to heape more honour on Christ, to advance Redemption above Creation; grace above nature, the state of Regeneration above the state of Innocency; and to shew a necessity of the change of the Sabbath from the seventh and last, to the first day of the week, after Christs performing and finishing of that great work of our Redemption in his resurrection; for which he was promised on the seventh day next after the ending of the Creation: I hope it will give no offence, nor receive censure of novelty; but rather find grace and acceptation in the eyes of your noble persons. That great God (who hath (as I beleeve and here professe) magnified his holy weekly Sabbath by grounding it in the first institution on Christ pro­mised; and hath made it more honourable by removing and carrying it along together with Christ the Redeemer from the day of the pro­mise to the day of the full performance of the great work of Redemp­tion) magnifie your Honours, and make your persons still more and more honourable, by noble Acts undertaken and performed for the ho­nour of his holy name, the advancement of true Religion; and the peace and prosperity of this Church and Kingdome under our most gracious Soveraigne Lord and King. To whom next under God and the Lord Jesus Christ, I most humbly devote my self, and vow to re­main ever a most loyall subject; and next under him to your Honours

A most dutifull servant and daily suppliant to God for your everlasting blessednesse, GEO. WALKER.

OF The externall VVorks of GOD in generall,

PSALM. 135. 6.‘Whatsoever the Lord pleased that did he in Heaven and in Earth, in the sea and all deepe places.’

THE externall outward workes of God which follow in the next pla [...] after his internall workes, are indeed nothing but his actuall execution of his eternall counsell, purpose and decree. For the unfolding of which workes in generall, and laying open of the nature, use and severall kindes of them, I have made choise of this Text. From the wordes and circumstances whereof, we may easily gather all points of instruction neces­sary to be knowne concerning the generall nature, use and kindes of them.

[Page 2] First, here the words of the Psalmist shew that he speakes of Gods outward workes, because he limits them to places and times, to Heaven, Earth, Sea and all deep places.

Secondly, he speakes of them all in generall none excepted, so the Hebrew word ( [...]) which signifies all in generall what­soever, doth plainly shew, and also the perfect enumeration of all places which are in the world, and wherin any outward sensible and visible work can be done, to wit: the Heaven, the Earth, the Seas and all deepe places.

Thirdly, he sheweth that God is the author of these works, as he is Jehovah, that one eternall God in whom there are three persons, Father, Son and Holy Ghost, for he saith [...] Jeho­vah the Lord doth or hath done.

Fourthly, he sheweth that the Lord doth all these workes of himselfe according to his owne will and pleasure, and none of them all by compulsion, unwittingly and unwil­lingly, but even as hee pleased, and after the counsell of his will and pleasure [...] whatsoever the Lord plea­sed.

Fifthly, he intimates that all these workes of God come necessarily, infallibly, inevitably and irresistably to passe, and that none of them all can faile which God hath beene pleased to doe, but so come to passe as he pleaseth in every respect, even in the same time and place. This hee intimates in that he saith every thing whatsoever the Lord pleased, he hath done.

Sixtly, he sheweth that these outward workes tend to make God knowne, and are of use to bring us to the knowledge of the true God, and in and by them God is knowne aright and his greatnesse also. This is manifest by the dependance of this ver. on the former. For having said, I know that the Lord is great and that our Lord is above all gods, he brings in this text as an argument and proofe saying, Whatsoever the Lord pleased that he hath done, which is in effect all one as if he had said, I know this by his doing of all his outward works, for whatsoever the Lord pleased that he hath done.

Seventhly and lastly, he shewes the severall kinds of Gods out­ward workes that they are not only creation but also actuall [Page 3] providence which concludes in it the government of the world, the fall of man, and the restauration of man-kind by the redemp­tion of the world.

Workes of creation he expresseth, vers. 7. and workes of his actuall providence, as ordering, governing and saving of his people by Christ, which was signified in the deliverance from Egypt, he reckons up in the rest of the Psalme both before and after my text, So then it is manifest that this text considered with the circumstances thereof, serves abundantly for the ope­ning of the nature, use and kind of Gods outward works.

In the unfolding whereof, [...]irst let us note the order, co­herence and scope of it. Secondly, let us take a view of the wordes and sift out the true sence of them. Thirdly let us ob­serve out of them by way of doctrine, a perfect description of Gods outward workes in generall, and lastly apply for some use the doctrine to our selves.

The order and coherence is this, First the Prophet in the 3. first verses, exhorts all to praise the Lord and to laud his name, more specially the Lords servants who are continuall professors in his Church. Secondly in the 3, 4, 5. verses he gives some reasons drawne from the Attributes of God and the consideration of his nature, to wit, because the Lord is good and his name pleasant, and because of his owne free grace he hath chosen Israel, that is, his elect and faithfull Church to be his owne peculiar people, and because the Lord is great and is a God above all gods. In testifying and affirming the Lords goodnesse and being above all gods, he brings for proofe his owne knowledge and experience. I know (saith he) that the Lord is great, vers. 5. Thirdly he doth proove God to be such a one, even so good, gracious and great by his outward workes, and sheweth that by them he knowes God to be so, [...]or he saith here in this text, Whatsoever the Lord pleased that he hath done, in Heaven and in earth, in the Sea and all deepe places. So that it is plaine by the order, dependence and scope of the text, That here David extolls Gods outward workes in generall, as things proceeding from his owne good pleasure, and serving to proove him to be good and gracious, and to make us know him so great and glorious a God as he is.

[Page 4] In the second place, for the wordes themselves, they are plaine and easie to be understood at the first hearing without any laborious interpretation. They run thus in the Hebrew, All which the Lord pleaseth he hath done, in Heaven, Earth, Sea and all deepe places. This word (all) shewes that he speakes not of some particular workes, but of all in that kind. The word Jehovah is the proper name of God considered in the unity of his essence with all his essentiall Attributes, and every one of the 3. Persons is called by this name, as they are of the same essence and all one God. The enumeration of all the notable places in the world wherein these workes are done discovers the workes which he here speakes off, to be out­ward workes which doe not abide in Gods essence and there onely subsist as his eternall counsell, decrees and inward operations do, but are done in time and place and have their subsistance in and among the creatures, such as are creating, ruling, ordering, upholding of all things, and also redeeming and restoring of all man-kinde. The word [pleaseth] limits the generall note or particle (all) unto all workes which in themselves are good, or else serve for good use, and so are pleasing to the Lord for the use sake. Hee doth not say that the Lord doth all things which are done, but all things which he pleaseth, that is, he doth not make men sinnefull and wicked, neither doth he worke rebellion in men, which is displeasing unto him, but he doth whatsoever is pleasing, that is, all things which are agreeable to his nature. And what­soever is according to his will and good pleasure, that he doth, none can hinder it. This is the true sense and meaning of the wordes. Now from the text thus opened and the circumstances observed, wee may gather a perfect de­scription of them in generall shewing the nature and use of them.

The description of Gods outward Workes.

The outward workes of God in generall, are all things what­soever the Lord God Jehovah, that one infinite and eternall God, 3. Persons, Father, Son and Holy Ghost doth according to his eternall purpose, and after the counsell and good pleasure [Page 5] of his will, work, and bring to passe, not within, but with­out himselfe in all the world and upon all creatures there­in, and that certainely and irresistably in due time and place to the communicating and making of himself known to men and Angels in his infinite and eternall nature and in his goodnesse, grace, glory, power and all other essen­tiall properties, for the salvation and eternall blessednes of his e­lect in Christ.

This description truely gathered from this Text, and the scope and order of it and discovering plainely the na­ture and use of Gods outward workes in generall, I will proove in every part and branch orderly and will conclude with some application.

The first thing in it is the generall matter of Gods ex­ternall workes, they are things done; that is, not onely act­ions working and operations, such as Creation, Redempti­on and the like; but also things or works made, eff [...]cted and done by those actions, as Heaven, Earth, Angels and other things created. For all these are things done and wrought by God. This Branch is plainly expressed in this word of my Text, [...] (hath done) or doth or hath made, for the Hebrew word signifies all these. And that Gods outward worl [...]s consist in doing and are things not spoken or promised but done and wrought, Divers testimonies of Scripture doe shew, Psal. 44. 1. David cals them workes which he hath done: And Isa. 28. 21. The Prophet saith, that the Lord doth his worke, his strange worke. And not to stand in repeating many Scriptures in a point so plaine; This is one word is sufficient that the two Hebrew words, [...] & [...] which are used in the Scriptures to sig­nifie Gods outward works are both derived of verbs which sig­nifie doing.

The second branch in this description comprehends in it the Author of these works, to wit, the Lord God Jehovah, that one infinite, eternall God and three Persons, Father, Sonne and Holy Ghost: This Branch doth distinguish these workes. First, from the workes of creatures which are proper to them. Secondly, from the personall operati­ons [Page 6] of God as the eternall begetting of the Sonne which is proper to the Father and is his worke onely. That God considered in the unity of his essence as he comprehends all the three Persons, is the Authour of these workes, and that they are common to the Father, Son and Holy Ghost, and every one of them hath an hand in every work of this kind; though one more immediately than another: The word Jehovah here used in the Text doth plainly shew, where it is said, Whatsoever Jehovah pleased or was willing to do, that he hath done: which word is so proper to God, and signifies One God, that it also agrees to every person in that one God. And this is also confirmed by divers other testi­monies of Gods word, which shew that in divers of these outward actions or workes, the Father workes by the Sonne and the Sonne by the Father with and by the Spirit. The first great work of this kind, even the work of Crea­tion, which sometimes is attributed to the Father as more peculiar to him, because terminatur in Patr [...], as the Schoole­men speak, that is, it is bounded and termined in the Fa­ther, and he is principium & summus terminus creationis, the first beginning and utmost bound of creation, from whom it first proceeded, even this is attributed to the Sonne and Spirit also, as being common to all the Persons, as Psal. 33. 6. By the word of the Lord (that is the Sonne) were the Heavens made and all the host of them by the Spirit of his mouth. 'To which adde, Job 33. 4. The Spirit of God made me, & John 1. 3, 10. & Colos. 1. 16. where it is said, that by the eternall word the Sonne all things were made both in Heaven and Earth, visible and invisible, and without him was made nothing of all that was made. So likewise in that out­ward worke of Judgement executed on Sodome and Gomor­rah, Gen. 19. 24. Jehovah is said to raine downe from Jeho­vah out of Heaven fire and brimstone, that is Jehovah the Son from Jehovah the Father, who are both one and the same God Jehovah; yea that these externall workes of God are not divided some to one Person and some to another in the Trinity, but are common to all the Persons and proceed from that one common essence, according to that saying of [Page 7] the School-men, opera Trinitatis ad extra suns indivisa. Our Saviour sheweth most plainly, Ioh. 5. 19, 22. where he saith, that as the Sonne cannot worke of himselfe alone without the Father, but he must have and see the Father working with him, so the Father doth not judge any, that is by his owne proper act of judgement, but hath committed all judgement to the Sonne, that he may have a hand in all judgements toge­ther with himselfe, and Iohn 16. 13, 14. speaking of that spe­ciall illumination of mens hearts and inward teaching which seemes most proper to the Spirit, he saith it is not of him­selfe alone, but it is what he hath heard and received from the Father and the Sonne, And therefore the second Branch is manifest that the doer of the outward workes of God is Jehovah our God, and all the three Persons in God.

The third Branch comprehends in it the outward moving cause of all these outward workes: namely, Gods owne will and pleasure, for he is said to do them according to his eternall purpose, and after the counsell of his owne will. This is expressed in the description and in the words of the Text [...] Whatsoever the Lord pleased, that is, whatsoever is according to the Lords will and pleasure that he hath done, and this is testified in other Scriptures, as Psal. 115. 3. where it is said, that the Lord doth whatsoever pleaseth him, and Isa. 46. 10. where the Lo [...] saith I will do all my pleasure, and Ionah 1. 14. All which places shew that first the Lord hath a mind and pleasure to doe such things, and therupon he doth them. Also, Ephes. 1. 11. It is said he doth worke all things after the counsell of his will. And Acts 2. 23. & 4. 28. the worke of our Redemp­tion by Christ, and all that he did and suffered is said to be done by the determinate counsell of God. Therfore this Branch is manifest, namely, That Gods will and pleasure is the only in­ward mooving cause of all his outward works, and that they are nothing but the execution of his eternall will and de­cree.

The fourth Branch by which these outward works are spe­cially distinguished from his inward operation, comprehends [Page 8] in it the subject wherein these workes do subsist and the circumstance of time and place wherein they are done. For these workes are not done within God himselfe, nei­ther doe they subsist in his Essence, as his inward operati­ons do, but they are, Extra Dei essentiam, without Gods es­sence, they are done in all the world, and upon the crea­tures, some in Heaven and some in Earth, others in the Sea and all deepe places (as my Text saith) and they have their circumstances of time and place, as God hath appoin­ted from all eternity. The Creation was in the first be­ginning of time in the first six dayes of the world, Gen. 1. The Redemption wrought by Christ in the midst of yeares betweene the Law and the Gospell, Hab. 3. 2. and upon the mountaine where Hierusalem stood, Isa. 25. 6, 7. The great execution shall be at the end of the world in the last day of Judgement, and the works of Gods governement and a­ctuall providence as they are divers, so they are done at di­vers times, and in divers places of the world, as experi­ence teacheth, on the very day which the Lord appointed did the flood come upon the old world, Gen. 7. 11. In the same day which God had fore-told was Israel delivered out of Aegypt, Exod. 21. 41. And howsoever the words of the Apostle, Act. 17. 18. intimate that in God (and not with­out him) We live, moove and have our being, yet we are not thus to understand that these things are, and that we subsist in Gods Essence, and that we are so in God as his inward operations and eternall decrees are: But that we all are compassed about with Gods presence and essentiall pow­er, which are every where, and by him as by the chiefe ef­ficient cause and authour of life, motion and being are su­stained and upheld in life, being and motion continually. For to be in God, that is, to subsist in his essence, doth necessarily imply coeternity and consubstantiality with God. Quicquid est in Deo Deus est, nothing can be within his Essence, but it must be coeternall with God and of the same Substance with him. Hee who denies this must needes deny God to be immutable and most simple, free from all composition. Therfore this Branch also is most [Page 9] manifest and doth containe in it nothing but solid Truth.

The fifth Branch containes in it the manner of Gods outward works, to wit; that in respect of God himselfe, they are done with such power as cannot be resisted, and in respect of the event, they are certaine, infallible and cannot faile. This is truely collected from the Text: For it is said that all Whatsoever the Lord pleaseth hee doth, or hath done, which shewes that not one jot of his will and pleasure failes but comes to passe. If his will or pleasure could be resisted or any thing prevented which he willeth to worke, surely the Divell who is so cunning, watchfull and malitious would in some things have defeated God, or this either by himselfe or some of his instruments: But this Text affirmes the contrary, that whatsoever the Lord pleased he hath done in all the world. Therfore in respect of God they are all unresistable, and in respect of the event infallible. And this David testifieth, Psal. 115. 3. saying, The Lord doth whatsoever pleaseth him. And Isa. 46. 10. my counsell shall stand, and I will performe all my pleasure, yea because these are voluntary workes of God and are willed and decreed in his secret counsell from all eternity (as I have noted before) therefore they must needs be unresistable, for Who can resist his will, Rom. 9. 19.

The sixth Branch containes the principall use and effects of Gods outward workes; namely, the making of himselfe knowne in his nature and essentiall attributes and so com­municating himselfe to his elect. That Gods externall workes doe all serve for this use and doe worke this effect we may gather from the dependance and inference of this Text. For the Psalmist having professed that he knows the Lord to be great and that he is the onely true God above all gods, that is, who hath all the essentiall properties of the true God, he proves it by and from his workes, and sheweth that by meanes of them he knoweth it. And o­ther Scriptures and experience confirme the same, Psal. 19. 1. It is said, that the heavens declare the glory of God, and the firmament sheweth his handy worke, day unto day uttereth [Page 10] speech, and night unto night sheweth knowledge, and Rom. 1. 20. The visible things of God are seene from the creation of the world, clearly being understood by the things which were made: Even his divine Power and God-head. So the works of Gods actual providence in governing and upholding the world, and in mooving the Heavens and the starres in order, doe shew his infinite wisdome and supercelestia'l glory, Psal. 8. 1. His overthrowing of his enemies and the persecutors of his Church, as in the stood of Noah, and in the drowning of Pharaoh and his host do shew his power. His giving of Christ his Son for a Redeemer aboundantly testifieth his infinite goodnesse and bounty; his punishing our sins in Christ to the full, shews his infinite Justice, and his pardoning of beleevers by Christs satisfaction, freely given and communicated to them, shewes his infinite mercy and free grace, as the Scriptures often testifie, and our own consciences within us do wit­nesse and our daily sense and experience do proove. And in our Redemption and application of it we see discovered the Trinity of Persons in one God. And while wee in these things, as in a glasse behold the glory of God with open face (the vaile of ignorance being remooved) we are changed into the same Image from glory to glory, and so come to have communion with God, and the fruition of him, 2 Cor. 3. 18.

The seventh and last Branch sets before us the utmost end of all Gods outward works, to wit the eternall blessednesse of the elect, by the communion, vision and fruition of God in all his glorious attributes, as wisedome, power, goodnesse, mercy, justice, and the rest. The Text it selfe intimates this Truth to us; saying, that all these workes of God proceed from his good will and pleasure. For the good pleasure and will of God consists chiefly and princi­pally in willing that his elect shall be brought to perfect communion of himselfe and of his glory for their eternall happinesse. And what God willeth according to his owne good pleasure, and doth because he is pleased so to do, it must needs aime at the blessednesse of his elect by the sight and frui­tion of him and his glory. Now therfore all Gods outward [Page 11] workes proceeding fiem Gods pleasure must needs tend to this end, and this is confirmed, Rom. 8. 28. & 1 Cor. 3. 21, 22, 23. where we read that all things worke together for good to them that love God and are the called according to his purpose, and that all things are the elects, the world, life and death, things present, and things to come, and they are Christs and Christ is Gods, also Col. 1. 16. all things visible and invisible were created as by Christ so for him, that they might serve him for the salvation of his elect, and for this end and purpose Angells, principalities and powers are said to be made sub­ject to Christ, 1 Pet. 3. 22. And their office and ministery and the great wonders which God doth by them are said to be for them, who shall be heires of salvation, Heb. 1. 14. To these testimonies many reasons might be added, I will onely call to mind that which I have else where abundantly declared and prooved, to wit, that for this end the world is upheld by Christ, and for his sake and through his mediation ever since mans fall, and for this end the wicked live, even the barbarous and savage nations, either that they may serve for some use to Gods people, or for the elects sake whom God will raise up out of them, or that God may shew his justice and power on them being sitted for destruction, to the greater glory of his elect, even the judgements of God on the wicked, and their damnation serve for this end, to increase the blessednesse of the Saints.

The doctrine of this description serves for to stirre us up in Use 1. imitation of God our Creator, not to content our selves with saying, purposing and promising, or with making a shew of doing good workes, but to be reall, true, constant and faith­full in performance of them. I or so doth God, whatsoever he promiseth or purposeth or is pleased to doc, that he doth in Heaven and Earth. Sluggards who delight in idlenesse doing nothing, and Hypocrites who say and promise and make great shew of doing, but are barren of the fruites of good workes, as they are most unlike to God and contrary to him, so they are hatefull and abhominable in the sight of God, and they onely are accepted of God who are active Christians, alwayes doing good and abounding in the worke of the Lord, their [Page 12] labour shall not be in vaine, but every one shall receive re­ward according to his workes which are evidences of his communion with Christ, and of his faith, justification and sanctification; wherefore seeing God is alwayes reaching forth his mighty hand to worke in Heaven, in Earth, in the Sea and all deep places for our profit: let us be alwayes doing and study­ing to do good for his glory.

Secondly it serves to move and direct us in and through the outward workes of God to see and behold the infinite, eter­nall Use 2. and omnipotent God, and his divine power and God­head, and in the unity of Gods essence, the sacred Trinity of persons, because all the persons have a hand in every worke, and that one God who is three persons is the author and wor­ker of every divine outward worke, as this doctrine teacheth. It is a common custome among men when they see and be­hold the handy worke of any person, to remember the per­son, to bee put in minde of him by the worke, especially if he have knowne the person before, and beare the love and affection to him of a friend and a beloved one. So let it be with us, so often as we see and behold the visible out­ward workes of God, let us in them behold the face of God, and remember his glorious attributes. Let us in the great workes of Creation behold the wisedome and power of God the Creator, in the worke of Redemption the mercy, bounty and love of God, in our Sanctification, the love and the ho­linesse of God, and in them all let us behold the three glo­rious Persons in that one God who worketh all things after the counsell of his owne will. The Father by his eternall Word and Spirit creating all things. The Sonne sent forth by the Father in our nature, and sanctified by the Spirit, re­deeming us and paying our ransome. The Holy Ghost shed on us by God the Father through the Sonne Christ in our regeneration. And all three conspiring together to purge, sanctifie and justifie us, and to make us eternally blessed in our communion with them, and in our fruition of God in grace and glory. And let us take heed and beware of idle and vaine speculation of Gods great workes which shew his glory and proclaime his glorious Attributes, Wisdome, [Page 13] Power and Goodnesse, lest by such idle negligence wee become guilty of taking the name of the Lord our God in vaine.

Thirdly from this description we may easily gather and con­clude, Use 3. that sinnefull actions as they are evill and sinnefull are not Gods workes; for God is pleased with those things which he doth, and his workes are according to his pleasure, but God is not pleased with sinnefull actions and evill workes, he hath no pleasure in iniquity, Psal. 5. 4. If any aske, How then can it be done if he will not and be not pleased? I answer, That in them there is to be considered, 1. A naturall motion or action proceeding from some created power, and so from God the Creator, and this is good and of God and according to his will as it willeth things properly. 2. There is a cor­ruption, perversenesse and crookednesse of the action, this is of the Divell and mans corruption: this God hateth; but be­cause actions thus corrupted and stayned make way for God and give him occasion to shew his wisedome and power in ouer-ruling them and disposing them by his hand to a good end and his justice in punishing them; therefore God is plea­sed to continue that naturall power to the wicked which they pervert and abuse, and to over-rule such wicked workes and to raise light out of that darkenesse. And therefore let us not impute any evill and sinfull workes to God, as they are evill and sinfull, nor wickedly imagine that he is the author of sin. His hand is never in any sinfull work, otherwise then to over­rule, order and dispose the sinfulnesse and evill thereof to some good end and purpose.

Fourthly we are hereby admonished not to impute any worke Use 4. done in the world to fortune or chance, as worldly Epicures do, but to escribe all workes and every thing which comes to passe to the certaine will, purpose and determinate counsell of God. It is true that in respect of second causes and pur­poses of men, many things come to passe accidentally and by chance, no man purposing or intending any such thing, but in respect of God they are certaine and infallible, they all happen according to his will, and without it not an haire can fall from our heads nor a Sparrow fall to the [Page 14] earth, all power and motion is of him, and the abuse of the power and motion which is from the Divell and mans corruption he willingly permitted, and doth over-rule and dispose by his wisedome and providence to a good end. And therefore in all casualties and accidents let us comfort our selves and rest content and bee pa­tient knowing that they come not but by his will and pleasure.

Lastly let us rejoyce in all the great workes which we see done in the world, and honour them as meanes tending to Use 5. our salvation, if we be Gods faithfull people, and with care and conscience walke before him according to his word, and let the sight of them put us in mind for our comfort, that our God in whom we trust doth not lie idle, nor slumber or sleep, but by a mighty band and stretched out arme hath done all these great things, and is continually doing and wor­king for us, to bring us at length out of all troubles and dan­gers, and to set us and establish us for ever in eternall rest, glory and blessednesse.

The next thing which in order followeth after the descrip­tion of Gods outward workes in generall, is the unfolding and distinct handling of the severall sorts and kindes of them. And because the right dividing of them into heads, and the re­ducing of all the particulars unto their proper and naturall heads, is a maine ground of light, and a sure way to the di­stinct handling and understanding of them, I will therefore (before I proceed any further) labour to divide them aright into their naturall heads according to the rules of reason and truth, and so will proceed to that which is the first in time, and by the course and order of nature, namely the creation of the world and all things in it. The learned though they all ac­knowledge every kind of Gods outward workes, and doe not differ in the kindes and numbers of them: yet they are at va­riance about the true division of them into their first and prin­cipall heads.

Some divide the works of God into the works of Creation and the works of Redemption. But this is no perfect division, the two members of it do not containe all the outward works [Page 15] of God, for over and besides them there are works of preserva­tion and of judgement and revenge.

Others divide all Gods outward workes into the works of nature and the workes of grace. The workes of nature they divide into two sortes, 1. The workes which concerne the first beginning of nature, that is, the workes of creation, 2. The workes, which concerne the preservation, which they call the works of Gods providence. The works of grace they hold to be the works of Redemption and restau­ration of man-kind, by which God brings supernaturall blessings to men: But this division failes in divers respects. First, It makes a difference betweene works of nature and works of grace, wheras indeed creation and preservation, which they account works of nature, are in some sense, works of grace. For God of his owne free grace created man in his own Image: And now and ever since the first sm of Adam, which brought death and destruction into the world, all works of preservation by which God preserveth men in being and life, are works of free grace, and the preserving of his Elect unto his heavenly kingdome is a worke of supernaturall grace in Christ. Secondly, they erre in distinguishing between the works of Gods provi­dence, and the works of Redemption and restauration, wher­as Redemption and restauration are principall works of Gods providence, by which God provides for his elect in Christ, such things as neither eye hath seen, nor eare heard, neither have entred into the heart of man, 1 Cor. 2. 9.

A third sort there are who divide all Gods outward works into these two heads only; namely, the works of Creation, and the works of actuall providence. This I take to be the best and most perfect division. First, because under these heads are all Gods outward works contained, and there is not any one which may not be reduced under one of these two. For whatsoever God doth, or hath done, or can doe for the giving of the first being to all things may be redu­ced to Creation. And whatsoever God doth, or can do for the ordering, preserving and disposing of things created, and of their being and wel-being, may be brought under [Page 16] the works of his actuall providence. Secondly, there is a perfect distinction and difference between the works of creation and the works of actuall providence: So far as mans substance differs from mans misery and mans feli­city, so farre doth every proper worke of Creation differ from the works of Gods actuall providence in their objects. And although God in the creating of things in order did shew his providence for man, in that he first made a place of habita­tion for him, and all things which may serve for his use, as plants, trees, fruits, light and other necessaries before he created him, yet this breeds no confusion between the works of creati­on and the works of preservation, for two things may go to­gether in time and place, and may be in the same subject (as we see, sense and understanding, hearing and seeing in one man at the same time, and heat and light in fire) and yet they may be different in themselvs.

This order therfore I do purpose to follow hereafter by Gods assistance in prosecuting the body of Divinity. First, I will be­gin with the Creation, and will labour to unfold the nature of it in generall. And then I will proceed to the handling of all the speciall works therof, every one distinctly by it self in parti­cular.

Secondly, I will passe from thence to the works of Gods act­uall providence, under which comes the government and pre­servation of the world, and of al things created, and the ordering and disposing of every thing to the proper end of it. More espe­cially, the fall of man into sin, misery, and guilt of damnation. And the Redemption of man from misery and his Restauration to grace and glory by the application and fruition of Redemp­tion, and by true spirituall union and communion with Christ the Redeemer, and with God the Father in him by the inhabi­tation of the Holy Ghost.

Thus much for the generall Doctrin of Gods outward works laid down in this Text, and for the division of them in their se­verall heads and kinds, unto which all the particular outward works may be reduced.

FINIS.

[...]. OF THE CREATION OF THE VVORLD.

GEN. 1. 1.‘In the beginning God created the Heaven and the Earth.’

IN this Chapter the historle of the Creation is most plainely and succinctly written by Moses, and the workes of the six dayes are distinctly laid downe according to the or­der wherein God created and made all crea­tures in heaven and earth.

In the second Chapter, some things which were but more briefely and generally laid downe in the first Chapter, to wit the creation of plants, herbes, and trees, and of birds and beasts, and especially of man and wo­man, and the creation of the garden of Eden, with other circum­stances; are more plainely and fully related. And therefore I have made choice of those two Chapters, the words whereof doe give us ground and occasion to handle the doctrine of the crea­tion, and to discusse of all points therein needfull to be knowne for the glory of God, and our own profit and comforts.

[...]
[...]

[Page 2] In the whole history, comprehended in these two Chapters, the Spirit of God offers to our consideration two things. First the creation as it is a worke of God, together with the severall parts and degrees of it. Secondly, the creatures produced by that work, even the whole world, and all things therein contained; that is, the heavens and the earth, all the host of them.

Creation is here described: First, generally according to the Creation. common nature of it, as it concernes all creatures, and is the ma­king of them all. Secondly, it is distinguished and described par­ticularly according to the severall parts and branches thereof, as it concernes severall kindes of things created.

First, Creation is described generally by the name, the Author or cause, and by the time and forme of it, throughout this whole Chapter.

Secondly, it is distinguished into two branches or degrees. The first is simple or absolute and immediate creation, which is a ma­king of something out of nothing. The other is secondary crea­tion, that is, a making of perfect things out of an imperfect mat­ter which was before created of nothing, and was of it selfe most unfit for any such substantiáll forme and being as was raised out of it.

Simple or absolute creation, which is a making of things out of nothing, is laid downe in the first verse: And that is here distin­guished 1 into two particular branches, according to the number of the things created; the Heaven and the Earth.

The first is, the creation of the highest heavens, and all the host of them, as the spirit of God by Moses expounds himselfe more plainely, Chap. 2. 1. This was a most perfect creating and making of things perfect in nature, forme, and being, out of nothing, and that in an instant.

The second is, the creating of the earth, that is, a rude imper­fect masse, and confused Chaos or deep, which was without forme and void, and fit for no substantiall forme or perfect being as yet; neither could subsist, but by the spirit supernaturally susteining it. For so the word, Earth, is expounded in the next verse, even to be that rude masse and deep, which he made of nothing, that it might be the common matter of all the inferiour visible world, and of the creatures therein conteined.

[Page 3] The second maine branch of creation, which I call secondary, or 2 mediate creation, and which is a making of things perfect out of an imperfect matter created of nothing, is laid downe historical­ly throughout these two Chapters, where the creation of the seve­rall kindes of creatures in the six dayes is described particularly And this hath also two particular branches.

The first is the creating of things out of the first rude confused matter, which was without forme and void, and full of darknesse; such was the creating of the foure elements: 1. Fire, called light. 2. The Aire, called the firmament. 3. The Waters, or the Seas. 4. The Earth or drye land.

The second is, the creating of things perfect out of the second matter which was beforehand formed, and disposed into the forme and substance of elements; such was the creation of the Sunne, Moone, and Starres in the heavens; and of the foules in the aire, and fishes in the sea, and beasts on earth, which were all created of the second matter, that is, of the matter of the elements brought into forme.

There is besides these branches of creation, another particular creation, mixt of simple and secondary creation, namely, the crea­tion of man; who, in respect of his body, was made of the dust of the earth by secondary or mediate creation; and in respect of his soule was created by God, as the Angels were, immediatly of no­thing, by a simple, absolute and immediate creation. This is also de­scribed, First generally in this Chapter, verse 26, 27. and also di­stinctly, and particularly, Cap. 2. 7.

And as this history doth describe the act or worke of creation, Creatures both generally, and particularly in all the b [...]anches thereof: so also all the Creatures or kindes of things created.

The Creatures are here distinguished according to the time and order of their creation. Some of them were created in the first beginning of time, in the first moment wherein time first be­gan, to wit, the highest heaven with the inhabitants thereof, the Angels; and the earth, that is, the rude masse or first common matter of the inferiour world, and all the creatures therein. Some of them were created in the progresse of time, or in times distinct, even in six severall, dayes, to wit, all the rest of the creatures: and they are distinguished by the time and order of [Page 4] their creation. Some were created the first day, some the second, and the rest severally in the rest of the six dayes, and they are de­scribed by their severall names and natures, as shall appeare here­after, when they come to be handled distinctly.

CHAP. I.

Of the Creation in generall. What the Hebrew word signifieth. Of the Author, Time, Object, and Forme of the Creation. A descripti­on of it: demonstrated in all the parts. The Manner of Creation, in foure things. Angels had no hand in the Creation. Foure uses of the Point.

THe first thing now to be stood upon, is the creation in gene­rall, as it is described in the generall nature of it, by the name, the Author or causes, and the time when it first began, and when it was done, and that chiefely in this first verse.

First, Creation is here set forth by the name of it in this word [...], created. Secondly, by the Author or sole efficient cause of it [...], God. Thirdly, by the time when God began the creation, [...], in the beginning; and wherein he perfected that worke, in six dayes. Fourthly, by the forme and manner of it, vers. 3: God said, and it was done.

First, the word [...], created, if it bee rightly understood ac­cording To create, what. 1. to the true and proper signification of it in this place, may give great light to the matter in hand. I will therefore first di­stinguish it according to the severall significations in which it is used in the Scriptures, and will shew in what sense it is here to be taken, and then will come neere to the matter. First, it signifies properly, that extraordinary miraculous worke of God by which he gives a substance, and substantiall being to things which before were not, and doth make them either of nothing, or of some mat­ter which hath in it selfe no naturall fitnesse or disposition to re­ceive such a forme, or to be turned into such a substance: thus it is used, Deut. 4. 32. in these words, from the day that God created man. And Psal. 148. 5. He commanded, and they were created.

Secondly, by a metaphore, this word signifies the extraordina­ry 2. works of God, which are very like unto the creation, because [Page 5] they are done by a supernaturall power, and suddenly brought forth as it were out of nothing, when there was no meanes, or naturall disposition going before. Thus the [...] of regeneration (in which the wicked corrupt heart of man, [...] by nature is un­fit for any holinesse, and most prone to wickednesse, is changed in a moment by the Spirit of God, and becomes a cleane creature and a new man) is called creating, Psal. 51. 12. Thus are all great and miraculous works of God called creating: When hee raiseth up wonderfull strength out of weakenesse, and by them who are as nothing, doth overthrow mighty gyants and strong armies; this is called creating, Exod 34. 10. When God of a stubborne, stiff-nec­ked nation, and of a people scattered, despised, and counted worse than nothing, raiseth up and maketh a most holy people and glo­rious Church, as he will doe in the last conversion of the Jewes, this is called commonly in the Prophets by the name of Creation, as Psal. 102. 18. and Isa. 43. 7. and 65. 18. And when the Lord in his just wrath doth raise up evill, and destruction to the wicked out of good things, which naturally turne to good; this is called creating, Isa. 45. 7. and [...] [...]ery raysing up of things without meanes, as Psal. 104. 30 [...] When God suddenly beyond meanes or expectation, by the supernatur [...]ll power of his Spirit reneweth the face of the earth, it is called creating.

But in this place the word is to be taken in the proper sense, for making thing [...] either of nothing, or of matter made of nothing, and of it selfe unfit and without naturall disposition for receiving any such forme as that which God doth give unto it. The word thus expounded sheweth what creation is, even a making of things out of nothing, or of rude matter undisposed for such a forme and being, as God in an instant frameth one of it. And so it differs from all other kindes of making and producing things; as from naturall generation of living cr [...]atures, and of clowds, raine, thunder, and the rest, which are made by an ordinary power out of matter fitted for the forme of things produced: and from all artificall making of thing [...], as house, and other things made by art of matter fitted [...] [...].

The second thing by which creat [...] [...] is the author Author of creation. and cause of it, expressed in the word [...] [...] [...] word is not here used metaphorically, to signifie Angels, false Gods, and [Page 6] men who are ministers and vicegerents under God, as it is some­times used in Scripture; but it is here taken in the sense, which is most common and frequent in the originall, that is for the true God, and is one of his sacred Names. And it is a word of the plu­rall number, and in many places is joyned with verbes of the plu­rall number; and that for this end, to teach us, that though God, whose name this is, bee but one in nature and essence; yet in that unity of essence, and in that one eternall Jehovah, there is a plu­ralitie, that is, a Trinity of Persons. This word therefore doth here plainely intimate unto us, that Creation is an action of the whole Trinity, and that it is the joint worke of all the three Persons, even of God the Father, God the Sonne, and God the Holy Ghost; and this shewes, that neither Angels, nor false Gods, but Jehovah the true God, is the Author of the Creation, as appeares, Cap. 2. 7.

The third thing by which the Creation is described, is the time of it, both the first time in which God began to create, and did Time. create the highest heaven, and the rude masse, the earth; and also the progresse of time in which God created all visible things in order, and finished the whole frame of the visible world: This is expressed in the word [...], in the beginning, and in other parts of the Chapter which mention the particular dayes in which every thing was made. For this word though sometimes it signi­fies Eternity, and intimates unto us the eternall being of the Son of God, together with the Father from all eternity, and before all worlds, as Prov. 8. 22. where eternall Wisdome saith, The Lord possessed me in the beginning of his way before his works of old: and John 1. 1. In the beginning was the Word: yet most commonly and fre­quently in the Scriptures, being laid downe absolutely, as in this place, it signifies either the first moment, and beginning of all time, as in this verse, or else the first six dayes of the creation, or any one of them, in which dayes God made & finished the whole frame of heaven and earth, and all the host of them, as Isa. 46. 10. where God is said to declare and foretell the end of all things from the beginning, that is, from the six dayes of the creation, in which God began to speake to man and foretell [...] end; and Joh. 8. 44. where the Divell is called a [...]urtherer from the beginning that is, from the last day of the Creatiō in which God made, & the Divell [Page 7] marred man, and brought him under death. The time of the crea­tion, as here I take it in generall, is not onely the first moment of time, as in this verse it signifies, but also the six dayes mentioned distinctly in the rest of the Chapter. For the highest heaven, and the rude matter, the earth, were created in the first moment of time, and all other things in the space of six dayes, as the historie most plainely teacheth.

Some, besides that which I have observed from this word, doe gather also, that the time and moneth of the yeare in which God created the World, was the seventh moneth, which wee call Sep­tember. The ground of their conjecture is a Cabalisticall conceit of some Jewish Rabbins: to wit, because the letters of the word [...], which signifieth in September, are the same with the let­ters of the word [...], which signifies here in the beginning; and therefore, as the letters of the one word, if they be transpo­sed make up the other word, so both words agree in one time; and this beginning was in the moneth September. But their ground is deceitfull: First, because September, which is the seventh moneth, is called in the pure Scripture Hebrew [...], 1 King. 8. 2. and [...] is a word of the corrupt Rabbinicall Hebrew tongue, and therefore Gods Spirit alluded not to it. Secondly, the word [...] hath the letter ( [...]) in it more than the word [...]. and so they doe not perfectly agree. Thirdly, the Rabbins and Cabalists doe not agree among themselves in this conceit: For some of them have another conceit, that the letters of this word are the same with the two words [...], the first or chiefe house, that is, the Sanctuary. Others that it hath the same letters which make up the words [...], that is, the Covenant of fire, to shew the purity of the burnt offerings made by fire; And many other such conceits they have concerning this word; which to repeat were losse of time.

I am not ignorant that some learned men, and judicious di­vines doe hold this opinion of the worlds creation in Autumne and September, but for other reasons; especially because Au­tumne is the time when all fruits come to perfection, and there­fore Gods creating of all things perfect was in that time of the yeare. But this is no good reason; for many creatures have their perfection and glory in the Spring-time, as hearbs, flowers, and [Page 8] such like. And birds and beasts, doe chiefely breed in the Spring, and the Spring revives the things of the earth, and makes them fresh and greene. And the cause why many fruits come not to perfection till Autumne, is the corruption of the earth, and the curse laid on it for mans sinne. In the creation things when they first began were perfect, and so would they be in the Spring and all the yeare, if man had not brought a curse upon them. There­fore I leave such curious points, as not needfull to be determined; or if I incline to any opinion concerning the time of the yeare, it is that the world was created in the Spring, when the day and night are equall and both of one length in all the world, that is, in the moneth [...] Abib; which is part of March, and part of Aprill. For this. God seemes to teach, Exod. 12. 2. where hee in­joines the Israelites to account that for the first moneth of the yeare, contrary to the custome and account of the Egyptians, which they had before followed.

The fourth thing by which the creation is described, is the Ob­ject Object. or effects, that is, the things created, even the Heavens and the Earth and all things in them: For it is said, God created the heaven and the earth.

The fifth thing is the Forme and manner of the creation, to wit, Forme. by saying, Let it be done, and it was done; this appeares, vers. 3, 6, 9. which implies also the matter and the end. Now here a question may bee moved concerning this word of God; whether it was What word it was. [...], a word spoken and uttered with a sound, like that which God spake from Mount Sinah in giving the Law; or [...], the inbred facultie of reason and understanding; or [...], an inward thought of God, caused by outward objects; or whether it was [...], and [...], the substantiall and eter­nall Word, the Sonne of God. First, it cannot be a word spoken and uttered with a sound; for that requires aire as the medium of 1 it, and there was none when God said, Let there be light; there was no eare to heare, nor any use of such words. Secondly, it 2 cannot be any inward thought of God, now beginning to thinke of the creation and being of things; for this purpose was in God, as all thoughts are, from all eternity. Neither is this word, the Son 3 of God, now spoken that is begotten, and not till now, as some hereticks dreamed; and this saying of God the begetting of the [Page 9] Son. For, the Son is God, the creatour coequall and coeternallo the Father; and that God which said, Let there be light; and, Let there be a firmament, &c. Wherefore the true meaning of that speech, is this: That, as God the Father, Son and Holy Ghost, had decreed and purposed, from all eternity, to create all things out of nothing; so in the beginning, in the first moment of time, the Father, by his eternall Word the Son and by his Spirit, not as in­struments, but chiefe agents with himselfe, did actually put his de­cree in execution, and that so quickly as a word can bee spoken with the tongue, which hath before been conceived in the heart; and that all was done at Gods beck and command, most easily, without any toi [...]e or labour; and that, as the word spoken is the revealing of mans will, so the creation was the declaring of Gods eternall will and purpose, by the open execution of it; and, in a word, that God by his Wisedome, Will, Goodnesse, and Power, which are his attributes, by which, as by a speaking word, hee is made knowne to men, did create and make all things, and, for an end, not in vaine, for his word is never in vaine. Now from these things laid down plainly in the words of this first verse; and in the verses following, wee may gather this description of creation in generall, viz.

That it is, the first outward act or worke, of God Almighty, A large descripti­on of Cre­ation. the Father, Sonne and Holy Ghost, performed in the first beginning of time, by which, hee immediatly brought all things out of no­thing, according to his eternall purpose, and gave the first being to the world, and every creature therein, when as they were not; and that by his owne infinite goodnesse, wisedome, power, and will, actually working, and like a powerfull Word and com­mandement, bringing all things to passe out of meere nothing, or that which was as nothing made of nothing, without any instru­ments, toile, labour, alteration or delay, for the revelation of him­selfe and for the communion of his goodnesse and glory.

This description truely gathered from this text and this histo­rie, Taken in­to parts, and pro­ved. is in whole, and in every part confirmed by other testimonies of Gods holy infallible Word.

First creation is an outward act or work, because it is not with­in 1. Opus ad extra. God himselfe, but his making of things, and giving to them a being, different from his own essence.

[Page 10] Secondly, it is Gods first outward act, because it was the giving of the first being to all kindes of creatures; in which, and upon which, hee exerciseth all other outward works: these two points are manifest and need no further proofe.

But as for the third point, the Author or first cause, God the Father, Sonne and Holy Ghost: wee have manifest proofe of it in Scripture, able to satisfie any reasonable mind. First, that the Lord Jehovah the only true God (not Angels) is alone the Crea­tour of all things. Holy Job testifieth, saying, that hee alone spreadeth out the heavens, and treadeth upon the waves of the Sea, Job 9. 8. And Isa. 44. 24. I, saith Jehovah, am the Lord that maketh all things, that stretcheth forth the heavens alone, that spreadeth abroad the earth by my selfe. Secondly, that all the three Persons are equall in this worke; and as they all are one God, so are one Creatour of all things; it is manifest, Job 35. 10. Where the Crea­tour of all things, is called in the plurall number [...], my makers, that is, more Persons than one, even three Persons in one God: and Psal. 149. 2. Let Israel rejoyce [...], in them that made him: and Eccles. 12. 1. Remember thy Creators [...]: and Isa. 54. 5. The Lord thy makers is thine husbands, the Lord of hostes is his name. For the Father in particular, there is no doubt, all confesse him to be the Creatour, and so the Scriptures testifie, Prov. 8. 22, 23. and Heb. 1. 2, 3. For the Son also we have plaine texts, that by him all things were made, and nothing without him: John 13. 10. and Joh. 5. 17, 19. 1 Cor. 8. 6. Col. 1. 16. Heb. 1. 10. And as the Spirit is one God with the Father, and the Sonne, so his hand wrought with them in the Creation, as appeares, Gen. 1. 2. Where it is said, the spirit of God moved upon the face of the waters, that is, cherished the rude masse, as the Hen doth her egges by sitting on them, and so gave forming vertue to them; so the Hebrew word signifieth: and Job 26. 13. God is said by his spirit, to have garnished the heavens: and Job 33. 4. The spirit of God hath made me, saith Elihu: and Psal. 33. 6. By the Word of the Lord, (that is, the Sonne) were the heavens made, and all the host of them by the breath of his mouth, that is, his spirit.

Fourthly, for the time of the Creation, we need not stand much upon proofe of it. This Text sheweth, that it began in the begin­ning or first moment of time: And in six dayes, it was perfected and fully finished, as the rest of the Chapter sheweth: It was of [Page 11] old that God founded the earth, and made the heavens, as the Psalmist testifieth, Psal. 102. 25. that is, in the first beginning of times. And reason tells us, that time being a circumstance, and inseparable companion of creatures visible, must of necessity be­gin together with their being. Yet one thing is worthy to be no­ted in the time; namely, That, whereas God was able in the first moment, to create all things as he did the highest heavens, and the rude masse, which is called the earth in my Text, and which was the common matter of all the visible world: yet he did distribute and divide the creation into divers acts, which are distinguished one from another by the effects, that is, the creatures made; and by the severall times and dayes also wherein they were perfor­med. Which point wee will insist upon, as it well deserves, when we come to the several acts, performed particularly in severall dayes of the Creation.

The fifth point in the description, is the generall object, and ef­fect of creation, to wit, all things and the first being of them: For, here the object, and effect, concurre and are altogether the same. The world and all things therein, and the first matter of which they were made, as they are the onely things about which the act of creation is exercised; so they are the object of creation: And as they are things made by the creation, so they are effects of it. Now this generall object and effect, as it is truly gathered from the enumeration of all the kindes of things created, which are numbred in this Chapter and the next, and is plainely expres­sed in the description: so it is abundantly testified in all the Scrip­tures; as Isa. 44. 24. and Coloss. 1. 16. and Exod. 20. 11. where all things in heaven and earth, visible and invisible, are said to bee made, created and formed by God: Yea, the first rude matter it selfe, out of which the inferior world was made, is here in my Text said, to be created by God. And this is confirmed by reason, drawn from the nature of God, and his Name Jehovah. For God, as this Name signifieth, is an absolute essence of himselfe, and the first being of all, and the Author of all being: Therefore, every thing which is, or hath being, must needs be of him, and be his creature.

The sixth point in the description, is the matter out of which, God created all things: under which, we comprehend two things: First, [Page 12] the matter improperly so called, or Terminum à quo, from whence God brought the first being of all things immediately: And that was either negative, even nothing, or their not being at all; or positive, their being in Gods eternall purpose onely. This was the first matter which God had to worke upon in the first immediate act of creation. Secondly, the matter properly so cal­led, that is either the rude masse made of nothing, which was without forme, and void; or the foure Elements, which had in them no forme or being of the things created, and so were as nothing in respect of that being which God gave to every particular thing which he made of them. For proofe of this, we have a plain te­stimonie, Heb. 11. 3. where the Apostle saith. By faith we underst and Heb. 11. 3. opened. that the worlds were framed by the word of God: So that the things which are seen, were not made of things which doe appeare. Here it is plaine that hee speakes, 1. Of creation in generall, in that hee saith, The worlds were framed. 2. In that he denies the visible world to be made of any naturall things, which doe appeare to any sense; hereby hee shewes, that their first matter was made of nothing; and if they had no matter before the creation, much lesse had in­visible spirits any matter. 3. In that hee makes this a matter of faith to bee beleeved, not to bee knowne by reason; hereby hee sheweth, that there was a creation of their first being out of no­thing: for reason without faith, can apprehend a making of things of matter fitted and prepared. 4. In that hee doth not say simply, that they were not made of any thing; but saith, rather, they were not made of things which doe appeare; hereby hee inti­mates, that they had a being in Gods purpose and secret counsell before. Reason also gathered from the present Text doth prove, that no creature in the world was made of matter uncreated, or of matter co-eternall with God: for here it is said, that God first made the rude matter, which was without forme, which he needed not to have done, if there had been any eternall matter uncrea­ted.

Secondly, this matter could not subsist but by the Spirit of God, exercising his creating power upon it, as the second Verse sheweth: Therefore all things were made of nothing; some im­mediately, as the highest heavens, and the first matter, called earth, and the forme of every thing; and some of a matter, either [Page 13] that first without forme, or else unfit for such a being, as God made out of it.

The seventh thing in the description is the forme and manner of 7. Manner of creation in foure things. the creation in generall, and that consists in foure particulars.

1. First, that God in the creation had no moving causes to move him thereunto, but his owne will, goodnesse, wisedome, and power; and by them, and according to them hee created every thing. First, that God created all things by the free liberty of his owne will, and according to his owne good pleasure; and was not by any necessity compelled thereunto, it appeares plainly, Psal. 115. 3. and 135. 6. where it is said, that God hath done all things whatsoever pleased him: and whatsoever pleased him he hath done in heaven, earth, sea, and all deep places: and Revel. 4. 11. it is said, that God hath created all things, and through his will and pleasure they are created. Secondly, that God created all things by his goodnesse, and according to his good pleasure, as the places last cited doe shew; so also the goodnesse, which at the first crea­tion did appeare in every thing created, proves it most sensibly: For as it is said of Light, that it was good, Verse 4. and so likewise of every otherthing, that it was good; so of all in generall, which God had made, that they were very good. Now all goodnesse in the creature comes from the goodnesse of the Creatour, and is an image and shadow of it: Therefore certainly God by, and accor­ding to his goodnesse created all things. Thirdly, that God crea­ted all things by his wisedome, and according to it, the Scriptures aboundantly testifie, Psal. 104. 24. where David saith, Lord, how manifold are thy workes, in wisedome hast thou made them all! and Psal. 136. 5. The Lord by his excellent wisedome made the heavens: and Prov. 3. 19. The Lord by wisedome founded the earth. And this is im­plied, Prov. 8. 27. where Wisedome saith, When God prepared the heavens, I was there. Fourthly, that God created all things by his mighty power and strength, the Prophet Jeremy testifieth, Jerem. 32. 17. saying, O Lord God, behold thou hast made the heavens, and the earth by thy great power and stretched out arme. And Saint Paul affirmes, that Gods eternall power is seen from the creation of the world Rom. 1. 20. in the things which are made. Therefore the first particular concern­ing the inward moving causes concurring with God, is manifest, [Page 14] to wit, That God by his will, goodnesse, wisedome, and power created all things.

2. The second particular, by which the forme and manner is set forth, is this, That God created all things himselfe, without any instruments at all, by his powerfull word and commandement. This is expressed in the Text, which saith, [...], that is, God, the three persons did but say of every th [...]ng, Let it be, and it was so. And in the second Chapter Moses makes this manifest, Ver. 4, 5, 6. where he professeth, that God used no subordinate means, no not so much as raine, or moistening vapour, or the hand of man in the creating of plants in the earth. And Isa. 40. 12, 13. the Prophet ascribes to God alone the framing and stretching out of the heavens and the earth, without the counsell, direction, or mi­nistery of any other therein. For howsoever the creation was ac­cording to Gods eternall counsell, and in the creation of man, God is brought in to say, Come, let us make man, as if hee did con­sult with others besides himselfe; yet this is not to be understood of Gods consulting with any other, but of the consulting of God with himselfe, even the Father with the Son and the Spirit, who were persons of the same essence with himselfe, and were the same God, after whose image man was made, and had the same hand in the creating of him. For so the words (Let us make man in our owne image) doe necessarily imply. Yea, as they all are [...], the Son, as well as the Father, and the Spirit as well as the Son, and all are included in that name; so it was the joynt and equall counsell, and the purpose and saying of them all, Come, let us make man: so that the Son and the Spirit are [...] joynt Creators and Workers with the Father, not his instruments; and the power­full word of the creation comes equally from all three. But as for None but God wrought in the creation. Argu­ments. 1 2 Angels, or other inferiour creatures, it is against all reason, yea against all piety and Gods glory to imagine or dreame, that they are instruments used by God in the creation. First, all being is of him, who is Jehovah, the author of all being: Now creation is the giving of being, and God onely is Jehovah; therefore crea­tion is onely of him. Secondly, in every thing which was created, there was something made of nothing, even the substantiall form; and the matter was disposed in an instant or moment. Now this [Page 15] cannot be but by an infinite power, and is an action of infinite vertue; therefore no created instrument could concurre in any act of creation. Thirdly, if God could create Angels, the first 3. and chiefest of his creatures, of nothing, when there was none but himselfe, nor any to be his instrument, much more could he with­out instruments create inferiour creatures. Lastly, God proves 4. himselfe to be the true God, and none besides him, by the act of creation, Isa. 43. which proofe were defective, if any creature had wrought with him in any part of the creation. Thus the second particular is manifest.

3. The third particular, wherein the forme and manner doth consist, is this, That God created all things without any toile, labour, change, or alteration in himselfe at all. Hee was not changed from rest to labour and motion, nor from idlenesse to businesse, nor from strength to faintnesse or wearinesse, nor from perfect to more perfect, neither was any good added to him by the creati­on. For (as Saint James saith) though every good and perfect gift is from above, and cometh downe from God the Father of lights, yet with him there is no variablenesse, or shadow of change, Jam. 1. 17. And Isa. 40. 20. Hast thou not knowne (saith the Prophet) hast thou not heard, that the everlasting God, the Lord, the Creator of the ends of the earth fainteth not, neither is weary? there is no searching of his wisdome, he giveth power to the faint, &c. Yea, it were against all reason to thinke, that God could be weary or faint in the creation, in which he gave not onely all strength, but also being to all things. And seeing in the creation God did nothing but what hee willed and purposed so to doe, and then to doe when he purposed, and as he had willed to doe; and seeing hee was infinite, and all sufficient, and most blessed in himselfe from all eternity, if creation could not adde any perfection to him, or any glory; it onely revealed his glory upon others, and communicated his goodnesse to them, without change in himselfe, or addition to his essence. If any object and say, that God by creation became Lord and Possessour of all creatures, which, being good, were pleasant to him; and therefore something was added to him, even Lordship, Domini­on, and Delight: I answer, that God in himselfe, and before his owne eyes, had all things actually present to him from all eter­nity, and as sole Lord did possesse them, before they had any be­ing [Page 16] in themselves; and therefore the addition in the creation was not to him, but to the things created, to which hee gave being: and when hee created things in time, according to his eternall purpose, he received nothing to himselfe, but gave to all things their being and their goodnesse.

4. The fourth particular, wherein the forme and manner of creation doth consist, is this, That things were created, and brought into perfect being without any delay at all, even in a mo­ment of time; and that creation is not a successive forming of things by alteration and change, which requires some tract of time, but a making of them perfect in a moment, and bringing of them at once into perfect being. This is intimated in this Chapter, where wee reade, that Gods creating was but this, Hee said, Let things be, and they were, that is, hee made them in a mo­ment, as it were by a word, and so quickly and readily as a word is spoken. To which adde the testimony of David, Psal. 33. 9. God spake, and the e [...]rth was made: he commanded, and it stood fast. And Psal. 148. 5. where hee saith of the heavens, and of the Heaven of heavens, and the Sun, Moon, and Starres, that God commanded, and they were created. And indeed this is manifest by reason drawne from the nature of creation, which is a making of things out of nothing, and giving a forme and being which was not, even in things which were made of matter before created; as wee see in the foure Elements, and in things brought out of them, there was something, even the substantiall forme of them, made immedi­ately of nothing: now between the being of something and no­thing, there is no medium, or intermiddle state; therefore every thing created, was created in an instant, though many in a day, and divers kinds, one after another, and not altogether in the same moment.

The eight and last thing in the description is the end of the 8. creation, to wit, Gods revealing himselfe, and communicating his glory throughout all ages of the world, and for ever. This is con­firmed divers waies in holy Scripture: First, by testimonies, which affirme, that for God and his glory all things were made, that is, for the revelation and communion of God and his glory, Pro. 16. 4. God hath made all things for himselfe, even the wicked for the day of wrath. And Isa. 43. 7. I have called him for my glory. And Ver 21. [Page 17] This people have I formed for my selfe, they shall shew forth my praise. And Rom. 11. 36. For of him, and by him, and to him are all things. Secondly, by testimonies, which shew, that in the event creation doth turne to Gods glory, for the revealing of him to the com­fort of his Saints, as Psal. 8. 1. and 19. 1, 2. where it is said, that the beholding of the creation makes Gods Name excellent. And the Heavens declare the glory of God, and the Firmament sheweth his handy-worke. For certainly, that which in time proves to bee the end, that God propounded as an end before all times: for hee is infinite in wisdome and providence. Thirdly, the holy men of God, moved by Gods Spirit, exhort all people to praise God for his workes of creation; and pray that they may apply them to that end, as Psal. 145. 10. Let all thy workes praise thee, O Lord. And, Psal. 148. 5. Let them praise the Name of the Lord: for hee comman­ded, and they were created.

Thus much for the confirmation of the description, and every point of doctrine therein contained: I come to the use.

First, this doctrine serves for direction and instruction divers Use 1. By crea­tures a­scend to know God. waies; in that it shewes God to bee the author of creation, and creation to be his outward worke, and all things to be made by him: Hereby first it leads us in a ready way to come to the knowledge of Gods wisdome, power, goodnesse, and such like excellent attributes, even by directing us to behold God in them, and to discerne his eternall power and Godhead; that hee is not like the Idols, and false gods of the Heathen, but a God of eter­nity, before all things, and all times; because hee is the Creatour of them all: And that whatsoever excellency is in any creature, it is in God above all measure. And therefore when wee see the mighty masse of the world, let us thinke how great is hee which made this of nothing. When we see the glory of the Sun, Moon, and Starres, and of the whole Heavens, let us thinke how glorious is hee who made this glory. When wee discerne the goodnesse, sweetnesse, power, and vertue which is in things created; let us conceive, that all these are without measure in God, and in all excellency. Secondly, by this consideration it teacheth us, that And his sove­raignty over all. God onely is the true Lord and Possessour of heaven and earth, worthy to be honoured, served, and worshipped of all, and to be sought unto by praier; and that all thankes are to bee given to [Page 18] him for all good things; that hee hath right and power to dis­pose all things at his pleasure, to whom hee will, and that wee ought not to murmure at his disposing; neither hath any man right to any thing but by his gift, and his permission.

Secondly, this Doctrine serves for confutation, 1. Of Philoso­phers, Use 2. Confuta­tion of six sorts of men. who held that the World was not created in time, but was from eternity; or that it was created of a matter which was un­created, and had a being before the creation, even without be­ginning. 2. Of those doting Jewes and others, who held that the inferiour visible world was created by the ministerie of Angels. 3. Of Heretikes, who denied God the Father of Christ, preached in the Gospel, to be the Creatour of the World, and feigned an­other God Creatour, inferiour to him. 4. Of the Papists, who teach that there be other Creatours besides God, even that every Masse-Priest can create of Bread and Wine the true bodie and bloud of the Lord Christ our Creatour and Redeemer: yea, that same body, which is already, which was made of a woman borne, [...]nd crucified, and is glorified at Gods right hand in heaven: a strange contradiction, and horrible blasphemy, which God ab­ [...]orres as a thing impossible: For nothing can be made that which it is already, nor receive that being which it hath before-hand. 5. Of Atheists and Mockers, who deny God, and scoffe at the last resurrection, and at the ending of this World in the last day, all which are manifestly proved by the creation. Lastly, of all Ido­laters, who esteem and worship that for God their Creatour, which is but the image of a creature, and in nature and forme far inferiour to the least creature formed by God.

Thirdly, it serves for reprehension and just reproofe, First of them, who thinke that God can be worshipped and pleased by Use 3. Rep [...]oofe to [...]vo sorts. mens giving of outward things to him immediately for his owne use; as gold, silver, meat, drinke, clothes, and curious ornaments: all which God rejecteth as things unusefull for him; upon this very ground, and for this reason, because hee created the whole World, and all things therein are his owne already, Psal. 50. and Act. 17. 25. Secondly, of them, who fret and grudge, and too much repine and grieve for the overthrow and destruction of Kingdomes, Countries, Nations, Cities, Men, or Beasts, which God at his pleasure, and in his justice doth destroy for mens sins, [Page 19] and over-turne withall their glory and being. Who is he, that in such a case dare mutter against God? For hee may doe with his owne what he pleaseth: if they offend him, he may destroy them, and magnifie his justice, and glorifie his power in their destructi­on; and he can repaire them at his pleasure.

Lastly, here is for all that trust in God, love and serve him, Use 4. Comfort for the godly. plentifull matter of comfort against poverty, and all calamities, and persecuting enemies. No poverty ought to pinch or vexe them; for God their portion is more worth then all the world: all riches, and other things are but the worke of his hands, and he can give them when hee will, and will give what hee in his wise­dome knowes to be necessary and profitable. All strength is of him, and he can weaken all enemies in a moment; so that if he be for us, none can stand against us: hee can raise sweet out of bitternesse.

Thus much for creation in generall.

CHAP. II.

Of the creature in generall. Names of the creature expounded, to shew their nature. Instructions concerning the creatures. Five Uses made thereof.

BEfore I passe to the speciall acts or branches of Creation, I hold it fit to insist upon the creature in generall, which com­prehends under it every speciall kind of thing created by any act of creation. This History of the Creation, though not in any one word, yet in one sentence doth expresse the creature in ge­nerall, that is, the whole frame and collection of all things crea­ted, Chapt. 2. 1. in these words, Thus were the heavens and the earth finished, and all the host of them, or all their furniture, that is, what­soever is in them rightly ordered and disposed, like an Army well marshalled; so the Hebrew word [...] doth properly signi­fie. And other Scriptures, both in the Old and New Testament, doe oftentimes in one word propound to us the generall conside­ration of all joyntly together. I will therefore first speake of the creature in generall, as it comprehends in it the heavens, and the [Page 20] earth, and all things in them, and that in such words and phrases, as Gods Spirit in this and other Scriptures is pleased to use for our instruction, and for the help and illumination of our weake understandings. And in this generall description, I will first con­sider the words and phrases, by which the creature in generall is called, and will shew what they doe import in their signification. Secondly, I will from thence and other Scriptures note such in­structions, as may direct us to the knowledge of the creature in generall. And lastly, will make some use and application fit and convenient.

The first name, by which the creature in generall is called in the Names of the crea­tures. 1 Old Testament, is the Hebrew word [...], which signifies an uni­versality, or perfect comprehension of all things: By this name, the whole universality of things created, is called, Pro. 16. 4. where it is said, that the Lord hath made all things for himselfe; not so much as the wicked man is excepted, who is made for the day of evill. Also, Isa. 44. 24. the Lord saith, I am Jehovah that maketh all things, [...]: Answerable to this are the Greeke words, [...], and [...], used by the Greeke Philosophers, to signifie the whole universall world, or the universality of all things; and [...], which is commonly used in the New Testament, where there is mention made of the creation, and the creature in gene­rall, as John 1. 3. By him were all things made. And Rom. 11. ult. Of him, and by him, and for him are all things. And Colos. 1. 16. and Re­vel. 4. 11. But yet, as the Apostle, 1 Cor. 15. 27. speaking of Gods putting all things in subjection under Christ, saith, that hee must be excepted, who hath put all things under him: so here, though the words [...] and [...] doe signifie an universality, and comprehen­sion of all things; yet it is manifest by the word joyned with them, that God the Creatour, who is said to make and create them, is excepted, and all other things besides him are included.

Another name, by which the Spirit calls the universality of crea­tures, 2 is the Greeke word [...], which answers to the Hebrew word [...]; and is alwaies used by Septuagints, in their tran­slation of the Old Testament, to expresse it. By this name the creature in generall is called, Heb. 1. 2. and 11. 3. where it is said, that God by his Son made the worlds, and that the worlds were fra­med by the word of God. And in the Syriack and Hebrew transla­tions, [Page 21] the words are [...] and [...]: and according to their originall and true notation, they all doe signifie not onely an eter­nall duration and continuance from the first moment and beginning of time, to the last end thereof throughout all ages, and the eter­nall duration of things in the world to come; but also all the things which are measured by this protraction and duration of times, and of time beyond all times, even all things under heaven, and all things above the heavens, as Angels and blessed Spirits, and all things which shall be upheld and kept in being after the end of the world: For the Hebrew word [...] signifies times or things, the beginning and end whereof are hid and unknown to mortall men of short time, by reason of the long continuance of them; and the Greeke word [...], being compounded of [...] and [...], signi­fies a perpetuall being, and duration, or whatsoever is alwaies, and in all times; and it is used in Gospel to signifie, not only this world, wherein we live in this mortall life; but also the world to come, both [...] the Kingdome of glory, and also the state of all things after death; as appeares, Mat. 12. 32. and Heb. 6. 5.

The third name, by which the creature in generall is called, is 3. the Greek word [...], which is commonly translated the world; and doth fitly signifie that well ordered, decent, beautifull, and comely frame of heaven and earth, with all the goodly furniture, and well ordered host of creatures therein contained. For it is a word, which in Greeke doth properly signifie beauty, decency, and comely ornament; and by it the Greeks commonly doe call the whole frame of the world, because of the beauty, and comely or­der of the creatures therein: and by this name the creature in generall, and the universality of things created is called, Matth. 25. 34. Rom. 1. 20. and Ephes. 1. 4. where the Spirit of God speaks of the creation and foundation of the world: And lest we should thinke, that by this word [...], is meant onely the inferiour and visible world, the holy Apostles, when they speake of it, adde the word [...], and call it [...], as appeares, 1 Corin. 1. 20. and Ephes. 2. 2. to shew that there is another world, even the in­visible, called also by this name: And John 1. 3. the Evangelist ha­ving affirmed, that all things were made by the eternall word, doth in the 10. Verse shew, that this [...], all things, was [...], the world. I am not ignorant that this word is used also in a more [Page 22] strict sense, and that it signifies sometimes the habitable world, or circle of the earth inhabited by men, as Matth. 4. 8. and John 1. 9. Sometimes men inhabiting the earth, as Rom. 5. 12. By one man sin entred into the world. Sometimes the elect, who are the chiefe ones of the world, and of mankind, as John 3. 16. and 2 Cor. 5. 19. and 1 John 2. 2. Sometimes for the carnall, unregenerate, and reprobate multitude of mankind, as John 14. 17. Whom the world cannot receive: And 17. 9. I pray not for the world. Sometimes earth­ly things, as Gal. 4. 3. opposed to spirituall; and sometimes sinfull and corrupt things opposed to holy and heavenly, as Galat. 6. 14. But the most full and proper sense is that which I have first na­med, and in that sense it is used in all places, which speake of the creating and founding of the world; and signifies the whole frame of heaven and earth, with the furniture of them.

The fourth name, by which the creature in generall is called, is 4. the Greeke word [...], or [...], which properly signifies that which is created, and made of nothing, by the act of creation; by this name the creature in generall is called, as it comprehends every thing created either in heaven, or earth, or in the sea, or under the earth, Revel. 5. 13. And by this name [...], the whole world is called, Mar. 13. 19. where our Saviour saith, There shall be such affliction as was not from the beginning of the creature which God crea­ted, that is, of the world, [...], as the word is rendered by the Evangelist Matthew, Chap. 24. 21.

Now from these severall names used by the Spirit of God in Instructi­ons con­cerning the crea­tures. Scripture, to set forth the creatures in generall, that is, the uni­versality of things created, we may observe divers things for our instruction.

1. First, that whatsoever hath any being in heaven, or in earth, either in this world, or in the world to come, even all things which can be conceived to have a true being, besides God him­selfe, are created of God, have a beginning, and were made out of nothing at the first: This, as it is laid downe in my Text, so it appeares plainly by all the foure names before cited; and is con­firmed by the Scriptures produced, to shew the true sense of them, to wit, Isa. 44. 24. John 1. 3. Col. 1. 16. and Revel. 4. 11. And besides these, wee have many other, as Exod. 20. 11. Psal. 146. 6. and Psal. 148. in which places the heavens, and the heaven of hea­vens [Page 23] the Angels, and all the hosts of God, the Sun, Moon, Stars, the Aire, and the Meteors, the Earth, the Sea, and all things in them are said to be made, and created by God: to which we may adde, Act. 14. 15. and 17. 24. Heb. 1. 10.

2. The second thing which I observe from these names of the creature in generall is, That the World was made in perfect beauty, fit to flourish perpetually; and every creature, as it was created of God, was good, perfect, and beautifull in his kind free from all discord, disorder, and corruption. This is gathered from the names [...], and [...] by which the World is called; the one of which signifies beauty, ornament, and decencie, free from all deformity, discord, and disorder; and the other a perpetuall being, or a perpetuall flourishing in being and perfection. And the last words of this Chapter confirme this fully, to wit, God beheld all things which he had made, and so they were exceeding good. The words also of God himselfe, Job 38. from the 3. Verse, where he sets forth his manner of creating all things in a most ex­cellent order, by laying the foundations of the earth sure, by measuring it as it were by line, by shutting in the deeps within bounds, by bringing forth the lights of heaven rejoycing, and the Angels singing joyfully, and by making all things to flourish. Reason also grounded on the Word of God doth prove this plainly: For that which was made in perfect wisedome, and in the framing whereof Gods eternall wisedome had an hand, must needs bee most beautifull, decent, and flourishing: For if Gods wisdome in Bezaleel and Aholiab, made them so excellent in work­ing curious and glorious workes for the Tabernacle, much more excellent is it in God himselfe. Now the Scriptures plainly te­stifie, that God founded the world in wisdome, Prov. 3. 19. that in wis­dome hee hath made all things, Psal. 104. 24. and that wisdome had an hand in ordering all things, Prov. 8. Therefore the creati­on of the World was in perfect beauty and comelinesse.

3. The third thing which we learne from these names is, That the deformity of the world, the enmity of creatures, the corrup­tion of man, and the confusion of things created, were not in the world, nor in the creatures thereof at the first; neither are they Gods handy-worke, nor things by him created: for the world is [...], a beautifull frame: And the Scriptures call the worlds [Page 24] [...], things of being, and continuance, not things deformed, corrupt, and perishing. This also the Scriptures shew, Gen. 3. that the earth was cursed for mans sake, and mans sinne came from him­selfe, and the Serpent: And Deut. 28. 23. and Levit. 26. God him­selfe in the Law professeth, that for disobedience and sin of rebel­lious people hee doth make their heaven over them as brasse, and their earth as iron: And Eccl. 7. 29. it is said, that God made man upright, but they have sought out many inventions.

I might here also observe from the name [...], that the world was also made in a beautifull and pleasant season, even the pleasant time of the Spring in all probability; but I love not to build opinions on such weake foundations.

And from the word [...], which signifies long lasting ages, I might observe the ages of the world, and discusse the question a­bout the ages and years from the creation; but they may more seasonably be touched hereafter, when we come to speake of the particular branches of the creation.

Now I come to the Use of these considerations: First, they Use 1. The world not eter­nall. serve to make the thoughts and conceits of Atheists and carnall Philosophers hatefull to us; to wit, that the world is eternall, and had no beginning, neither shall have end. For here wee see, that all things universally were created of nothing, and are creatures formed by God. It is a point of faith above all naturall reason to understand, that the worlds were made of nothing, as the Apostle shewes, Heb. 11. 3. And that was it which made Aristotle, and o­ther witty and learned Philosophers, led by reason, doubt of the creation of the world. Beside, when they observed the stability of the heavens, and heavenly host, and their beautifull order and incorruptible being, this did further them in this conceipt, and made them thinke there should be no end of it. But Gods Word teacheth the contrary, and sheweth, that all things were created and made out of nothing, except only God himselfe; and though they were made perfect and good, fit to flourish for ever, and some of them have still a great remnant of that glory and perfe­ction, as the heavens, which change little in many ages; yet by mans sin they are corrupted and made changeable, and so much more, by how much more neere they come to man: And this the Philosophers felt and perceived, insomuch that many of them did [Page 25] acknowledge the creation, and the end of the world; and even Aristotle himselfe, though he could not conceive that the world should be made of nothing by the course of nature, yet hee did acknowledge God the Father Maker and Preserver of it; and so likewise shall all be confounded, who are not settled in this truth: Therefore let us looke up to God, and beleeve his Word, and hate all blind conceipts of worldly wise men; and see and behold in the most rationall and wise naturall men, denying this truth of the worlds creation, that the wisdome of the world is foolishnesse, and the imaginations of the flesh enmity against God.

Secondly, this consideration of creation and beginning of all Use 2. Admire Gods e­ternity. the world, serves to make us more admire Gods eternity, and to ravish us with the consideration of it. If there could be a man found on earth, who had lived ever since the time of Christ, or since the daies of Adam or Noah, wee would highly esteem him, and seeke to him from the uttermost parts of the earth, as the Queen of Sheba did to Solomon. But behold, all this world is but of short continuance, created of God not many thousands of yeares ago. God is before it, even from all eternity. And this world shall perish, but he endureth for ever, Psal. 102. And there­fore if wee wonder at the long lasting heavens, and the surely founded earth; how much more ought we to admire the eterni­tie of God, the ancient of daies, before all daies and times, and with­out beginning or end!

Thirdly, though this world be beautifull by reason of some re­liques Use 3. Overlove not the world, now dege­nerate. of perfection and beauty remaining from the creation; yet seeing it had a beginning, and is corrupted by sin, and hastens to­wards an end, let us not set our hearts on it, or any worldly thing; but looke up to God, and have our hope and our affections firmly set on him, whose beauties of holinesse shall not fade as the fa­shion of this world doth; but his glory endureth for ever.

Fourthly, we may here see, that the world was created for us, & Use 4. Not God, but we need the world. for our use, not for any need which God had of it; for God was infinitely blessed in himselfe without it, from all eternity: and certainly, in that God did not create it, and time with it, many thousands of yeares before he did, this is a strong evidence, that God is all-sufficient in himselfe, and hath for himselfe no need of any creature.

[Page 26] Lastly, it serves to make us hate sin, as the Divels poyson, and Use 5. Hare sin: Motives. turne from it, and be affraid to communicate with it, as wee doe with things created by God; because it is not of Gods forming, but is the corruption of mans nature poysoned and defaced: and all enmity, which is among the creatures, vexing and destroying one another, came in by sin; and all the pleasure which men take therein, is corrupt, sinfull, and against pure nature: Wherefore let us ascribe all deformity, disorder, and discord in the world to mans sin, as the proper cause thereof.

CHAP. III.

Of Creation immediate, and mediate. The Hebrew words expounded. Sundry Doctrines proposed, and made usefull. Some questions dis­cussed: 1. Of the time of the yeare, wherein the world was created. 2. Of the number of the yeares since this was. Of the highest hea­vens: 5. points proposed.

THe creation and creature in generall being described out of these words, and the rest of the history of the creation in this and the next Chapter, I proceed to the severall parts and speci­all branches of the creation, which I will unfold in that order in which they are here laid downe, and will describe the severall kinds of creatures, which God created together with the state and condition wherein God created them.

The worke of creation considered in generall, comprehends in it two speciall branches, as I have noted before.

The first is simple, absolute, and immediate creation, which is a giving of the first being to things simply and absolutely out of no­thing, when there is no matter at all to worke upon.

The second is a mediate and secondary creation, which is a gi­ving of the first being to things out of a rude, unfit, and undispo­sed matter; and that instantly, without any precedent altering, or disposing of the matter of which they are made.

Each of these consists of two subordinate branches: First, abso­lute creation is either a making of things perfect out of nothing, or a making of things imperfect out of nothing. Both these parts or branches are here laid downe in this first verse: Of them there­fore I purpose to speake out of these words; and for the better [Page 27] performance thereof, I will sift the words particularly in the first place, and so will come to the Doctrines.

And for the generall meaning of the words, I have thus far laid it open, That the first word [...], Bereshith, signifies the time The words expoun­ded. of the creation. The word [...], Bara, signifies properly creating of things out of nothing, or out of a rude matter fit for nothing, and uncapable of any essentiall forme. The word Elohim, inti­mates the Trinity of persons in the unity of essence. The word Heaven, is to be taken for the Heaven of heavens, or the highest heavens. And by the Earth, is meant the rude matter, out of which God framed the whole inferiour visible world. I now come to sift the words more particularly, so as that they may give light to this first speciall branch of creation, and to the two par­ticular parts thereof.

The first word [...], Bereshith, which is here translated in the I. beginning, may admit a threefold exposition: First, if we take the word [...], as sometimes it signifies in Scripture, for the chiefe or principall; or for the first fruits, which were the first and chie­fest of every thing; then this word may signifie either as the He­brew Rabbins expound it, Bereshith, in or for the chiefe, that is, for Israels sake, who were the chiefe of the Nations, and choice peo­ple of God, God created the heavens and the earth, and in them God laid the foundation of all things created: Or else Bereshith, in the first fruits, that is, in Christ, who is the chiefe and the first fruits of all; and for the elects sake in him, God created the hea­vens and the earth, as some Christians have expounded it. But if we take the word Reshith, as it is commonly taken in the Scrip­ture, for the first beginning of a thing; or the first part of the be­ing of it; or the first part and moment of time, wherein a thing comes to have being; then may this word (Bereshith) signifie the first part of time, wherein things created came to have being; or the first part of creation: and this may bee the meaning, that in the first part of time, or in the first part of the creation, God created the heavens and the earth; and the crea­tion of them was the first act of creation. This, as it is the expo­sition The be­ginning of time here meant. most commonly held, and generally received; so I take it to be the best and fittest, and that which the Spirit of God chiefly intended in this place: for though it is true, that God created all [Page 28] things in Christ, and for his sake, and his elects sake especially: yet here it stands with more reason, and is more agreeable to the scope of the place, to thinke, that the first part of time, or of the creation is meant: For first, it is manifest (as shall appeare here­after) Argum. 1. that here Moses doth not speake generally of the creation of all particulars, which are after named in the Chapter: Neither doth he by the heaven & the earth understand the whole world, & all the particulars therein contained; but by Heaven, is here meant the highest heaven; and by Earth, is meant the rude masse, out of which God framed the inferiour visible world. Now they onely were not created for Christs sake, but all other things also; and they onely were created in the first part or moment of time, and in the first beginning of the creation: therefore it stands with better reason to expound these words (in the beginning) for the first beginning of time, or the first part of the creation, which is the subject of this holy History; then to understand it of Christ, that in him, and for him, the heavens and rude earth was created, and for his elects sake, for whose use all other creatures also were created.

Secondly, the Scriptures themselves doe in other places, which 2 handle the same matter, expound this word for the first beginning of time, or the first part and moment of creation, as Psal. 102. 26. where David, speaking of the first foundation of the heavens, and the earth, saith, They were founded of old, that is, in the first time; for so the word [...] signifieth, which hee there useth in stead of this word Bereshith; and which is translated by the Apostle [...], in the beginning, Heb. 1. 10. and therefore it is manifest, that here this word notes unto us the time when this first act of crea­tion was performed, namely, the beginning or first part of time.

Some, who held that the highest heavens and the first rude masse of the earth were created from all eternity, and had their being long before the first beginning of time; doe here take this word Bereshith to signifie from all eternity, and doe thinke that so it may be translated; from eternity God created the heavens and earth. And to this purpose they bring an example, where the words (in the beginning) signifie from all eternity, to wit, Joh. 1. 1. where it is said, In the beginning was the Word, that is, from all eternity.

[Page 29] But this exposition may easily be confuted by other Scriptures; for Exod. 20. 11. God himselfe affirmeth, that in six daies he made heaven and earth, and all other creatures: and therefore the hea­vens were not created from all eternity, but in the beginning, in the first day of the creation. As for the words of the Evangelist, they may easily be answered; for indeed they doe not properly signifie eternity, but the first moment of time, in which God began to give being to his creatures. And yet take these words (in the be­ginning) joyntly together with other words, which immediately follow in the same sentence, and they necessarily imply and prove that the Word was eternall, and from all eternity, coeternall with God the Father: For hee who was already, and had a being with God, and was God, and made all things in the beginning, must needs be from all eternity, and before the first moment of time, in which he was not made nor created; but was, that is, had a be­ing already, yea was coeternall to the Father: Therefore these words (in the beginning) as the Evangelist useth them, doe signifie eternity; but in that he saith, The Word was, that is, had already a being with God in the beginning, when hee began to give being to all other things, this proves by necessary consequence, that the Word was eternall: and therefore the common exposition stands sure, that here the word (Bereshith) signifies the beginning, or first part of time.

The second word of this Text, that is, Bara, created, signifies II. the giving of first being to all things, either simply out of no­thing, or out of matter undisposed for the forme introduced (as I have noted before.) And by a Metaphor, it signifies great and mighty workes, which resemble the creation; but here it signifies absolute creation, or giving the first being to the highest heavens, and to the rude masse or matter of the visible world, out of meere nothing; for they were created of no matter before existing (as all doe hold) and of their creation onely this Verse speakes.

That the third word (Elohim) being of the plurall number, sig­nifies III. three persons in one God the Creatour; and that the creation was the worke of all the three persons in the Trinity, I have before shewed. Here let mee adde further a Cabalisticall proofe, gathered from the Hebrew word [...], which signifies the act of creation, and consists of three Hebrew letters, which are [Page 30] the first letters of the three Hebrew words [...] and [...], which signifie the Father, the Son, and the Spirit: And therefore if the Caballisticall art be of any credit, this act of creating is the work of all the three persons, the Father, the Son, and the holy Spirit, one and the same God.

The two last words, [...] and [...], the heaven and the earth, do IV. V. here signifie (as I have noted before) the highest heaven, and the earth which was without forme and void, that is, the rude masse and common matter of the visible world. Some learned men do by heaven and earth understand the whole world, in the same sense as the words are, Chapt. 2. 1. By heaven, they conceive the highest heaven, the visible starry heaven, and the whole firma­ment of the aire to be meant: by earth, the lowest globe of the earth, which hath the sea intermingled with it; and by creating, they understand the whole worke of creation in generall, and not that first speciall act, by which God made the highest hea­vens, and the rude masse and matter of the visible world onely. The main reason which they have to prove this, is drawn from the Hebrew Articles [...], which is joyned with [...], and [...], which is prefixed before the word [...], earth. The first of which Arti­cles consists of the first and last letter of the Hebrew Alphabet, and so implies an universall comprehension of all things, which were created both the first and the last. The other, to wit, [...], is of plaine demonstration, and sheweth that this heaven and earth, as they now stand, are said to be created here in these words. But this exposition is plainly overthrown by the Text it selfe, and the reason answered without any difficulty: First, the act of creation spoken of and intended in this Verse, is that which was perfor­med in the beginning, that is, in the first moment of time, so the Text affirmes: but the whole world, and all creatures in heaven and earth were not made in the first moment of time, nor in the first day, but in sixe daies; therefore the whole world is not meant in these words, nor all creatures in heaven and earth. Secondly, if the Article [...] be of generall comprehension, then each of these words should signifie the whole world; for it is added to each of them, and so the other word should be superfluous in this place. Thirdly, we may safely grant, that these words are of ge­nerall comprehension, and yet we need not expound them of any [Page 31] other heaven then the highest heaven, nor of any other earth then the first rude masse, out of which the whole visible world was made, which was without forme, and void, as it is testified in the next words, Verse 2. For this heaven did comprehend in it the highest heaven, and all the host and inhabitants of it, the Angels, actually. And this earth or rude masse did potentially compre­hend in it the whole visible world, which afterwards in the sixe daies was actually formed out of it: and therefore I take this to be the best exposition, to understand by the heaven, the highest heaven onely where the Angels and blessed Saints have their dwel­ling, together with the host thereof: And by the earth to under­stand (as the next Verse sheweth) the rude masse, out of which God after formed the whole visible and mutable world, consi­sting of the starry heavens, and of the aire, water, and earth with all things in them. As for them who here by heaven and earth understand the whole world, actually formed and made; and them, who understand the common seed and rude matter of the heavens, both highest and invisible, and also the visible heavens, and the inferiour world; they exclude out of this history of the creation, the distinct and speciall narration of the creation of the highest heavens, and of the glorious host thereof, the Angels and super-celestiall Spirits, contrary to that which Moses himselfe plainly teacheth, Chapt. 2. 1. where repeating summarily the whole creation in generall, which he had before distinctly related, and in all the parts thereof described in the first Chapter, he saith, Thus were the heavens and the earth finished, and all the host of them, that is, the Angels among the rest; for they are called the hea­venly host, Luke 2. 13.

From the words thus expounded, we may gather an excellent description of the first speciall act of creation, which is called simple and absolute creation, and of the two particular branches thereof, to wit,

That it is that act of creation, whereby God in the first begin­ning did create, and give the first being out of nothing to the highest heavens, and to the earth, that is, the first rude masse and matter of the visible world.

The parts of this act are two: The first is that act of simple cre­ation, by which God created out of nothing, and gave a most per­fect [Page 32] glorious being to the highest heaven, and to all things therein contained. The second is that act of simple creation, by which God gave the first imperfect being to that rude earth, the masse, which was the common matter, out of which hee formed the whole inferiour, visible, and mutable world.

In this description of the first act of simple creation, and of each branch thereof, wee may observe foure things: The first is the matter both generall and speciall, laid downe in the word Ba­ra, created. Secondly, the author of it, God the Father, Sonne, and holy Ghost, Elohim, three persons in one God. Thirdly, the time and order of it, in the beginning, Bereshith; it was the first act, performed in the first moment of time. The fourth is the object or effect, to wit, the things created, the heaven and the earth: The heaven is the object and effect of the first particular branch; the earth is the effect of the second. These foure things considered both joyntly together, and severally by themselves, doe afford unto us divers profitable instructions, and divers questions to be discussed, worthy of our consideration.

First, the matter and substance of this act, is a simple and abso­lute producing of reall and substantiall things out of nothing; yea creatures, which of all others were most perfect and glorious, to wit, the highest heavens, and the glorious Angels the eternall Spi­rits, which were made and placed there, to stand in the sight and presence of God. Now this offers to our consideration an excel­lent meditation of Gods infinite power and omnipotencie, shew­ing it selfe most cleerly in this first act of creation; for in that God, contrary to the course of all other the most cunning Arti­ficers, did immediately and absolutely of himselfe, and by him­selfe alone create, and make out of nothing in the first begin­ning, the most perfect creatures of all, even the highest heavens, and the glorious Angels and eternall Spirits; and so the first act of creation was the most perfect and complete act of all. This teacheth us, that God is of himselfe infinite, omnipotent, and all Doct. 1. By the creation God is seen to be infinitely wise, and powerfull. sufficient in power and in wisdome, able to doe all things, and to performe and bring to passe by his owne mighty hand, instantly, without any help, counsell, or advice of any other, the greatest, and most perfect, and glorious workes which can be done, named, or imagined in heaven and earth. Wee find by experience and [Page 33] reason, that all Artificers, before they have in and of themselves skill and power sufficient to bring to passe the workes which be­long to their art, doe first practise by the direction of others in smaller matters; and by use and practice grow more skilfull, and so proceed to greater and more perfect workes: and because the most cunning and exquisite workmen in the world are limited in their power and skill to one thing at once, neither can their minds intend, nor their understandings conceive, nor their hands performe all things at once, which are required for the perfor­mance of a perfect worke; therefore in every such worke they proceed by time, leasure, and degrees: first, laying a foundation of matter; secondly, forming and framing of every severall part; thirdly, fitly composing of all parts together in one, and so bring­ing the worke to consummation and perfection. And so God must have done in the creation, if hee had not been infinite in power, and all-sufficient: If his wisdome and power had been li­mited, he must have begun with smaller workes, and ascended by degrees; and in every worke hee must first have either bor­rowed matter from others, or made it himselfe for to worke upon. Secondly, he must have fitted the matter, to receive a fit forme. Thirdly, he must have introduced the forme into every part, and have composed all together into one perfect creature: But we see all was contrary; he performed the greatest and most perfect worke at the first, even the most glorious heavens, and the eternall Spirits, which are durable, and abide for ever; therein he set up his glorious throne, and made an habitation for his blessed Saints and Angels. He shewed that he was all-sufficient in him­selfe for the greatest worke, because he did performe it of him­selfe, before there was any but himselfe, and no creature made to help him. He did not by degrees get his skill, but at the first shewed the best worke, and performed it in an instant: And therefore in this first act of creation, we may see, as in a cleere glasse, the infinite wisdome and omnipotencie of God. This truth is also strongly confirmed by firme proofes from other Scrip­tures, as Job 37. 23. Elihu, that wise unreproved friend of God, full of the Spirit, doth from this very ground, namely, the won­derfull creation of the heavens and other things, conclude the omnipotencie and infinite wisdome of God, that he is Shaddai, [Page 34] the Almighty, All-sufficient, that he is excellent in power and judgement, and that we cannot find him out by reason of his in­comprehensible wisdome and power. So also Job 38. 1. and 40. 2. God himselfe doth from the creation of the heavens, and the An­gels full of glory, and shouting for joy, and from his making and ordering of all things most wisely prove, that hee himselfe the Creatour is Almighty, one who cannot be instructed nor repro­ved, and against whom none can contend. And Job himselfe, Job 42. 2. upon the same ground and consideration is moved to con­fesse, that he knowes God to be able to doe every thing, and that he is infinite in wisdome and knowledge; that no thought can be withholden from him, and that the things of God are too won­derfull for him to know. The Prophet David also, Psal. 8. 1, 2. from the consideration of Gods glory, which he hath set above the visible heavens, in the highest heavens; and from the excel­lent nature of the Angels, weighed with himselfe, doth break out into an admiration of Gods excellent greatnesse, thereby made knowne; and wonders that hee, so mighty a one, should regard poore man at all; who, though the chiefe of visible creatures, is but a worme, and as nothing before God: Lord, saith he, how excellent is thy Name in all the world, who hast set thy glory above the heavens! When I consider the heavens, the worke of thy fingers, I say, Lord, what is man, that thou art mindfull of him, or the son of man that thou visitest him? And Psal. 19. 1. The heavens (saith he) declare the glory of God, that is, the glorious attributes of his omnipotencie and infinite wisdome. And most fully and plainly doth the Apostle Paul speak to this purpose in a few words, Rom. 1. 20. saying, that the invisible things of God, even his eternall power and Godhead from the creation are cleerly seen, being understood by the things which are made.

The consideration of which truth serves first to incite us, and al­so Use 1. Look up to the omnipo­tencie of the Crea­tour. direct us, to make a right and profitable use of Gods first act of creation, by putting us in mind, that it is not enough for us in reading the history of it, to think of it only as of some great work, and to content our selves with the bare and naked understanding and remembrance of the glorious heavens and Angels, thereby created and made; but that we all ought, by meditating upon the excellency and absolute perfection of that first worke above the rest which followed, to be lifted up unto that further meditation [Page 35] of the omnipotencie and infinite wisdome of God, and of his power and ability to doe all things, and to bring into perfect be­ing any most excellent worke at his pleasure, whensoever he will; And hereby to be stirred up and encouraged to rejoyce mo [...] a­boundantly To re­joyce and [...]est in him. in the Lord our Creatour, to rest more confidently on him, when we have committed our selves to his protection, and he hath received us under the shadow of his wings, and to hope for all blessings which he hath promised; and for the performance of all his promises in due time and season, without hinderance or resistance of any power. As all created things were made for some end, and whatsoever is not fit to serve for some speciall end is a meer vanity; so the knowledge of things, without the know­ledge of the end and use of them, is a vaine notion swimming in the braine: and therefore the maine thing which we ought to drive at in seeking the profitable knowledge of things, is to know and understand the speciall use of them. Now Gods creating of the highest heavens, and the host of them in glorious perfection by himselfe alone, in the first act of creation in the beginning, doth serve most properly, naturally, and necessarily to shew the infinite wisdome and omnipotencie of God the Creatour (as is before proved) that we seeing therein these divine attributes of God as in a glasse, may rejoyce in him, and rest securely on his promises, knowing that he will performe and fulfill his word, and none can resist him: Wherefore let us study to make this right use, that our knowledge may be sound and saving, and may bring us on to salvation.

Secondly, this may justly smite our hearts, and make us asha­med Use 2. Bewaile the con­trary neg­ligence. of our owne dulnesse and negligence in this point, in that we all, or the most part of us have so often read, heard, remembred, and understood in reading and hearing the Word of God, this great worke of creating the heavens and heavenly host, and have beleeved it, and spoken of it, and so have passed it over, without seeing, beholding, and considering in it the wisdome, power, and glory of God. Alas, there be few amongst us, who have taken care to look so farre into the end and use of these things of God; and that is the cause, that science abounds without conscience, and much knowledge goeth alone without any sound or sincere pra­ctise. O let us be throughly ashamed of our negligence in the [Page 36] times past, which is too much indeed; and let us labour to re­deem the time hereafter by double diligence, studying to see Gods glory in those great workes; and seeing, to admire his wisdome, and to adore his heavenly Majesty.

Thirdly, Gods truth in this doctrine beleeved and embraced, is Use 3. Checks all Athei­sticall thoughts of Gods power. a strong Antidote against all Atheisticall thoughts, which possesse the hearts of divers dull and carnall people, who cannot conceive thoroughly, nor fully beleeve, but often doubt of Gods omni­potencie and ability, to create in a moment out of meere nothing most perfect and glorious creatures, such as are Angels and bles­sed spirits, and the heaven of heavens. Such doubts are the cause that they cannot beleeve in God, rest on his power, and be confi­dent in him in cases of extremity, when the whole world seems to be against them, and all outward helps faile. If they did but discerne the power of God, by the first simple act of creation, they might know and beleeve, that hee out of nothing can raise more help then they can desire or stand in need of in their greatest ex­tremities.

Secondly, in that here in the first act of creation, performed in Doct. 2. The three persons [...] are equal the first beginning of all things, and in the first moment of time, God the Creatour is described by the name Elohim, which signifies a plurality of persons in the unity of essence (as I have before pro­ved) and this act is ascribed to all the three persons equally in one and the same word: Hence we may gather a necessary doctrine concerning the consubstantiality, equality, and eternity of all the three persons in the sacred Trinity, to wit, That the three persons, the Father, the Son, and the holy Ghost are all co-eternall, and without beginning, all equall among themselves, and consubstan­tiall, of the same undivided nature and substance, three persons di­stinct in one infinite eternall Jehovah. For plaine reason tells us, that whatsoever had no being given to it, in or after the first be­ginning of creatures, but was, and had a being already in the first beginning, and before any thing was made, yea, was the authour and maker of the first worke of all; that must needs be of abso­lute eternity, every way eternall, without any beginning or end at all. Now such are all the three persons in the blessed Trinity, they all by this word (Elohim) are shewed to be equall in the first act of creation; and so to be before the first beginning of all [Page 37] things, as the authour and cause before the worke and effect, they all are declared to be one and the same singular God and undivi­ded essence: and therefore this Doctrine doth hence truly arise. I need not here againe stand upon further proofe of it; for that I have done aboundantly already, in expounding the Doctrine of the Trinity.

Onely the consideration of this truth may serve first to con­vince Use 1. Against Antitrini­taries. all Heretickes of horrible errour and blasphemy, who deny either the Creatour of the world to be the true God; or the Son, and the Spirit to be equall, co-eternall, and of the same substance with the Father; as the Arians and others did. Behold here the blasphemous fictions of these men cut off before they shoot forth, and rooted up before they were sowne, by this first act of crea­tion, as it is here described by the Spirit of God: and therefore let us hate and abhorre all such dreames and fictions, as most monstrous and unnaturall, damned in Gods booke, from the first words of the history of the first creation.

Secondly, let us even from this furthest ground fetch the all-sufficiencie Use 2. Trust in Christ, & the holy Spirit. of our Mediatour and Redeemer Christ, and the effi­cacie and perfection of his full satisfaction, that we may rest on him confidently without scruple, feare, or doubting. As also the infinite power of the Spirit, that we may rest in his strength for perseverance. If the Son Christ, or the Spirit were inferiour Gods, and of an inferiour nature, not infinite nor co-eternall with the Father, men might have some colour of diffidence, and some cause to doubt of sufficient satisfaction, redemption, and stedfast perseverance. But here we see the contrary, that the Son if the Word, by whom all things were made; and the Son and Spirit one, the John 1. same God and Creatour with the Father; and the Spirit as he is in the regenerate, is greater every way then he that is in the world, 1 John 4. therefore let us comfort our selves in the all-sufficiencie of Christ for full redemption, and of the Spirit for sanctification and perseverance.

Thirdly, in that here the first act of creation, even the creation The time, In the be­ginning. of the highest heavens with the host of them, and of the com­mon matter of the visible world out of nothing, is said to be per­formed in the beginning, that is, in the first part or moment of [Page 38] time. Hence some profitable Doctrines arise, and here some que­stions offer themselves to be discussed.

First, we here are taught, That the whole world, and all things Doctr. The world, and all in it, had a be­ginning. therein, even the highest and most durable heavens, and the first matter of the visible world had a beginning, and were not from all eternity, as some Heathen Philosophers imagined. This Do­ctrine, as it is plainly affirmed in this Text, which alone is proofe sufficient; so other Scriptures doe aboundantly prove and con­firme it: John 17. 24. our Saviour saith, that God the Father lo­ved him before the foundation of the world. Ephes. 1. 4. the Apostle saith, that God hath chosen us in Christ before the foundation of the world: And 1 Pet. 1. 20. it is said, that Christ was ordained before the foundation of the world: And Prov. 8. 23. the Wisdome of God saith, I was set up from everlasting, before the earth was, or ever the heavens were prepared. These and such other Scriptures, which mention things before the first beginning and foundation of the world, doe most evidently shew, that neither the world, nor any part thereof was from eternity; but with time, and in time be­gan. And if this be not sufficient to satisfie Atheists, who refuse to beleeve God or his Word, naturall reason it selfe is able to prove it against them, by their owne Principles which they grant.

First, they acknowledge, that whatsoever is corruptible or mu­table Reas. 1. by nature, must needs have a beginning, and cannot be eter­nall: Now it is manifest, that the whole world, and all things therein, are by nature corruptible, and changeable; and whatsoe­ver therein is constant, unchangeable and incorruptible, it is so, not by any naturall power in it selfe, but of the free grace of God in Christ. The Angels, the most glorious creatures, and the spirits and soules of men, which are created of nothing, they are changeable by nature, as appeares by the fall of the Divell, and mans fall and corruption: and therefore it is said, that hee charged his Angels with folly, to wit, them that did fall; and to the rest which stand he added light, even supernaturall light of his sancti­fying Spirit, Job 5. And although the wisest of the Heathen Phi­losophers did gather from the constant course of the visible hea­vens and the starres, that the heavens were incorruptible and un­changeable; [Page 39] yet experience hath taught the contrary, and it is found by long observation of Astronomers, that there are many fixed starres, and strange comets or blazing starres, generated in the heavens farre above the Moon, which appeare for a time, and after doe vanish away, as the late blazing starre, in Anno 1618. was found to be by certaine demonstration. But for the inferiour Elements under heaven, and the creatures therein; every eye sees them to be in daily change and alteration, and to have no con­stancie in them: Therefore the world is not from all eternity.

Secondly, that which is eternall, hath no cause subsisting be­fore Reas. 2. it; nor any superiour to over-rule, order, and dispose it, but is absolute of it selfe: And that which hath such a preceding and superiour cause, authour, and disposer, must needs have and receive a beginning from another. Now such is the world, and all things therein; the world, and the whole course of it is over-ruled and disposed by God, as every eye may see: For whereas it is the na­ture of Summer to be hot, when the Sunne, which is the fountain and cause of light and heat, is most present with us; God, at his pleasure, for the sins of men, doth turne our Summers heats into cold Winter stormes, and doth drown our Harvests with immo­derate raine, in the midst of the dry scorching dog-daies, as we have found of late yeares: So hee makes fruitfull lands barren, Psal. 107. when they are best tilled; and the barren wildernesse hee turnes into a fruitfull field, and the desart into springs of water. Also daily experience doth teach us, that things which naturally serve for health, are sometimes turned to poyson; that which enrich­eth one, doth impoverish another: and that which hurteth one, doth help another. All which shew, that God over-rules the world, and that all things are under his hand, and he is the su­preme cause and disposer of all: Yea, if we observe all parts of the world, we shall see, that the earth and the sea are ruled much by the heavens, and the heavens are moved by some superiour power: Therefore the world is not eternall, without cause or begin­ning.

These and such arguments and experiments convinced the Heathen Philosophers and Poets, and forced them to confesse, that the world was not eternall; but made in the beginning of time, as appeares in Hermes, Trismegistos, Pythagoras, Plato, Or­pheus, [Page 40] Sophocles, Homer, and others. And even Aristotle himselfe, though he affirmed stiffely the worlds eternity, and did oppose the fictions of Plato and others, concerning the making of the world of a matter which was before existing, and without begin­ning; yet at length he was forced to confesse, and doth in divers of his bookes, that God is the authour and preserver of the whole universall world, as appeares lib. de mundo, & lib. 2. de gener. & corr.

This admonisheth us, not to set our hearts on the world, nor Use 1. Love not the world, being so movable. content our soules with such things as are therein; but to looke up higher to a better portion, if we desire full satisfaction, and true contentment and felicity indeed. He that builds on a foun­dation, which of it selfe may faile, and needs a supporter it selfe, he can never dwell safely and securely, but in continuall feare, that his house will fall on his head; neither can he sleep in peace, till he hath laid a deeper and surer foundation under that. Now here we see the world is a moveable foundation, it was not from eternity, but had a beginning; and the being of it hangs on an higher cause, even God: And therefore let us not set our hearts on the world, nor make it our portion; but looke up to God, and set our affections on him, and seeke to him to be our portion: for he onely can fill our soules, and he is, and hath been, and shall be for ever the same; and in him is no variablenesse, nor shadow of turning.

Secondly, this truth serves to arme us against all temptations of Sathan, and all cunning sophistications of Atheists, which tend Use 2. Arme a­gainst A­theisme. to shake our faith in this point of the worlds beginning; and to make us thinke, that the world hath been from all eternity, we have here a sure foundation from Gods infallible Word, and strong reasons also to confirme our hearts in this doctrine: and therefore let no cavills of opposers trouble our hearts: Yea, that we may more cleerly see, and more firmly beleeve this truth without doubting, I will briefly shew the weaknesse of the best As in some Ob­jections answered. arguments, which are brought to the contrary; and so will re­move those clouds and mists out of the way, which seem to eclipse the truth.

The most weighty Objections are gathered from Scrip­ture Object. 1. termes and phrases: as for example, from the name which the Scripture giveth to the world, and the ages thereof, to wit, [Page 41] [...], which comes of [...] and [...], and signifies a being alwaies: for so the world is called, Heb. 11. 3. Also 2 Tim. 1. 9. and Tit. 1. 2. the times of the world are called [...], everlasting times, as the Greek words signifie.

The word [...], everlasting, is two waies taken in Scripture, Answ. and in humane writings also: First, it signifies an eternall being, without beginning or end, even a being before and after all times; and so God onely is called [...], everlasting, 1 Tim. 6. 16. and the Spirit is called [...], eternall, Heb. 9. 14.

Secondly, this word signifies a being in all times, from the first beginning to the last end of time, but no more, not before nor after; and thus the world, and the ages thereof are called ever­lasting, [...]. The places objected prove this sense; because in them the Apostle sheweth, that these everlasting times had some­thing going before them, and were but times which have a be­ginning and end: And therefore these objected places make much for this doctrine, and not against it.

The Objections of Aristotle are drawne, 1. from incorruptibi­lity, Object. 2. which he imagined to be in the heavens: 2. from this, that the world was not generated nor made of any pre-existent mat­ter, neither, could be brought into being, by any naturall genera­tion: 3. from the eternity of motion, which he thought to prove by this, That no motion can be found in nature, but hath another motion going before it.

All these may easily be answered: for first, the heavens are cor­ruptible Answ. by nature, and the visible heavens shall perish: and that the highest heavens are incorruptible, it is not by power of their nature, but of the will of God, preserving them.

Secondly, though the world was not made of matter pre-ex­istent, nor by naturall generation; yet it may have a beginning supernaturall, being created miraculously of nothing by Gods om­nipotent hand, as all miraculous things are done, which never­thelesse are not eternall, nor endure for ever.

Thirdly, though in naturall things we find no motion, which hath not another motion going before it; yet it is not so in the creation, which was a worke farre above the course of nature: so that these Objections are of no force to disprove this doctrine. All that Aristotle with his subtle wit could devise, was nothing but [Page 42] this, That the world was not made by the course of nature, nei­ther did come into being by naturall generation, nor was framed out of an eternall masse of matter, as Plato and other Philoso­phers dreamed. Also that there was no time before the world, neither shall there be any time, wherein the world shall not be; and that the world is as durable, and lasteth as long as all times; all which we grant without feare; and yet it doth not follow that the world is eternall: For that is properly eternall, which ne­ver had beginning, neither in time, nor with time, nor before time; but as for time it selfe, it hath a beginning and an end, as I shall shew in the next place: Therefore let us hate and abhorre all Atheisticall dreames of the worlds eternity.

The second thing which I observe from this word Bereshith, in the beginning (which signifieth in this place the first being or mo­ment Doctr. 2. T [...] had [...] b [...]gin­ning. of time) is this, That time it selfe is but an adjunct, or cir­cumstance of things created, and had a beginning, and shall have an end with the mutable and moveable world. For proofe of this we need seek no further but to the fifth Verse, where it is said, The evening and the morning were the first day, that is, time was produced by the Word of God, even the first day together with the things therein created; and so it followes of all the daies of the first weeke, they are said to be made with the workes created in them.

And indeed in reason it must needs be so; because time is no­thing else but the continuance of things created and the measure of the motions which are in the created world, a day is the mea­sure of the Suns course from East to West, and round about to the East againe: An houre is the time in which the Sun runs the foure and twentieth part of his dayes motion: A weeke is the space of seven daies, and a yeare the time whi [...]e the Sun goeth his course through the twelve Signes of the Zodiack; and the whole time of the world consists of yeares moneths and daies. Now all these had a beginning, and have an end; yea, there was no day till light and darknesse were made and distinguished; no moneth nor yeare till the Sunne and the Moon were set in their course: therefore time had a beginning, and is not eternall. There were some things before all times and ages of the world, 2 Tim. 1. 9. Tit. 1. 2.

[Page 43] First, this serves to admonish us, to cast off all vaine thoughts Use 1. and imaginations of time going before the creation of the world. It is the folly of many, when they reade of the worlds creation but so many thousand yeares ago, to dreame of time be­fore creation, and to question what God did in that time? A witty old man did once answer this question (as Saint Austin saith) ra­ther tauntingly then solidly, viz. That God in those times was ma­king an hell for such curious inquisitors: But the true answer is, there was no time nor any thing to be done in time; but God was only in himselfe most blessed by contemplation of himselfe in absolute eternity, in which there is, neither before nor after, no beginning nor end: For where there was no day nor night, nor haven to move, nor any thing to be measured by time, there could be no time at all.

Secondly, this truth serves to make us see our owne vanity, and Use 2. See thy own wea [...] ­nesse. the weaknesse of our owne reason and understanding. Let a man of the strongest braine and wit, and the deepest reach in the world, doe what he can, and strive and straine to the utmost, he shall not by hum [...]ne reason and capacity conceive, how any thing can be without time. How God could be before the world, when there was no time; or what eternity should be, but a long time without beginning or end. And yet this is Gods truth, as my Text saith, which cannot lye, that time was not till the creation: Let us therefore here learne to see our owne weaknesse, and the short reach of our reason. Let us acknowledge, that while wee have our soules imprisoned in our mortall bodies, looking onely through the narrow grates of our outward senses, we shall never be able to see, or to comprehend things spirituall and eternall so as they are. And let this put us in mind to be humble here, and to rest in hope, that the eternity, and the eternall joyes of heaven are such, as neither eye hath seen, nor eare heard, nor mans heart con­ceived: 1 Cor. 2. 9. And let us labour to walke by faith, and not by sight, as the Apostle saith; 2 Cor. 5. 7. So much for the Doctrines.

There be also two questions which here offer themselves to be discussed: The first is, What time of the yeare the world was crea­ted, and which day & moneth were the first of the world; without the knowledge of this we cannot exactly tell how long it is since the world was created. The second is, How long it is since that first [Page 44] beginning, wherein God created the heavens and the earth: For Moses doth carefully set them downe untill his time; and so also doe the succeeding Prophets, which sheweth, that this knowledge is not to be neglected.

For the first question: Some hold, that the world was created in September, in the time of the Autumnall equinoctiall. Others, Quest. 1. that it was created in the Spring time, and in March, when the day and night are equall, and of one length in all the world. Both these opinions are maintained by reasons and arguments produced out of Gods Word; but the reasons which are brought to prove the latter opinion, I conceive to be more strong and so­lide: and therefore I doe incline to beleeve, that the world was created in the Spring time, and not in Autumne; and that o­thers The world began in the Spring may be better confirmed in this truth, I will propound the reasons on both sides, and will answer the one, and confirme the other.

The maine Arguments which tend to prove, that the world was created in September, are foure especially: The first, because Argum. 1. September was from the beginning observed and accounted for the first moneth of the yeare, both by the Israelites and Fore­fathers, and also by the Egyptians and other Nations: For Exod. 12. 2. it appeares, that March for a speciall reason was made the first moneth to the Israelites; because in that moneth they came out of Egypt. And that till then both they and the Egyptians ac­counted September the first moneth.

I answer, that the Egyptians did erroneously begin their yeare in Autumne; and the Israelites living with them, did for civill Answ. respects follow their account: And therefore, when they were to depart out of Egypt, God did both reach and command them the right observation in Abib, or March, Exod. 12. 2. and called them to the true ancient and originall forme of beginning the yeare in the Vernall equinoctiall, which is in Abib, that is, March: Yea, the Caldeans and Persians, who were of better credit then the Egyptians, did alwaies from the beginning account March the first moneth of the yeare: therefore this Argument is of no force.

Secondly, they argue, that September was the moneth, wherein Argum. 2. the yeare of Rest, and the yeare of Jubile did begin by Gods ap­pointment, [Page 45] as appeares, Levit. 25. 9. for on the tenth day of that moneth, God commanded the Israelites to sound the Trumpet of Jubile in all the land, and so to begin their yeare of Jubile and Release: Therefore that is the true beginning from the crea­tion.

I answer to this two waies: First, that as the yeare of Rest was Answ. not the first, but the seventh, and the last of the seven; and the yeare of Jubile was the next year after seven Sabbaths of years: So the Lord did still follow the number of seven, and would have it begin in September; because it was the seventh moneth, and not the first by the order of creation. Secondly, the moneth of September, when all the fruit is taken from the ground, and men begin to sow and plant for the next yeare, is the fittest time for to begin the yeare of Rest, and of Jubile, wherein every man was to re-enter into his land which he had sold, as appeares, Vers. 10, 11. and this was the cause of beginning in September; not because it was the first moneth of the world, and of the yeare, reckoned from the creation: but because it was the fittest for men to give up the land empty to the owners, when they had ga­thered in the corne and fruit, and cleared the ground: and so this Argument is of no force.

Thirdly, they argue, That the time wherein all things naturally Argum. 3. come to prefection, is most likely to be the time, wherein God created the world, and all things therein perfect in their kind, and that is Autumne and September, as experience teacheth: There­fore it is most likely to be the first moneth from the creation.

This Argument is divers waies defective: First, the state of the Answ. world in the creation, was far different from that state of things which now is ever since mans fall and corruption: Then all times were both Spring and Harvest, and trees did both blossome and beare perfect fruit at all times of the yeare: Therefore no cer­taine Argument can arise from this ground. Secondly, if any time be more perfect then another, and retaine perfection from the creation, it is most likely to be the Spring time; for in the Spring all things begin to revive, and shoot forth of the earth, as they did in the creation: then are the fields most fresh and green, and full of beautifull flowers, as in the state of innocency. And as for Summer and Harvest, they doe but ripen things which the [Page 46] Spring hath quickened and nourished, and hasten them to cor­ruption, and not to perfection, causing them to die and wither: Yea verily, if the earth had not been cursed for mans sin, it would now bring forth in the Spring not onely flowers, and blossomes, and Spring fruits; but also all other kinds of fruit: Therefore this is a weak Argument.

As for their fourth Argument, which is Cabalisticall, drawne Argum. 4. from the Hebrew word [...], which signifieth, in September; agreeing with [...], which signifieth, in the beginning, in the same letters, I have answered it before, and shewed that they differ in one letter, to wit ( [...],) and therefore it is but a fal­lacie. Answ.

But now for the beginning of the yeare naturally in the moneth of March, which is called by the Hebrewes Abib and Ni­san, as being the moneth in which the world was created, and that the world was created in the Vernall equinoctiall, when day and night were equall in all the world, divers of the Ancients affirme and hold, as Athanasius, Ambrose, Theodoret, Cyril, Damascene, Beda, and others; and with them many judicious and learned Di­vines of later times doe concurre, as Junius, Polanus, and others: Their reasons are very strong, forcible, and convincing, which cannot be gain-said.

First, they prove it out of the Scriptures, Gen. 8. 13. where that moneth is called the first of the yeare, by account from the creati­on, Argum. 1. wherein the waters were dried up from the earth; and it be­gan to bring forth fruit for Noah, and the creatures with him: so that in the next moneth there was food for him & the creatures, and birds and beasts began to breed and multiply in the earth. Now that could not be in September and October, when the fruits and herbes begin to decay and wither. Certainly, Noah tur­ned not out the creatures against Winter to seek food from the earth; that was no time to breed aboundantly. It is March, where­in the earth begins to bring forth; and April, the second moneth, is that wherein the creatures, comming out of the Arke, might find grasse, herbes, and other food; and Noah might sow and plant against Summer and Harvest: Therefore undoubtedly March is the first moneth from the creation.

Secondly, they prove it from Exod. 12. 2. where God recalls the Argum. 2. [Page 47] Israelites from the Egyptian observation, to the old beginning of the yeare from the creation; and to account Abib, or March, the first moneth, as the Text sheweth.

Thirdly, the Spring time is every way fittest for the beginning Argum. 3. of the world, and of the naturall yeare: then things begin to flourish in all the earth, as they did in the creation; then is the aire most temperate and healthfull for the bodies of men, as it was in the creation; then day and night are equall in all the world, and the daies begin to grow longer then the night in the country of Eden and Babylonia, which was the place of Paradise, where Adam was created. But in September, daies begin to shorten, and all herbes to wither, and fruits to fall from the trees: There­fore March is the fittest moneth for the time of the creation.

Fourthly, the Caldeans, Persians, and all cunning Astronomers Argum. 4. did by their art and skill discerne, and by tradition from the first fathers were taught, that March was the first moneth of the year, and that in the Spring time the world was created.

To these let me adde one Argument more, drawne from the in­carnation Argum. 5. and passion of Christ: For it is most likely, that the moneth, in which God appointed Christ to be incarnate by con­ception in the wombe of the Virgin, and also to suffer for the worlds redemption, was the moneth and season of the yeare, in which the world was created: For so the time, in which God sent forth his Son, made of a woman, and made under the Law, and to redeem them that were under the Law, comes to be the fulnesse of time, as the Apostle calls it, Galat. 4. 4. Now this was the moneth of March: for Christ being borne on the shortest day of the yeare (as Saint Austen and the Ancients, who lived within a August. in serm. de na­tal. Dom. few ages after Christ, by tradition had learned, and did teach) must needs be conceived in March, nine moneths before, in the Vernall equinoctiall. And in the same moneth hee suffered for our redemption; and rising from death, triumphed over death, the Divell, and all the powers of darknesse; even at the time of the Passover (as the Gospel testifieth) which feast was kept in the first moneth Abib, Exod. 12. 2. and 13. 4. that is, in March, as all con­fesse. And so we see Gods performing of his promise in the ful­nesse of time, was his keeping of his word to a day, giving Christ to be conceived in the very day of the yeare, wherein he was pro­mised [Page 48] to our first parents, and to suffer for Adams sinne in the same day of the weeke, and of the moneth, in which Adam was made, and marr'd by sin (as some of the learned Fathers have ob­served.) Even as he delivered Israel out of Egypt, at the end of 430. yeares, on the selfe same day, when the terme of yeares was accomplished, Exod. 12. 41. Therefore I conceive that the time of the creation, and of the fall of our first Parents, and of the first promise of Christ, was in the same first moneth, in which he was conceived, and also perfected mans redemption, that is, in Abib, the moneth of March; and so he was sent forth in fulnesse of time, as the Apostle saith.

The second question which ariseth from the word Beginning, is about the number of yeares, which have been since the creati­on: Quest. 2. For if there was a beginning of things, in which the world was created, as the Text here sheweth; then there must be a cer­taine number of yeares since that beginning which number if we can find out, and prove from Scripture, it will much confirme us in the truth of the creation, and of the whole History of Gods Word. Now about this number of years there is much difference among the learned: but the best computation is that which is grounded on those testimonies of Scripture, which doe most ex­cellently chaine together the holy Chronicle; and by that com­putation the world was created 3960. yeares before the death of Christ; and the day of Adams fall being upon the sixth day of the weeke, even towards the evening of the same day, wherein he was created, was that day 3960. yeares before the day of Christs death, which also was on the sixth day of the weeke, in the same moneth of the yeare. To confirme us in this truth, wee have most excellent testimonies of Scripture: First, the age of Adam, when he begat Seth, counted together with the ages of the suc­ceeding fathers, before the birth of their succeeding sons, make up in all unto the birth of Noah from Adams creation, 1056. years, Gen. 5. and from Noahs birth to the Floud, is 600. yeares, that is in all, 1656. yeares, from the Creation to the Floud.

Arphaxad the son of Shem, borne two yeares after the Floud, Gen. 11. 10. his birth (as the ages of the Fathers from him to Te­rah there reckoned doe shew) was before Terah's death 425. yeares. Now the two yeares between his birth and the Floud, to­gether [Page 49] with the said number of 425. being added to the yeares before the Floud, make up from the creation to the death of Te­rah, 2083. yeares. Immediately after Terah's death God called Abraham, and removed him out of Charan, into the land of Ca­naan; but gave him no inheritance therein, but onely promised to give it to him, and his seed for a possession, Act. 7. 4, 5. and that in his seed all the families of the earth should be blessed, Gen. 12. 1, 2, 3. and this promise was 430. yeares before the Law was given by Moses, Galat. 3. 17. which was immediately after the departure of Israel out of Egypt, that is, the fiftieth day after; when they and their fathers, from Abrahams first peregrination in Canaan, had sojourned 430. years, Exod. 12. 40. And from Israels coming out of Egypt, to the building of the Temple, in the fourth yeare of Solomons reigne, is 480. yeares, 1 Kin: 6. 1. from thence, to the death of Solomon, is 36. yeares. Then Israel departed from Judah, and continued 390. yeares in their iniquities, Ezech. 4. 1, 2. to the destruction of Jerusalem, and burning of the Temple, 19. yeares after the beginning of the 70. yeares captivity; from the end of which captivity, to Christs death, is seventy sevens of yeares, Da­niel 9. that is, 490. yeares, all which make 3960. yeares, from the creation. Now from Christs death, which was in the 33. yeare of his age, or 33. after his birth, it is in this present yeare 1623. the full number of 1590. yeares, which being added to 3960. be­fore Christs death, make from the creation 5550. yeares.

Now this computation of yeares, together with the clearing of the former question, may serve

First, to discover unto us divers waies the admirable providence Use 1. Gods pro­vidence to be no­ted and admired. of God, in that he doth so order all things, that the time of the incarnation of Christ, the second Adam, should fall in the same moneth with the creation of the first Adam: and the day of re­demption from sinne and death, should be the same day of the week, and of the moneth, with the day of Adams falling into sin, and bringing all mankind into bondage to hell and death. And that in the holy Scriptures, which were written by holy men of God in severall ages, the true computation of times and yeares should be put upon record, and reserved and kept safe through all ages untill this day, in the midst of so many dangers, and among so many alterations and changes which have happened in the [Page 50] world. Surely, he who is so provident in ordering the circum­stance of times, and preserving the records of them, even his holy Oracles, when the Nation of Jewes, to whom they were com­mitted in trust, is cast off, and scattered over all the earth, will much more keep his promises, and fulfill all prophecies and pre­dictions, every one in the set time and season which he hath ap­pointed.

Secondly, this exact record of times, and of the very moneth of Use 2. Truth of creation and re­demption hereby de­monstra­ted. the creation and of the redemption, serves to confirme us in the verity and truth of those things which are written concerning the beginning and creation of the world, and the redemption of mankind by Jesus Christ, comming in the exact fulnesse of time to redeem the world, according to Gods promises; when severall witnesses or writers, who never conferred nor consulted one with another, doe agree in their relations, not only in the maine mat­ters, but in the circumstances of time also; no man can have any least pretence or colour of doubting. And thus doe the writers of the holy Scriptures, who lived in severall ages; they exactly agree in the histories of creation and redemption, even to the circum­stances of times, the very daies and moneths wherein they were performed. And therefore let us firmly beleeve them, and rest on the truth of them: for we have sure grounds of beleeving, but not any pretence or colour of doubting.

Thirdly, hereby it is made manifest; that the world being crea­ted in time, and onely so long ago as is before shewed, was made Use 3. All made for us, and to be used for God. onely for us, and for our benefit, who live under time, and not for the eternall God, to adde any good, or any blessednesse to him, who was all-sufficient and most blessed in himselfe from all eternity; and both could, and would have made the world mil­lions of yeares before, if it might have been profitable to him­selfe: Wherefore let us hereby be stirred up to use the world as a gift, and as talents given to us by God, to be well imployed, and study to honour him by all worldly things created.

Fourthly, hereby we may justly be moved to admire the eter­nity of God, when we see the whole time of the world to be but Use 4. Note and admire Gods e­ternity. Psal. 102. 25, 26. 5550. yeares, which are before him but as 5. daies and an halfe (For a thousand yeares with him are but as one day, 2 Pet. 3. 8.) Wherefore, as holy David, when hee compared Gods eternity [Page 51] with the temporary being of the heavens and the earth, and their inclining to decay and changes, like a vesture and wearing garment, did admire Gods infinite and eternall Majesty: So let us all be af­ter the same manner affected with reverence of God, and admi­ration of his eternity, when we compare the ages of the world, even the longest of them, the thousands of yeares since the creati­on, to be but as so many daies with the Lord, who liveth and abi­deth the same for ever.

The fourth thing in this Text is the object and effect of Gods 4. first worke of creation, to wit, the heavens and the earth.

First, the Heavens come to be considered, together with the creatures here comprehended under that name; and that these things may more plainly appeare to our understanding, we must first search and sift out the true sense and signification of the word (Heaven) in this Text, and then come to the instructions which doe thence naturally arise.

The name; by which it hath pleased the Spirit of God in this Derivati­on of the word sig­nifying Heavens. 1. place to call the Heavens, is in the Originall Hebrew [...], Shamajim; concerning the signification and Etymologie whereof, the learned much differ among themselves. Some make it a com­pound of [...], which signifieth there, and [...], which signifieth waters; because above in the aire (which is the lowest and nearest heaven) and in the clouds, water is engendered, and in showres di­stills from thence. Some compound it of [...], which is fire, and 2. [...], waters; because the heavens seem to be made of both: the Sun, Moon, and Starres resemble fire, and the rest of the heavens resemble calme and still waters.

Some derive this name of [...], which signifies astonishment; 3. because if a man doe stedfastly behold and consider either the glory or the wonderfull height and compasse of the heavens, they are things which will dazle his eyes, and make his heart astoni­shed.

But the best derivation of the word, which is grounded upon 4. the best reasons, is that which some late Writers have observed, to wit, that it is derived of the simple Hebrew word [...], which signifieth there, and is never used, but when we speake of being in a place which is remote and distant from us: For as the Hebrew word [...], here, signifies the place present; so this word [...], [Page 52] there, signifies a place remote and distant from us, and the being of things there, in that place. Now the heavens are the utmost and most remote place from the earth, which is set in the middle, and about the center of the round world, and upon which men doe live in this world: Therefore this derivation doth agree very aptly to the heavens.

Secondly, of a place which is most excellent, wee are wont to say, There, there is the best being, and in a kind of vehement and affectionate speech, we use to double the word. And heaven is the most excellent place; and therefore the word [...], which is of the duall number, and signifies as much as There, there, or there double, is most fitly derived of [...], there.

Thirdly, the heavens are divided most properly into two hea­vens, the highest heavens, which is invisible; and the visible or lower heaven, which also consists of two parts; the starry and the airie heavens: And all these are divided into two equall parts to all men living on earth. The one is that which wee see in our Hemisphere, and within our Horizon from East to West, and from North to South, above the earth. The other halfe is that which is hid from us by the earth, and is seen by the Antipodes, that is, them who dwell on the other side of the earth, directly opposite to us; and both these parts of the heavens are equally re­mote and distant from the earth. Moreover, the heavens doe move about two Poles, the North and South Pole: and there­fore in many respects the name of the heavens, [...], is most fitly derived of [...], brought into the forme of the duall num­ber.

Fourthly, this derivation of the name, and the signification of it, doth fitly agree to all things which are called by the name Hea­ven; and is verified in them all, even the highest heaven, the starry heaven, and the superiour regions of the aire; for they are all re­mote and distant from the earth, and are divided every one into two equall Hemispheres, equally distant from the earth: But in the highest heaven there is neither fire, nor water, nor any muta­ble Element: and therefore the name [...], derived of [...], or [...], cannot agree to it at all. And as for the superiour regi­ons of the aire, they are not so glorious, nor so high as to astonish us: and therefore [...], derived of [...], cannot [Page 53] agree to them: wherefore the last is the best derivation.

The next thing after the derivation of the word, is the diversi­tie Diversity of its sig­nificati­ons. 1 of significations, which we are to note in the next place; and withall, to shew in what sense it is here used in the Text.

First, this word is used, in a large sense, for that whole space from the upper face of the earth and the sea, to the utmost height of the highest heavens, which comprehends in it the highest, the starry, and the airie heavens; thus the word Heaven is to be un­derstood, Gen. 2. 1. and in all other places, where the Spirit of God comprehends the whole world under these two words, The heavens and the earth.

Secondly, it is used to signifie more specially either the highest 2. heaven, as Deut. 26. 15. Looke downe from heaven, the habitation of thy holinesse, which Saint Paul calls the third heaven, 2 Corin. 12. 2. Or the starry heaven, as Gen. 22. I will multiply thy seed as the starres of heaven: and Psal. 19. 6. Or the airie regions. wherein birds flie, as Gen. 1. 26. where mention is made of the foules of heaven.

Thirdly, the word Heavens, by a Metonymie of the cause for 3. Foure things sig­nified by Heavens. 1 the effect, and of the subject, is used in Scripture to signifie foure things: First, God the possessour of the heavens, whose glorious Majestie doth dwell in the highest heaven, as Dan. 4. 26. where the heavens are said to reigne, that is, the God of heaven: And Luk. 15. 18. I have sinned against heaven: and Matth. 21. 25. Was the baptisme of John from heaven, or of men? Secondly, the Angels and 2 blessed Spirits, which dwell in the highest heaven, as Job 15. 15. The heavens are not cleane in his sight: and Psal. 89. 6. and 69. 35. where the heavens are said to praise God, that is, the Angels and Saints. Thirdly, the Church militant, which is a congregation of 3. people written in heaven, begotten from above of heavenly seed, and whose hope, reward, and triumph is in heaven, as Dan. 8. 10. the armies of the faithfull are called the host of heaven: And so in the Prophets and the Revelation, Heaven signifies the true holy Church; and the Earth signifies earthly men of the world. Fourthly, the clouds in the aire, and in the face of heaven, as 4. Levit. 26. 19. I will make your heaven as iron, that is, the clouds; in­somuch that they shall yeeld no raine.

Now here in this Text is meant (as I have before touched) the highest heaven, as it is distinct from the rude masse, without forme, [Page 54] which is here called Earth, which was the common matter of the starry and airie heavens, and of all the visible world, as appeares in the next Verses. And under this name here the Angels, who were the host and inhabitants of the highest heavens, are com­prehended: For as the word Jerusalem is often used in the Pro­phets, to signifie the people and inhabitants, together with the citie and place; so here the word Heaven, signifies not the bare place and body of the highest heaven, but the place, with all the host and inhabitants of it, the Angels. As for the visible starry heavens, which are the light of the inferiour world and the airie heaven called the firmament, they can in no case be here under­stood: for they were made out of the rude masse, without forme, called Earth, and opposed to heaven in my Text.

From the word thus expounded, I come to the instructions: For whereas some doubt, whether there be any heaven besides the visible starry heaven; where those heavens are, and whether they were created, this Text doth cleare the doubt; and sheweth, that there is an heaven which farre exceeds the heavens which are seen, in all glory and excellency: For here Moses speakes of an hea­ven created in the beginning, with or before the common masse, out of which the Sunne, Moone, and Starres, and all the vis [...]ble heavens and world were made: Yea, in that this heaven was crea­ted out of nothing, and had not a being given it out of the rude masse, without forme, out of which God made all the visible world (as the Text here saith) this doth imply, that they have a more excellent being, of another kind, farre better then all that is seen, and above and without the compasse of the visible hea­vens; so that hence these Doctrines arise: 1. That there are such heavens: 2. That this heaven is not God, but a place created by God: 3. That it is above the visible heavens: 4. That it is most large and ample; and yet not infinite, nor every where, as God is: 5. That it is a place most excellent and glorious, free from cor­ruption, excelling and exceeding the naturall knowledge, reach, and apprehension of men.

First, we here learne, That, besides the visible starry heavens, which were made out of the first rude deformed earth, there are Doctr. 1. heavens created out of nothing, in the first beginning of the crea­tion: And this is confirmed by those Scriptures, which speak ex­presly [Page 55] of the Heaven of heavens, that is, an heaven besides these visible heavens▪ as Deut. 10. 14. 1 Kings 8. 27. Psal. 68. 33. and 115. 16. Also by those Scriptures, which mention an heaven, in which Gods glorious Majesty is said to dwell; and the holy An­gels, which cannot be the starry visible heavens, as Deut. 26. 15. 1 Kings 8. 30. and Mat. 18. 10. Yea, the ho [...]y Apostle puts all out of doubt, 2 Cor. 12. 2. where he calls this the third heaven.

That this highest heaven is not God, but a place created by Doctr. 2. God; for here it is said, that God created this heaven: Some thought that there was no place above the Spheres of heaven; but that there God is all in all, and that there all things are in God, and subsist in him. Their ground is that speech of the Apostle, 1 Co­rinth. 15. that God shall be all in all But that shewes the contra­rie, that God is in all, not that all things are or shalbe, and subsist in God, as in a place. Againe this shewes not the place, but the state of the blessed, that they shall immediately injoy God with­out a Mediatour. Now, that the highest heaven is not God, di­vers reasons shew: First, it is Gods throne, Isa. 66. 1 Deut. 26. 15. therefore not God himselfe. Secondly, it cannot containe God; but he is infinite, and farre without the compasse of it, 1 Kings 8. 27. Thi [...]dly, God is every where; but this heaven is not so, it is onely above, not in the visible world. Fourthly, it is such a bo­dily substance, as can containe glorified bodies, as the body of Christ, Enoch, and Eliah. It comprehends the visible heavens within the compasse of it: But God is a spirit.

That it is not God, but his creature, and his workmanship; and that he hath the disposing of it, as his creature, appeares, Gen. 2. 1. Heb. 11. 10. Psal. 115. 16.

That this heaven is above the visible heavens, divers Scriptures Doctr. 3. testifie: For it is called Heaven above, where Jehovah is, Deut. 4. 39. Jos. 2. 11. that is, above all the visible world. Into this heaven our Saviour is said to be taken up on high, when he ascended, Luke 24. 51. Yea, he is said to ascend up farre above all the visible hea­vens, Ephes. 4. 10.

Fourthly, that this heaven is a most ample and large place, may Doctr. 4. easily be gathered and proved from this, That it was made distinct from the earth, which was the matter of the whole visible world; and doth subsist above, and without the compasse both of the [Page 56] masse, and of all things which were made of it; and so compre­hends them within the large compasse of it. And our Saviour in­timates so much, where he affirmes, that in it are many mansions, John 14. 2, 3. Also the Psalmist, Psal. 68. 5. where hee calls this heaven [...], which signifies faire, and large spacious plaines: And yet it is not infinite, nor every where; for God fills it and the earth also, and it is not able to containe him, 1 Kings 8. 27.

The fifth instruction is, That the highest heaven is a place most glorious and excellent, free from all corruption, and full of glo­rious Doctr. 5. light, farre surpassing our fraile imagination, and the reach of mans naturall understanding. The very signification of the name shewes that it is farre remote from our sight, conceipt, and apprehension. And that rule in Philosophy proves, that it is free from alteration and corruption, to wit, That those things onely are changeable, and may be corrupted, and turned into their first matter, which are made of a common matter, capable of divers formes. But things which have no part of any such matter in them, are incorruptible, and unchangeable, free from alterations incident to inferiour things. Now such are these heavens disco­vered to be in my Text: For they were made absolutely of no­thing, with, or before the first common matter of the visible world: Yea, in the next words the Spirit of God doth distinguish the rude masse from these heavens, by this, that it was full of darknesse, and without forme, and void; which implies, that these heavens were farre different, that is, full of beauty, forme, and Excellen­cie of hea­ven. light. And other Scriptures fully confirme this: First, by the names, by which this heaven is called, and by the excellent things which are spoken of it; for it is called the Heaven of heavens, that is, the heaven farre above all heavens in glory and excellency, Deut. 10. 14. and 1 Kings 8. 27. and Psal. 68. 34. The Heaven of heavens everlasting, so much the Hebrew word [...], doth inti­mate. And Saint Paul, who was rapt up into this heaven, was so astonished with the glory of it, that he knew not whether he was in the body or out of the body: there he heard words, which it was not lawfull to utter; and the sight thereof was such a cause of glorying, that he was afterwards in danger thereby to be too much exalted, and had need to be buffetted by the Angell of Sa­than for his humiliation, to keep him from excessive boasting, [Page 57] 2 Cor. 12. And the same Apostle calls the inheritance therein re­served for the elect, the inheritance of the Saints in light, Colos. 1. 12. and he saith of God, who dwels there by his glory, that he dwels in light, which none can approach unto, 1 Tim. 6. 16. which testimonies, with many other which might be cited, fully prove the glory and excellency of this heaven. Besides, we have many Arguments to this purpose.

The first is drawne from the proper efficient cause of this hea­ven: Reason 1. For it is most certaine, that the place and city which hath God only for the builder & maker of it; & in the building where­of God hath shewed such admirable divine wisdome, that it more specially is called his worke and building, must needs be most excellent and glorious. Now such is the highest heaven, it is cal­led the citie, whose builder and maker is God, Heb. 11. 10. that is, the city which God builded alone as his master-piece, for his owne purpose, to shew therein his glorious wisdome and art, as the word [...] there used doth signifie. Yea, it is said to have foun­dations, that is, to be so firmly built, that it can never faile, but stand stedfast for ever, world without end: Therefore it is a most glorious place.

A second Argument is drawne from the proper inhabitants of Reason 2. these heavens: For in all reason, and by the course of nature, that is the best place which falls to the share, and is allotted to the best inhabitants, by the will and appointment of him, who is the wi­sest of all, and doth order all things in wisdome and equity. Now the highest heavens are allotted by God to the best inhabitants: First, he hath chosen them to be his owne habitation, wherein he delighteth to dwell, not onely by his essentiall presence and power, as he is in all other places, but also by his visible glory, ho­linesse, and unspeakable majesty. So the Scriptures testifie, Deut. 26. 15. where these heavens are called, the habitation of his holinesse. And Psal. 113. 5. the high dwelling, in which God is so high above all. And Isa. 57. 15. and 63. 15. the high and holy place, the habita­tion of Gods holinesse and glory; and even eternity, which shall never decay. Secondly, God hath appointed this place to be the habitation of his holy Angels, which kept their standing, in which he will have them to dwell, and to behold his glorious face continually, as our Saviour saith, Matth. 18. 10. and so much is in­timated [Page 58] Luke 2. 13. where Angels are called the heavenly host. The third sort of inhabitants, to whom God hath allotted these heavens, is the glorified company of his Saints, with Christ their head, in whom they are chosen, and brought to salvation. Though Adam was made after Gods image, yet, by creation, and in the state of naturall uprightnesse, he was not capable, nor worthy of heavenly glory; that is the proper purchase of Christ for his e­lect, and it is the gift of God in Jesus Christ, which he gives only to them who are made in Christ the first fruits of his creatures, sons and heires of God. Our Saviour testifies so much, Joh. 14. 3. where he saith, that he prepares a place for his faithfull in that house of God: And the holy Apostle, Heb. 9. where he saith, that Christ onely opened the way into this Holy of holies; and that none can enter thereinto but by him the way, and the doore. And Ephes. 1. 3. he saith, that God blesseth us with all spirituall blessings in hea­venly places in Christ. And 1 Pet. 1. 3, 4. we are said to be begot­ten to a lively hope, by the resurrection of Jesus Christ from the dead, to the inheritance incorruptable, and undesiled, that never fa­deth, reserved in heaven for us: wherefore it is manifest by the ex­cellency of the inhabitants, being none but God himselfe, and the elect Angels and Saints, which are most neare and deare to God, that this Heaven is a place most glorious and excellent.

A third Argument may be drawne from the situation of it: For the highest place is ever the best by the law and course of nature, Reason 3. as our senses doe teach, and we see manifestly in all knowne parts of the world; and by faith we ought to beleeve, that it is so in places beyond our sight, especially because the Spirit of God in the Scriptures extolls the highest places, Psal. 113. 5. and Isaiah 57. 15. Now the highest of all places is the third heaven in situ­ation: For Christ ascending up thither, there to remaine, and to make intercession for us, Act. 3. 21. and Heb. 9. 24. is said to ascend farre above all other heavens, and those heavens are called [...], the high places, Psal. 148. 1. and [...], the highest places, Ephes. 4. 8. and Heb. 1. 3. Therefore they are the most excellent and glorious places.

The fourth reason is drawne from the excellent things, which are there laid up in store for the Saints: For the wisdome of God re­quires, Reason 4. that he should store up the best treasures and things in the [Page 59] best place; and undoubtedly that place is the best, where God layes up in store such treasures. Now in the highest heaven are the best treasures, which neither rust nor moth can corrupt, nor theeves touch with unjust hands, Matth. 6. 20. there is the inheri­tance of the Saints in light, Colos. 1. 12. and the incorruptible and undefiled, 1 Pet. 13. There God hath prepared for them that love him such things as neither eye hath seen, nor eare heard, nor mans heart conceived, 1 Corin. 2. That is the place of Gods right hand, and of his presence, where is fulnesse of joy, and pleasures for ever­more, Psal. 6. Therefore it is the best place of all.

Fifthly, that place from whence every supernaturall good and per­fect Reason 5. gift doth come, must necessarily bee the most excellent: and such a place is the highest heaven. Christ, the second Adam, the fountaine of all blessings, is said to be from heaven, heavenly, 1 Co­rinth. 15. and to be the bread of life, which came downe from hea­ven, to give life to the world, John 5. The calling of men to the participation of all excellent graces, is called the heavenly calling, Hebr. 3. 1. The gift of supernaturall grace is called the heavenly gift, Heb. 6. 4. The substantiall things shadowed out under legall types, are called heavenly things, Heb. 8. 5. and the new Jerusalem, the most glorious Church, is called the heavenly Jerusalem, Hebr. 12. 22. and is said to come downe from heaven, Revel. 21. In a word, every good and perfect gift is said to come downe from above, from the father of lights, that is, from heaven, Jam. 1. 17. Therefore this heaven must needs be a most excellent place.

Sixthly, the Spirit of God in the Scriptures doth describe and Reason 6. set forth this Heaven, by all the things which are, or have been most excellent in this world, and doth make th [...]m but types and sha­dowes of it: as first, by the earthly Paradise, in which God put Adam in the state of innocency, which was the sweetest and most excellent place that ever was knowne in the world, 2 Cor. 12. 4. by the hill of Zion, which was most beautiful for situation, and the joy of the whole earth, Heb. 12. 22. By Jerusalem, the most glorious citie of all the world, the place which God chose to put his Name there, Gal. 4. 26. and by the Temple of Jerusalem, the most glo­rious Sanctuary of God; and the Holy of holies, Psal. 11. 4. and 18. 7. Habak. 2. 20. Heb. 9. 12. and 10. 9. Therefore this Heaven is most excellent.

[Page 60] Lastly, that this Heaven is a place of wonderfull light and glory, and a worke of God, which shall never be changed or perish, but stand and endure for ever; it appeares by the light which hath shi­ned from thence, and by the eternity of the things which God hath annexed to it. The light which shined from thence on Saint Paul at mid-day, did surpasse the brightnesse of the Sun, Act. 26. 13. And the house which the faithfull have there prepared for them, is said to be eternall in the heavens, 2 Corin. 5. 1. And the inheritance there reserved is said to be immortall, 1 Pet. 1. 3. and the life which the elect shall live there, is called life eternall: Therefore it is a most blessed place.

Now, though some Scriptures seem to speak to the contrary, that the heavens shall perish, as Psal. 102. 26. and that heaven, as Object. well as earth, shall passe away, Matth. 24. 35. and the heavens shall passe away with a noise, 2 Pet. 3. 10. and be burnt with fire:

Yet the truth is, they speak not of the highest heaven, which Answ. was with the Angels created immediately out of nothing; but of the visible fiery and starry heavens, which were created out of the same rude masse, the common matter of the aire, water, and earth: They may be burnt, and set on fire, and passe away; but the highest heaven, being not of the same common matter, no fire can take hold of it.

Now these instructions concerning this first worke of God, the Use 1. To con­fute the otherwise minded. highest heavens, serve for excellent use: First, to discover the madnesse and folly of all them, who either deny the creation of these heavens, as Cajetan, Augustinus, Steuchus, and other great Popish Writers have done; or doe hold this heaven to be no­thing else but God, or his glorious Majesty, and light shining forth to his creatures. These Doctrines prove the contrary, and declare all such profane conceits to be doting dreames, ever to be abhorred.

Secondly, they shew the admirable free bounty and love of God towards his elect, and his eternall fatherly providence, in Use 2. Admire the boun­ty of God to his chosen. that he hath not onely provided such an excellent habitation for them, wherein they may live most happy and blessed for ever; but also made it the first of all his creatures and workes. If the Lord had first made us, and tryed our obedience how we would serve him, before he had made and furnished the highest heaven, [Page 61] the house of glory; men might have imagined, that by their own doings they had procured it: But lo, God hath cut off all such vaine conceits, in that he made this first, and by so doing, sheweth that it is his love and free bounty, not our merit; it was his pro­vidence, not our purchase or care for our selves: Let us therefore give him the glory and praise of a God wonderfull in goodnesse, free grace, and providence; even from the first foundation of the world, creating a place of rest and glory for us.

Thirdly, in that the highest heaven is here discovered to be so Use 3. Be asha­med of thy earth­ly mind­ednesse. high & excellent a place, so full of glory and light, and the proper country of the Saints chosen in Christ; this ought, as to reprove us, & make us ashamed of our immoderate love & affection to world­ly things, and of our groveling on the ground, like brute beasts, and cleaving to the earth, like moles and earth-wormes, and of our negligence in inquiring after heaven, and meditating on this heavenly country: so also to stirre us up to the contrary, and to And pre­pare for heaven. direct us how to prepare our selves for it, by looking and mind­ing high things, and casting off all earthly clogges, and workes of darknesse, and all uncleannesse and filthinesse, and by putting on all holinesse, and the armour of light. If we were to goe into an­other country, there to spend all our daies, we would be carefull to enquire after, and learne the nature, qualities, fashions, and language of the country: And so let us doe concerning our hea­venly country and city, which is above. Let us enquire after hea­venly things, fashion our selves to it; and because there is our in­heritance and our treasures, let there our hearts be also.

Fourthly, seeing heaven is so high, and so excellent and glori­ous Use 4. Be thank­full for this good provision. a place and habitation, that man in innocency was neither ca­pable, nor worthy of it, this serves to magnifie in our eyes the infinite goodnesse and admirable bounty of God, who hath given Christ to purchase for us, being corrupted, and become sinners by Adams fall, a more excellent place, state, and condition, then did belong to us in our best naturall being in the state of pure nature. This also magnifies the vertue and power of the grace of Christ, which hath lifted us up from the valley of darknesse, and of the shadow of death; and hath advanced us to be heires of a better inheritance then the earthly Paradise, even to live and reigne with God in his heavenly Kingdome.

[Page 62] Fifthly, here is matter of singular comfort, and of patience, Use 5. Comfort in all af­flictions. and hope in all the afflictions, which can befall us here on earth in this vale of misery; when men labour, and strive, and fight for an earthly crowne, and in hope of a glorious victory and triumph, no danger of death doth daunt or dismay them, no pain and griefe of wounds doth discourage them; but the crowne of glory, which we wrestle for, it is incorruptible, and never fadeth: and the Kingdome for which we suffer, is an heavenly Kingdome, and an inheritance reserved in the highest heavens, which is a place more glorious and excellent then any tongue can expresse, or heart of man conceive: And therefore let us be stedfast and unmoveable, never daunted with any danger, nor dismayed with any feare, but comfort our selves, and possesse our soules in patience, knowing and counting, that all the sufferings of this life are not worthy of Rom. 8. 18. the glory which shall be revealed, and our momentany passions shall bring a farre more exceeding and eternall weight of glory in heaven, 2 Cor. 4, 17. where a durable substance is stored up for us.

Let us hence learne to loath and hate also that erroneous opi­nion Use 6. Against the Chili­asts. which some hold, to wit, that the highest heaven is not or­dained to be the habitation of the Saints after the last judgment; but that Christ shall reigne with them here on earth in his bodily presence: a fond conceit, contrary to the expresse Word of God, utterly razed by the former Doctrine.

CHAP. IV.

Of the creation of Angels. Their names. They had a beginning: Rea­sons and Uses. They were all created by the one true God: with Uses. They were made in the beginning of the world. They are Gods first and best creatures: with the Use. They were made in heaven, and to inhabit heaven: Reasons and Uses. Seven Corollaries or Conclusi­ons concerning the Angels.

I Proceed in the next place to the inhabitants or host of the highest heavens, the Angels, which were by the same Word of God in the beginning created together with them; as appeares, Chapt. 2. 1. And howbeit they are not here expresly named by [Page 63] Moses; yet they are necessarily included in this word, [...] Angels compre­hended in the name, Heavens. 1. [...], the heavens, as may easily be proved, and made manifest by three reasons: First, the Article [...], is demonstrative, and shewes that there is an Emphasis in this word; and the particle [...], consisting of the first, and last letter of the Alphabet, is of generall comprehension, and shewes, that by these speciall and most glorious heavens, he means all whatsoever was created with them, and whatsoever was in the creation contained in them, even all the glorious Angels. Secondly, it is a common and usu­all 2. thing in the Scriptures, for the Spirit of God, to signifie by the name of the place, both the place and the inhabitants: as for example, Psal. 147. 12. and Jerem. 4. 14. O Jerusalem, wash thine heart. And Matth. 23. 37. Jerusalem, Jerusalem, that killest the Prophets. In these places, by Jerusalem is meant not the city on­ly, but also the inhabitants. And so the name [...], the hea­vens, is used to signifie the Angels which were the created inhabi­tants of heaven, Job 15. 15. where it is said, The heavens are not pure in his sight, that is, the Angels, because many of them rebel­led, and lost their habitation, and were stained with sinne. And Psal. 89. 6. And the heavens shall declare thy wonders, O Lord, that is, the heavenly host: Therefore by analogy of Scripture, the An­gels may here be understood. Thirdly, what is here meant by 3. the heavens, Moses himselfe sheweth, Chapt. 2. 1. namely, the hea­vens and the host of them, that is, the Angels, for they are the host of the highest heaven, and so are called, Luke 2. 13. Therefore un­doubtedly the Angels are included in the word Heavens.

So then the creation of the Angels coming now the next in order to be handled, I will seeke no further for a Text (though there be some more plain and expresse) but will ground all my Doctrines, concerning the creation and nature of Angels, on this word, taken in that sense which I have here proved; which offers to our consideration five maine and principall points of instructi­on, unto which all other Doctrines may be reduced, which con­cerne their nature and creation, and may be as branches com­prehended under them.

First, we here learne, that Angels had a beginning, and were not Points concern­ing them. from all eternity. Secondly, that God created them, and that they were made by that one God and three persons, here called [Page 64] Elohim. Thirdly, that they were created in the beginning, as the word Bereshith, taken in the most strict sense, signifieth, the first moment of time. Fourthly, that they were created by the first simple act of absolute creation, that is, they were made out of nothing, most perfect and glorious creatures, in an instant. Fifthly, that they were made in and with the highest heavens, and by the law of creation made to inhabit them, as the proper place of their naturall habitation. These are the maine and principall points of Doctrine, which immediately flow from the words. And these, especially the last of them, doth offer to our conside­ration divers other particular questions, and points of instruction to be handled. As first, seeing they were created in and with the highest heavens, to be the proper inhabitants of them; therefore they are of an heavenly nature, even pure, excellent, and glorious spirits, such as the nature of the place requires, to be suteable in­habitants. And here an occasion is offered to seeke out a true description of Angels, and to enquire after their wisdome, power, and such like properties, wherein they excell, and are like unto God the Creatour, bearing his image. Secondly, hereby are of­fered to us these points to be handled, and these questions to be discussed, viz. That the Angels are of a finite nature, limitted to their places: Also, whether they are circumscribed, and measured by the place in which they are, or rather definitively in it. And whether, and how they move from place to place, and such like.

Thirdly, the most high and large heavens, compassing about the whole visible world, in and with which they were created, to be the host of them; doe import, that the Angels were created many in number, according to the largenesse of the place, and that they are innumerable, more then mans fraile reason can comprehend.

Fourthly, the highest heaven, being their naturall place, in which they were created, Hence a question ariseth, concerning a being in other places; How they come to be out of heaven, their naturall place, and some of them quite banished out of heaven for ever. And here their mutability and fall comes to be hand­led; and the distinction of them into good and evill Angels. Thus we see in briefe into what a broad field this short Text doth [Page 65] lead us, and what large scope it gives us to speake of the Angeli­call nature, and the heavenly spirits, the first and chiefest of the creatures of God.

That we may better understand these Doctrines, I will first consider the name of Angels, what it signifies, and how we are to take it in this place.

The name, Angell, comes of the Greek name [...], which Of their names. signifies a messenger, sent forth from some superiour person, or state, to deliver a message, and to declare the mind of him or them that sent him. The Hebrew name, [...], which is the name of an Angell in the Old Testament, signifies also a messen­ger; but yet in a more full and large sense: For it signifies such a messenger, as doth not only deliver and declare a message by word of mouth, but also doth act and execute indeed the will of him that sent him, and doth performe his worke injoyned, as a faith­full minister and servant. And hence it is, that the Hebrew word, [...], which is derived of it, and is used for the office and worke of an Angell, signifies in generall any thing which serves for the use and ministery of man. And as the signification, according to the Etymology, is generall and large; so the word is used in the Scriptures, to signifie any messenger or minister sent forth upon a message, or some employment, either from God or men. Jacobs messengers which he sent unto Esau, Genes. 32. 3. to worke his peace are called by the name. [...], An­gels. And Num. 20. 14. the messengers which Moses sent from Kadesh unto the King of Edom, are so called, and in Greeke translated [...]. But when Gods messengers are thereby signi­fied, it hath the name Jehovah, or [...], most commonly added to it.

As for the first signification, we let it passe, as a stranger in this place, where we are to discourse of heavenly Angels; and doe take it in the second signification, for the Angels of the Lord. And being so taken, it is still doubtfull, till it be more particular­ly distinguished: For in this sense it signifies three sorts of An­gels, as the learned have well observed.

First of all it signifies, that chiefe and principall messenger and ambassadour of God, his Son Jesus Christ, who was sent forth as God, in the forme and shape of an Angell and Messenger to the [Page 66] fathers before his incarnation: And as man, in [...]u [...]nesse of time by incarnation, and assuming of mans nature into his person: For, Gen. 48. 16. by the Angell which delivered Jacob, and which he prayeth, may blesse the sons of Joseph, is meant the Lord Christ. And in all places, where the Angell which appeared, is called Je­hovah, or was worshipped, God the Son is meant, as Exod. 3. and Zach. 3. there by the Angell Christ is meant, appearing either like an Angell, or in the shape of a man, to fore-shew his incarnation. So likewise, where we reade of the Angell of Gods presence or face, as Isa. 63. 9. Or of the Angell of the Covenant, as Malac. 3. 1. Or of the Archangell, as 1 Thes. 4. 16. Jud. 9. Christ is meant.

Secondly, this word is used to signifie men, by divine inspirati­on called, and sent from God upon some speciall message, espe­cially the message of salvation, as Job 33. 23. Judg. 2. 1. Malac. 2. 1. and 3. 1. and Revel. 2. & 3.

Thirdly, this word is most frequently and commonly used, to signifie the heavenly spirits created by God, to stand about his Throne in heaven, to behold his face continually; because they are, as by nature fit, so by office ready to be sent on his message, and to doe his will, as Gen. 19. 1. Psal. 103. 20. Matth. 18. 10. In this sense we are to take the word in this discourse of the creati­on of Angels: For though Christ be the Angell of God, and the great messenger of salvation; and Gods ministers, as they are Gods embassadours, sent by him, are Angels of the Lord: yet they are not Angelicall spirits, created in the first beginning; they are onely Angels by office and calling, not by nature in the creation. Onely the heavenly spirits, whom God hath made at the first fit to minister, and hath since in Christ appointed to be ministring spirits for the good of them, who are chosen to be heires of salvation in Christ; they are Angels both by nature and office. And they are the proper subject of our present discourse. I proceed to the Doctrines, which I will prosecute in order, as they arise out of this Text.

First, seeing the Angels are included in this word, the heaven; Doctr. 1. Angels had a be­ginning. hence we may learne, that as the heavens, so the Angels, the host of heaven, had their beginning with the highest heaven, and were not in being from all eternity; which point is farther confirmed by all such Scriptures, as attribute a beginning to all things, and [Page 67] tell us that they are, and subsist not of themselves, but from God, as Rom. 11. 36. where the Apostle saith, that of God, and through him, and to him are all things: and 1 Cor. 8. 6. But to us there is but one God the Father, of whom are all things, and we for him; and one Lord Jesus Christ, by whom are all things. And Revel. 4. 11. and 10. 6. thou Lord hast created all things, and for thy pleasure they are and were created. And that God, who liveth for ever, created heaven, and the things that therein are. And that in this universality of things created, the Angels are comprehended, the Apostle sheweth most plainly, Colos. 1. 16. where hee af­firmes, that all kinds of things visible and invisible, whether they be thrones, or dominions, or principalities, or powers, all were created by him, and for him. But if any shall cavill and say, that though they are of God, and he is the cause and creatour of them; yet it doth not necessarily follow, that they were created in the begin­ning with the heavens, but from eternity, and as co-eternall ef­fects have their being from God. The next words which follow will cut off this objection, which affirme, that Christ is before all things, and by him all things consist, Verse 17. and therefore they had a beginning after Christ, and were not co-eternall with him.

Reason also confirmes this, drawne from the fall of a great Reason 1. multitude of the Angels: For things eternall, which were, and had their being from eternity, without beginning, and before all times, they cannot fall in time, nor be changed, but abide the same for ever: But a great multitude of the Angels did fall. And the Divell was once one of the most glorious among them, and he with many others, who left their habitation, are reserved in chaines to the last judgement, 2 Pet. 2. 4. and Jud. 6. Therefore they are but creatures, made in the beginning.

Secondly, though Angels are not circumscribed, and measu­red Reason 2. by a bodily space or dimension; yet they are definitively in place: and where there is no place, there can be no Angell, as I shall shew hereafter. Now before the creation of the heavens, there was no place at all wherein Angels might be, abide and sub­sist: Therefore before the heavens they were not, but were created with them.

But Angels are called Jehovah, as that Angell which spake to Obj [...]ct. 1. [Page 68] Agar, and promised to multiply her seed, Genes. 16. 13. and the Angell, which appeared to Moses in the bush, Exod. 3. 4. and the Angell which rebuked Satan, Zach. 3. 1. And Jehovah is without beginning.

The Angell mentioned in those places was Christ the Sonne of God, the Angell of the Covenant, and so was Jehovah, indeed, the Ansir. creatour of Angels; the words of the severall Texts shew so much: For that Angell saith, I will multiply thy seed: and I am the God of Abraham: Therefore this Objection is of no force.

Angels are called the sons of God Job 1. 6. and 38. 7. Therefore they are of Gods nature and substance, begotten from all eter­nity; Object. 2. not created with the heavens.

Every son of God is not a naturall son, begotten from all eter­nity; for men are also called sons of God by creation, regenera­tion, Answ. and adoption; and yet are not naturall, and co-eternall sons of God. And so Angels are sons: First by creation, in respect of the speciall image of God, in which they were made, and to which they are conformable. Also the good Angels are sons by adoption unto God in Christ their head. But none of them all is the Son of God by nature, as the Apostle testifieth, Heb. 1. 4, 5. that is proper to Christ alone; he onely is the brightnesse of his Fa­thers glory, and the expresse image of his person: and he onely is cal­led the first-borne and the onely begotten Son of God, John 1. 14, 18. Therefore this Objection is of as little force as the o­ther.

This point serves to shew, that absolute eternity, without be­ginning, Use 1. is the proper attribute of God; and to communicate it to any other, by holding, that any other besides the one onely true God is eternall, is no lesse then a sacrilegious robbery, and taking from God the honour due to him: For seeing Angels are all created in the beginning, when the heavens were made, and are not from all eternity; much lesse may eternity be attributed to any other, besides the true God.

Secondly, here we see the grosse errour of Papists, who wor­ship Angels, and pray unto them. As also their foule mistaking Use 2. Angels not to be worship­ped. and wresting of some Scriptures, & some examples of the Patri­archs, as Abraham, Jacob, and Moses, who did worship the Angels which appeared to them, and spake unto them. For these were [Page 69] not divers Angels, but the great Angell of the Covenant, Christ the Son of God appearing in the forme of an Angell, who, as he is Jehovah, the true God; so he is called by them who prayed to him, and is worthy to be worshipped and prayed to: but not any of the Angels, which are but creatures, and not Jehovah, can be worthy of this honour which God requires as proper to him­selfe.

The second Doctrine hence flowing is, That all the Angels Doctr. 2. Angels all crea­ted by God. were created by that one God, and three persons, here called Elohim; and that the Son, together with the Father and the Spirit, is the Lord the Creatour of them: which truth is confirmed also by di­vers Scriptures, as John 1. 3. where by the Word, the eternall Son, all things are said to be made, and nothing without him. And Colos. 1. 16. all things in heaven and in earth, whether they be thrones, or dominions, principalities, or powers, all are said to be created by him. To which we may adde those places, Psal. 104. 4. Revelat. 4. 11. and 10. 6. where all things in heaven and earth, and by name, the Angels are said to be made by God.

Which point may comfort us with assurance, that Christ is Use 1. Christ is Lord of the An­gels. absolute Lord of the Angels: and as he hath a love to us, and a will to help, and assist us; so he hath the Angels, which ex­cell in strength, at his command, alwaies ready prest to doe his will, and to execute his word for our good. The best ground of Lordship and Dominion, which any can have over any things, is the creating and making of them: For it is good rea­son, that none should have more power over a thing, then he who made and formed it by his owne hand and skill, and gave the whole being to it. And this the Scriptures shew, where they at­tribute great power and lordship to the potter over the clay, which he formeth, and the vessell which he makes of it, Isa. 45. 9. Jerem 18. 6. Rom. 9. Now this the Lord Christ our Saviour hath over the Angels, as he is their Creatour, in an high measure; for he made them out of nothing by his owne power: And therefore just it is, that all Angels, Principalities, & Powers should ever be subject to him; and that they should not only worship him, Heb. 1. 6. but also should be his ministring spirits, sent forth to minister for the good of them, who are heires of salvation in Christ. In this assurance let us solace our selves, and be of comfort, knowing that the An­gels [Page 70] in heaven are ministers for us, when we are Christs little ones, Mat. 18. and they behold the face of our heavenly Father. And let us in this hope harden our faces, and stand with courage before all wicked violent enemies and persecutours. And as we are here assured, that the Angels being created by the Lord Christ, and having him for their head, adding light and holinesse unto them; must needs love us as fellow-creatures and members under the same head, and be ready and willing to help us when God sends them: so we are here admonished to love them as our fellow-servants, under one & the same Lord, and as creatures made in the same image, but more excellent, and by one and the same hand, rejoycing in heaven at our conversion, and turning unto God by repentance.

Here also we are admonished, that we are not to dream or ima­gine, Use 2. that Christ tooke the nature of Angels on him, though he be called the Angell of the Covenant, and of Gods presence, and the Mal. 3. 1. Archangell, that is, the Prince of Angels; for an Angell he is cal­led in respect of his office, but by nature he is no Angell, but as different from Angels, as the Creatour and Lord differs from the creature, who is by him created of nothing, and the servant mi­nistring to him.

The third point of instruction is, That the Angels were crea­ted Doctr. 3. Angels made in the begin­ning of the crea­tion. in the beginning of the world, in the first moment of time, by Gods first act of creation. This is confirmed, Job 38. 7. where Angels are called the sons of God, to shew, that he is their father by creation; and also the starres of the morning, to shew, that they were created in the first moment or morning of the creati­on, with the first light, the highest heavens; and are said to sing together, and to lift up their voice, when God laid the first cor­ner-stone and foundation of the earth; which necessarily implies, that then they were already made, and had a being given before, even with the heavens. Also Psal. 104. 4. where God is first said to make his Angels spirits, and his ministers a flaming fire; and then to lay the foundations of the earth, that is, of the inferiour visible world.

This serves to shew, that Angels and their actions are not so Use. properly measured by time, as the actions of men, and other infe­riour creatures: but as they were created in the first beginning, with the first moment of time; so they can remove their pre­sence [Page 71] into places far distant in a moment, without time, and doe things quickly in an instant, and are swift messengers.

Fourthly, in that the Angels are here included in the word Doctr. 4. Angels are first and best creatures. Heavens, and are said to be created with them in the beginning; Hence we may learne, That the Angels are Gods first creatures, made perfect out of nothing, by the first act of simple and abso­lute creation. For proofe of this we need no further argument but those Scriptures which affirme, that God made his Angels Spirits, that is, spirituall substances, which are the most perfect of creatures, and come nearest in nature to God, who is a spirit, as Psal. 104. 4. and Hebr. 1. 7. If they had been created out of any matter made before, then they must have been made out of the rude masse, without forme, called earth: For all things which were created not by absolute and simple creation, but out of some thing made before, were created out of the rude masse, the earth; but Angels were not made out of it: for it is the com­mon matter of the visible and inferiour world; but Angels are invisible, and were created to bee inhabitants of the highest invisible heavens: therefore they must needs be the first of Gods creatures made perfect, as the invisible heavens were, of nothing, by the first act of simple and absolute creation.

This discovers to us the excellency of the Angelicall nature, that Use. Excellen­cie of the Angels. the Angels are Gods master-piece, his first and most perfect worke in all the creation. The rude masse, without forme, called earth, was made out of nothing, imperfect, void, and full of darknesse, and was no perfect creature; but the matter of the visible inferiour mutable world, and all the creatures therein. The highest heavens were also made perfect out of nothing, to be the place of the Angels, the heavenly Spirits; but yet the Angels must be more excellent then they by nature, because they were made to serve for the use of Angels, even to be the place of their habi­tation. And yet the Angels, those excellent and chiefest of all creatures, are in Christ become our brethren and fellow-servants; yea, they are after a sort made our servants and ministring spirits, sent forth to minister for them, who shall be heires of salvation: Wherefore, as we are by this doctrine stirred up to contemplate with admiration upon the excellency of the Angelicall nature; and to wonder at Gods bounty to us fraile men, inferiour earthly [Page 72] creatures, in honouring us so farre, as give his glorious Angels to minister for us: So also we are provoked to magnifie, and extoll the infinite excellency of the merits and mediation of the Lord Christ our Redeemer and Saviour, who procured and purchased this honour and dignity for us, that the blessed Angels should mi­nister for our good, who of our selves, and by our sinnes, deserved to be slaves of the Divell, and evill Angels: Wherefore, as An­gels grudge not to minister for us; so let not us grudge, but re­joyce to minister for the poorest of the Saints, and the little ones of Christs flocke, our brethren.

The fifth point of Doctrine is, That the Angels were created in and with the highest heavens; and by creation were made to in­habit Doctr. 5. Angels made in heaven, & to inhabit heaven. those heavens, as the naturall and proper place of their be­ing and habitation. This Doctrine is confirmed, first by the ex­presse words of Moses himselfe, in the first words of the next Chapter, viz. Gen. 2. 1. Thus the heavens and the earth were finished, and all the host of them. In which words he plainly affirmes, That not onely the heavens and the earth, but also all the host of them were thus created and perfectly finished, that is, in that order and maner as he hath before related in my Text, & the rest of this first Chapter. Now in this Chapter we have not one word which can be understood of the creation of the host of the highest heaven, that is, the Angels, but onely these words of my Text, which affirme, that in the beginning, that is, in the first moment, when God began to give being to his first creatures, he created the heavens; that is, the highest heavens distinct from the earth, which was the com­mon matter of all the visible world; and with those heavens the host of them, that is, the Angels, which are the host and inhabi­tants of them. For it is an usuall thing in the Scriptures, to signi­fie by the name of a place the proper inhabitants of the place, to­gether with the place it selfe, as I have before shewed by divers examples. Yea, the word heavens is used to signifie the Angels, as I have shewed from Job 15. 15. Therfore it is a thing most clear & manifest, that the Angels were created together with the highest heavens, as the host & naturall inhabitants of them; and those hea­vens, by the law of creation, are the naturall and proper place of their being and habitation. Secondly, the Scriptures fully prove this point, which call the Angels, the Angels of heaven; as Mat­thew [Page 73] 24. 36. and Galat. 1. 8. and the heavenly host, as Luke 2. 13. and name the Angels among the hosts of the Lord, which from the heavens, and in the heights sing Halleluiah and praise to him, as Psal. 148. 1, 2. Thirdly, this doctrine is confirmed by divers rea­sons, grounded on the Word of God.

The first is builded upon the Doctrines before proved by plaine Reason 1. testimonies of holy Scripture, to wit, that the Angels were not from all eternity, but were created by Elohim, that is, the true God, who is one God and three persons, as is plainly restified. Psal. 104. 4. and 148. 5. and Colos. 1. 16. upon this infallible ground I thus argue, That Angels being creatures, created and made by God, must of necessity be created either before the heavens, or in and with the highest heavens; or else together with the Ele­ments, and the creatures of the inferiour visible world, which were all made out of that rude masse called earth, which was with­out forme, and void. But they were not made before the hea­vens: For the heavens were made in the beginning, that is, in the first moment, when God began first to make and to give being to creatures, before which beginning there could be no creation of Angels, or any other things. Neither indeed was there any place, wherein Angels could subsist, before the heavens were made. Certainly, no finite creature can subsist in it selfe, without a place in meer nothing; it is proper to God onely to subsist in and of himselfe. Neither were they created together with the earth, and other elements and creatures of the visible world: For it is plain­ly testified, Job 38. 7. that when God laid the foundations of the earth, and stretched the lines upon it, and laid the corner-stone thereof, then the sons of God shouted for joy, that is, the Angels; for they are called the sons of God, Job 1. 7. and there were no other living creatures then made: Therefore the Angels were un­doubtedly created before the earth, or else they could not have shouted and sung together, when the earth was made. David also testifieth, that the Angels were made spirits first, Psal. 104. 4. and after them God laid the foundation of the earth, Verse 5. Therefore it followeth necessarily, that the Angels were created in and with the highest heaven, and are the host and proper inha­bitants thereof.

Secondly, that place from which the evill Angels were cast Reason 1. [Page 74] downe, and did fall, when they sinned, and left their first estate and habitation, is their naturall proper place in which God crea­ted them; and they by creation are the proper inhabitants there­of. Now that is the highest heaven: for when some of the An­gels, to wit, proud Lucifer, the Divell and his Angels sinned, and left their habitation, as Saint Jude speakes, Jude 6. then they were cast downe to hell, 2 Pet. 2. 4. even from heaven, as the Prophet Isaiah testifieth, Isa. 14. 12. saying, How art thou fallen from hea­ven, O Lucifer? Therefore undoubtedly the Angels in their crea­tion were made in and with the highest heavens, and had them gi­ven for their proper and naturall habitation.

The third reason is drawne from the order which God obser­ved in the creation: For as soone as God had fitted any part or Reason 3. place of the world for the creatures which were to dwell, and to have their being in it; he made those creatures, and replenished the place with them: So soon as the airie heavens were made, and the waters separated from the earth, and place made for the Sun, Moone, and Starres, and for their beames to be stretched out from heaven to earth; then the host of the visible heavens, the Sunne, Moon, and Starres were created and placed in them: And so soon as the sea was fitted for living and moving creatures, God created them out of it; and so likewise when the earth was made to stand out of the waters, and furnished with herbs, plants, and trees, for the use of living creatures, God created birds and beasts; and when it was furnished with all creatures fit for mans use, then he created man, and the woman also an help meet for him: There­fore undoubtedly so soon as he created the highest heavens, the proper and naturall place of the Angels, then and together with those heavens he did create the Angels, which are the heavenly host, and suffered them not to remaine one houre empty, without their furniture and inhabitants.

This Doctrine thus laid downe and proved, besides some speci­all use which we may make of it for affection and practice, is a ground and foundation of many other Doctrines concerning An­gels, which flow as Conclusions and Corollaries from it, and an oc­casion of questions to be discussed: First, let me make some briefe application of it, and then proceed to the Doctrines and Questi­ons.

[Page 75] First, in that Angels were created in and with the highest hea­ven Use 1. Gods infi­nite pow­er hereby demon­strated. by Gods powerfull Word, and by his simple and absolute act of creation; this shewes the infinite power and omnipotency of God, that he can make the most excellent, immortall, and glori­ous creatures, greatest in power and strength, meerly out of no­thing by his owne hand immediately. The wisest, and most able and skilfull Artificers and Master-workmen in all the world, and among all the sons of men, doe stand in need of divers helps and instruments for the effecting and perfecting of any good worke, and without them he can doe little or nothing. He must have ser­vants and inferiour workmen under him; he must have good tooles and instruments fitted for his hand, and he must have also good materials to worke upon; for he can frame and make no good worke out of course stuffe, and base metalls: But lo here an admirable Artificer and Work-master, before whom all the art and skill of all creatures is as vanity and nothing. The Lord God, the Creatour and Former of all things, he alone hath made all the world; and he hath not onely made his owne materials, out of which he framed this great fabrick of the visible world, and all this without any instruments or working-tooles; but also hee hath made in a moment, in the first beginning, together with the glorious highest heavens, the Palace and Throne of his glorious and infinite Majesty, the most glorious and excellent of all his creatures, the Angels, and that out of nothing, which are great in power, wonderfull in strength, and admirable in swiftnesse, im­mortall spirits, able to destroy a whole army of men in a night, and to overturne kingdomes and cities in one day; at whose sight and presence valiant Gideon, a mighty man of warre, and the great Captaine of Israel, was so affraid and astonished, that he cried, Aha, Lord God, I shall die. Zachary, an holy Priest, was stricken dumbe for a time: And the hardy Roman souldiers, which wat­ched Christs sepulchre, were astonished, and became as dead men. Who therefore can sufficiently admire this mighty Creatour? What heart is able to conceive, or tongue to expresse his wis­dome, power, and omnipotency? Let us in silence adore him, and tremble and feare before him; not with servile and slavish hor­rour, but with holy feare and reverence. Let us flee to him for all help, succour, and strength in all distresses; for supply of all our [Page 76] wants, for guidance and direction in all our waies. If we be assu­red of his favour, and that he is with us, and on our side, and that we stand for his cause; let us not care who be against us, nor feare what men and Divels can doe unto us. If we want meanes and instruments, let vs not be dismayed; for he can worke without them. If we want necessary matter, he can make it, or worke without it, and bring things most excellent out of nothing. For this very end, the Lord hath shewed himselfe and his divine power in the creation, and by the creatures, that we might know and ac­knowledge, love and honour, serve and worship him, and upon all occasions give him the glory due to his name, and tell the people what great and wonderfull things he hath done, and how by his owne arme and power he hath brought great and strange things to passe.

Secondly, this Doctrine serves to discover the errour and fal­shood Use 2. Confuta­tion of contrary errours. of divers opinions, published and maintained by men of learning: As first, that of Origen, Basil, and other Greek fathers, who dreamed, that the Angels were created many ages before the corporeall and visible world. 2. And that held by some others, That they were created after the creation of Adam. 3. That the creation of Angels is not mentioned by Moses in the history of the creation; but the time thereof is altogether concealed, which is the opinion of Pererius, and of some Fathers and Schoolmen. 4. That opinion of some Ancients, who held, That God by the ministery of Angels created this visible world. This Doctrine proves them all to be vaine dreames and fictions, in that it shewes plainly, by plaine testimonies and solid arguments out of Gods holy Word, that the Angels were created in and with the highest heavens, neither before nor after them; and are the inhabitants and host of those heavens mentioned, Gen. 2. 1. and that expresly by Moses. 5. Also for that opinion of the Popish Schoolmen, and of their Master Aristotle, who hold, that Angels move the spheres of the visible heavens, and guide the severall motions of the Sun. Moon, and Starres; it is in no case to be allowed. For as the Scriptures doe expresly ascribe the creation of all things to God alone, and to his eternall Word and Spirit, and never men­tion Angels as creators working with God in the creation; but as creatures first made in and with the highest heavens, and re­joycing [Page 77] at Gods founding of the earth: So they affirme, that in God all things move, and have their being; and he gives the law and rule of motion to the Sun, Moon, and Starres, guides them Job 9. 7. & 37. 12. by his hand, causeth them to rise and set, and brings forth all their host by number, Isa. 40. 26. and 45. 12. And this Doctrine, which teacheth us, that the Angels were made to dwell in the highest heavens, and there they have their residence, not in the spheres of the visible heavens, it overthrowes all such conceipts, makes them vanish like smoak, and drives them away like chaffe before the wind: Wherefore let us all acknowledge, that as God created An­gels of nothing by himselfe alone, and did give motion to the heavens; so without help of Angels he doth continue the same motion, and did create all other inferiour things. Let us take heed that we give not Gods glory to any other; but let us confesse, that all thankes for all blessings are due to him; in him things live, move, and have their being; and he turneth about the spheres of heaven by his counsels, that they may doe whatsoever he com­mandeth them upon the face of the world in the earth, Job 37. 12.

From the use of this Doctrine, I proceed to the Conclusions, which necessarily flow from it.

1. Corollary, or Conclusion.

The first is, That Angels by creation, and in their nature and Angels the chie­fest of the creatures. substance are the first and chiefest of all Gods creatures, far more excellent then man in his best naturall being in the state of in­nocency; this Doctrine floweth necessarily from the former: For first, God in wisdome hath made all things, the best and chiefest 1. of creatures for the best places; and inferiour creatures, for infe­riour p [...]aces, as we see by experience in all things visible: And therefore undoubtedly the Angels, which were created to be the naturall inhabitants of the highest and best place, must needs be the chiefest creatures, and the most excellent in nature and sub­stance. Secondly, those creatures, which God framed in the crea­tion, 2. to dwell nearest to his glorious presence, even with his hea­venly Majesty, and to stand before his Throne in the heaven of heavens, must needs be in their nature and substance most excel­lent, and farre above man in innocency, whose best dwelling was but an earthly Paradise, or Garden furnished with fruits, which [Page 78] might be eaten up and consumed; and such were the Angels, as the former Doctrine hath plainly proved: Therefore this conclu­sion necessarily flowes from that Doctrine, and is proved and con­firmed by it.

But we have for further confirmation both plaine testimonies and arguments in the holy Scriptures: The royall Prophet Da­vid, being ravished with the contemplation of the supercelestiall glory appearing in the secondary beames thereof, which shine in the visible heavens, and in the Sun, Moon, and Starres, cries out in admiration and wonders that God, dwelling in such admirable glory, and having such excellent and glorious company and atten­dants about him, should vouchsafe to look upon man, or have any regard of him: What is man (saith he) that thou art mindfull of him, or the sonne of man, that thou visitest him? Psal. 8. 4. But in the next words he goeth further, and speaks fully to the point, and shewes, that Christ himselfe, according to his humanity, though concei­ved and borne most pure and holy, was made lower then the An­gels; thou hast made him (saith he) a little, or for a little while lower then the Angels, that is, Christ in the nature of man, which he took upon him; for so the Apostle expounds these words of David, Hebr. 2. 6. And Psal. 103. 20. Yee Angels (saith he) which excell in power. Our Saviour also in the Gospel sheweth plainly, that the Angels in heaven are so excellent in nature and substance, as the elect Saints glorified shall be after the last resurrection; and their most glorious and blessed condition, which farre excels Adam in innocency, shall be like unto the Ange's, Matth. 22. 30. Saint Peter in plaine words saith, that Angels are farre greater then men in power and might, 2 Pet. 2. 11. Saint Paul calls them Angels of light, 2 Corinth. 11. 14, and the Angels of Gods power, 2 Thes. 1. 7. he numbers them with principalities and powers, which farre excell the nature of man, Rom. 8. 38. Whensoever he sets forth the greatest excellency of things created, greater then in men, he doth in­stance in Angels. as 1 Cor. 13. 1. though I speak with tongues of men and Angels. And Galat. 1. 8. If I, or an Angell from heaven, and 4. 14. Ye received me as an Angell of God, yea as Christ Jesus. In a word, whereas man is an earthly creature, framed out of dust, in respect of his visible part his body; Angels are pure heavenly spi­rituall substances, framed immediately out of nothing, by the [Page 79] simple and absolute act of creation. And whereas mans better part, the soule, though it be a spirit; yet was not created a per­fect compleat creature, but made to subsist in the body, and can­not be in full perfection without it: Angels are spirits complete and perfect in themselves, without subsistence in any other crea­ture, as shall appeare hereafter. And therefore Angels are by creation, and in nature and substance farre above man in his best naturall estate, even in the state of innocency.

First, this shewes most clearly, that all the love and favour Use 1. The love of God to man here­by com­mended. which God extends to man in Christ, and in giving Christ to be mans Saviour and Redeemer, by taking mans nature upon him, and making full satisfaction therein to justice for him, and in sa­ving man from hell and damnation, and exalting him to heaven­ly glory, is on Gods part most free and voluntary, arising meerly and wholly from the good pleasure of his owne will, and not from any merit, worth, and excellency, which he at first created, or since found in mans nature. If the naturall excellency of any creature could procure Gods speciall favour, or deserve his boun­tie, or move him to shew mercy to any creature which hath sin­ned, and by sin is fallen into misery; surely, the Angelicall nature should have been more respected of God, then the nature of man: and Angels, being fallen, should more easily have found mercy at his hand. For (as this Doctrine hath proved) Angels are by creation, and in nature and substance the chiefest and most ex­cellent of all Gods creatures, far excelling man in power, might, purity, and being; And yet, when Angels and man were both fal­len, and found guilty, charged with folly, and involved in misery, God passed by the Angels, and shewed no mercy to them; nei­ther gave his Son, to take upon him the nature of Angels, and to be their Saviour and Redeemer; but so many of them as sin­ned, and kept not their first estate, but left their habitation, he hath reserved in everlasting chaines of darknesse, unto the judgement of the great day, 2 Pet. 2. Jud. 6. But for man, who is of lesse worth, and farre inferiour by nature, he hath given his Sonne, to take mans nature upon him, to be incarnate and made flesh, and hath sent him forth in the forme of fraile and sinfull flesh, made of a woman, and made under the Law, and hath delivered him up to a cursed death, and to hellish agonies, pangs, and sorrowes, that he [Page 80] might redeem this fraile worme of the earth, miserable and sin­full man, from hell and damnation, unto which the Angels which sinned are reserved under darknesse; and to exalt him far above the state of innocency, in which he was created, and his best naturall estate in Paradise, unto the high estate of heavenly glo­ry, with the elect holy, and blessed Angels, which is farre above that mutable state of glory, in which the Angels were first crea­ted, and from which so many of them did fali: Wherefore let us admire this free grace of God, and stand amazed at his wonder­full and supertranscendent bounty to mankind. And whatsoever mercy we receive from him in our deliverance from any evill or whatsoever blessing and benefit of bounty and goodnesse in ad­vancing us to this state of grace or glory, let us wholly ascribe it to the good pleasure of his owne free will, and not to any merit in our selves, or any excellency created in our nature. And let no man glory in his naturall wit or wisdome, and knowledge gotten by learning and study, nor boast in his owne strength; but, as it is written, Let him that glorieth, glory in the Lord, and triumph in this, that he knoweth Gods free grace and aboundant mercy in Jesus Christ, and hath the sweet taste and experience of it in his owne soule.

Secondly, this serves to magnifie in our eyes both the large Use 2. And the love of Christ, not ta­king the nature of Angels, but mans. measure of Gods bounty to his elect in Christ, and also the infi­nite power and excellency of Christ his mediation, and the digni­ty and worth of his person, in which hee hath so dignified our fraile nature, by assuming it upon himselfe and uniting it perso­nally to his Godhead; that hee hath exalted it farre above the most glorious and excellent state of the Angels in heaven. That Angels are the best and chiefest of all Gods creatures by creati­on, and in nature and substance farre more excellent then man in his best naturall estate of innocency, I have proved in this Do­ctrine. And yet Christ taking upon him our nature, which was far inferiour to the Angels, and uniting it personally to himselfe, as he is the eternall Sonne of God, hath dignified, and exalted, and crowned it with glory and excellency farre above all Angels, Princi­palities, Thrones, and Dominions, Hebr. 2. 7. so that the holy, elect and blessed Angels exalted above their best naturall estate, to the immutable estate of supernaturall life, immortality and [Page 81] glory, doe adore and worship him, as David fore-told, Psal. 97. 7. and the Apostle affirmes, Heb. 1. 6. He is the head of all, and they all are made subject to him, 1 Pet. 3. 22. And so wonderfull is Gods bounty to man in Christ and so powerfull and excellent is Christs mediation for the elect of mankind, that by Christs mediation concurring and working together with Gods bounty, according to wisdome, and for the satisfaction of Gods justice, a ready way is made for them into the Holy of holies, the Heaven of heavens: and they are not onely exalted and elevated farre above their best naturall being, unto the blessed state of the glorious Angels; but also the holy Angels, with whom they shine in heavenly glory hereafter in the life to come, are made of God ministring spirits, whom Christ hath procured to minister for their good here in this world in the state of grace; so that upon him, as upon the Ladder in Jacobs dreame, the Angels of God descend from hea­ven to earth, and ascend from earth to heaven, and doe encamp round about them, to save and deliver them, as David saith, Psal. 34. 7. Yea, and when the evill Angels shall be judged at the last day, they shall through Gods infinite bounty, and for the merit and worthinesse of Christ, be advanced to sit upon Thrones with him, and to judge and give sentence against the Divell, and all his Angels, as wee reade, 1 Corinth. 6. 3. And therefore if wee had the tongues of men and Angels, we are never able to utter or expresse the infinite excellency, worth, and dignity of the person and me­diation of Christ, nor sufficiently to extoll, laud, and magnifie the bounty of God to poore mankind in Christ. And here we see that truly verified, which the Prophet fore-told, Isa. 64. 4. And the Apostle proclaimed, 1 Cor. 2. 9. that since the beginning of the world, the eye of man hath not seen, nor his eare heard, neither hath it ever entered into the heart of man, what good things God hath prepared for them that love him.

Thirdly, this Doctrine serves to worke in us a true love, and re­verent Use 3. Love and reverence the An­gels. respect of the Angels of God, as being the chiefest of Gods creatures, and by nature more excellent then man in his best naturall estate, and great in power, able to help us more then all other creatures, when God offers occasion and opportunity, and gives them charge over us. Every man is bound to thinke better, and more reverently of other men, who are in any gifts [Page 82] more excellent then himselfe, though they be all of one nature and kind, and of the same flesh and bloud. And God hath put upon the beasts of the field by nature a feare and respect of man, because he is a more excellent creature. Now the Angels are by nature and creation more excellent then man in his best naturall estate; and man in the supernaturall estate of glory, shall be but equall to the elect and holy Angels: And therefore, as we must ever labour to decline that servile superstition, and base will-worship of Angels, which is condemned, Colos. 2. 18. and must beware of giving divine and religious worship to them, which they them­selves reject and refuse, being our fellow-servants, and have utterly detested and forbidden, when it hath been offered, as appeares, Revel. 19. 10. and 21. 9. so we must take heed, that we doe not thinke meanly of them, as if they were but our servants, because they minister for our good: For in guarding us, and encamping about us, and in ministring for us, they are not our servants which owe us service; neither have we power to command them, nor ability to requite them for the least service: but they are the ser­vants of God, and of our Lord Christ, and fellow-servants with all Kings, Prophets, and Holy men of God; and as Gods Embassa­dors, and Princely Courtiers & Ministers, we ought to esteem and respect them, with all love and hearty affection. And, as in all places where there are Embassadors and noble Princes and Cour­tiers of great Emperours and Monarchs, men will have a care to beare themselves orderly, and to doe all things decently, and will be affraid and ashamed to commit any absurdity, or beare them­selves immodestly: So let us in the publick assemblies of the Saints, and in holy congregations of Gods-Church, where Angels are sup­posed sometimes to guard us, and to over-look us (as the words of the Preacher seem to import, Eccles. 5. 6. and of the Apostle also, 1 Cor. 10. 11.) beare our selves reverently, and beware of all vaine words, filthy behaviour, and beastly drowzinesse and sleepinesse, as if we came to the Church like uncleane dogges for company only, or to lye snorting and sleeping, which is the evill custome and practice of many carnall people.

Fourthly, this Doctrine is matter of comfort to Gods poore de­spised servants, in that it doth assure them, that the Angels which Use 4. Comfort hereby to the godly. love them, and as friends rejoyce in their conversion; and as guar­dians [Page 83] protect and watch over them, are great, excellent, and glo­rious above all earthly men: And therefore, though the great men of the world scorne and despise them, and among such they can find no favour, help, or defence; yet let them comfort them­selves, and rejoyce in this, that he, who is higher then the highest, hath a guard, to whose care and charge he hath committed them; and that not of mighty men, in whom there is no help, but of Angels, which in power, strength, and glory far exceed the most excellent among the sons of men.

2. Corollary.

Secondly, in that Angels were created in and with the highest Angels are hea­venly spi­rits. heaven, to be the naturall inhabitants sutable to the place; hence we may gather a definition of Angels, to wit, that Angels are heavenly Spirits, or pure and entire spirituall substances, created in the beginning by God after his owne image, every one of which is distinct from another by a speciall existence, or proper particular being of his owne, which God hath given to have in himselfe for ever. First, in that Angels were not made and crea­ted out of the rude masse, without forme, and void, which is called earth, and the deep, nor of any other matter before made by God; but in the first beginning of all things were created perfect creatures in and with the highest heavens, the lively and proper in­habitants of them: Hence it necessarily followes, that they are pure heavenly spirits, and intire spirituall substances, not parts of any body or person, not compounded of any matter first made, and of a forme thereto added afterwards; and therefore have a proper existence and being, every one in himselfe, which cannot be dissolved, but in respect of second causes remaines immortall: so that this definition, and every branch thereof flowes from the former Doctrine, as a naturall Corollary, or necessary Conclusi­on. And it doth excellently set forth the nature, and naturall be­ing and properties of Angels, by which they are distinguished from all other things.

First, in that they are called spirits, or pure spirituall substances, 1. this shewes their nature and being, wherein they resemble God, and beare his image, who is the one onely true Jehovah, who hath his essence and being in and of himselfe, and gives essence and being to all things, and by whom all things subsist, as that [Page 84] name Jehovah signifies, which he assumes as proper to himselfe, Exod. 3. 14, 15. and Isa. 42. 8. and who is a spirit, as our Saviour re­stifieth, John 4. 24. And by this name spirits, they are distingui­shed from all bodily creatures.

Secondly, in that they are called pure, intire, spirituall substan­ces, and perfect creatures, which have every one a proper existence 2. and particular being; hereby they are distinguished from the spi­rits, that is, the soules of men, which are not intire, complete, and perfect creatures of themselves by creation; but are made to be, and to subsist in an humane body, and together with the body to make up a perfect man. Hereby also they are distinguished from the breath of life, and the vitall and animall spirits, which are in living bodies of men, and other living creatures: for they are not pure, perfect, intire creatures, which subsist by themselves, but fraile vanishing parts of creatures, which continually increase and decrease, fade and perish.

Thirdly, in that they are called heavenly spirits, hereby they are 3. distinguished not onely from the spirits created here below on earth in this inferiour world, even soules of men, and all bodily spirits; but also from God, who is a spirit, but not contained in any place, no not in the Heaven, of heavens: but is essentially present in all places, as well in earth as in heaven, as the Scriptures testi­fie, 1 Kin. 8. 27. and Psal. 139. 8.

Fourthly, in that they are said to be created in the beginning by God, hereby they are distinguished from the absolute essence 4. of God, and from every one of the three persons in one God: for they are not created, but are absolutely eternall, without begin­ning of being.

Fifthly, in that they are said to be created in the image and si­militude of God, this shewes the excellent naturall properties of 5. Angels, that they are living, spirituall, and immortall creatures, indued with knowledge, wisdome, understanding liberty of will, power, strength, and activity to doe and performe great things wisely, justly, and freely, and so to resemble God in his glorious attributes and workes.

Sixthly, in that they are said to be distinguished one from an­other 6. by a proper and particular subsistence and being, which eve­ry one hath by himselfe; this shewes that Angels are not one [Page 85] common spirit, breathed into the highest heavens, and every one a part of that one spirit; but they are every one a whole sub­stance or person by himselfe, as Augustine saith, Enchirid. 18. Enchirid. ad Laur. cap. 18. 7.

Lastly, in that every one is said to have a proper existence and particular being, which God hath given him to have in himselfe, by which he differs from the rest; this necessarily implies, that Angels are finite, and limited both in their substance and num­ber, and are mutable, not infinite and unchangeable, as God is. This is the definition, which in the severall parts and branches thereof doth fully set forth the nature and naturall properties of Angels. I proceed to the confirmation of the severall parts in or­der.

First, that Angels are spirits, or spirituall substances, the holy 1. They are spirits. Scriptures affirme most clearly, Psal. 104. 4. and Heb. 1. 7. where it is said, that he maketh his Angels spirits. And Hebr. 1. 14. where they are called ministring spirits. And lest any should thinke or imagine, that Angels are not spirits by nature and creation, but by grace and communion of the Holy Ghost, which is given to the elect Angels in and by Christ, and by which they become ho­ly, and are settled in the immutable state of eternall blessednesse, we have most cleare testimonies in those Scriptures, which call not onely the good and elect Angels spirits, as Act. 23. 9. and the places before cited; but also the evill Angels of Satan, even the Divell himselfe and his Angels, which in respect of their substance which they still retaine, though they have lost their goodnesse and uprightnesse, are still called spirits, as Levit. 20. 27. 1 Sam. 16. 1 Kin. 22. Matth. 8. 16. Act. 5. 16. Ephes. 2. 2. where the Divell speaking in false Prophets, and his spirit of fury in Saul, and of lying in Ahabs Prophets, and his evill Angels possessing divers persons, and cast out by Christ and his Apostles, are called evill and un­clean spirits.

Secondly, that Angels are entire and complete spirituall sub­stances, 2. Entire, & complete spirits. and perfect creatures, which have every one a proper ex­istence and being in himselfe, the holy Scriptures prove most clearly by divers reasons: First, by naming some of them by pro­per and distinct names, as the Angell which was sent to Daniel, Dan. 8. 16. and to salute the Virgin Mary, Luke 1. is called Gabriel. Se­condly, by giving them such titles, and ascribing and assigning [Page 86] to them such offices as belong to none but complete substances and persons, which have a proper and personall existence: as for example, they are called the sons of God, Job 1. 6. and 38. 7. They are called Gods messengers and ministers, as appeares by their He­brew and Greek names, and by Scriptures, Matth. 4. 11. and Heb. 1. 14. They have the office of watchers and guardians, which have charge given over the elect, and encamp about the righteous, to guard and defend them, and observe and behold the face of God, ready to be at his beck for the defence of his little ones, as ap­peares, Num. 22. 22. Psal. 34. 7. and 91. 10. Dan. 4. 13. and Matth. 18. 20.

Thirdly, the Scriptures doe plainly shew, that Angels doe wil­lingly and readily, and by themselves performe perfect and com­plete actions and workes, which none can doe but perfect crea­tures, which have a proper subsistence by themselves: as for ex­ample, that in the first creation as soon as they were created, they did sing together, and lift up their voice, Job 38. 7. that they praise God, hearken to the voice of his word, and keep his commandements, Psal. 103. 20. and 149. 2. that they have appeared and spoken to men, as to Gideon, Judg. 6. to the father of Sampson, Judg. 12. and to E­liah, 1 Kin. 19. that they have comforted Christ in his agony, Luke 22. rolled the stone from his sepulchre, Matth. 28. opened the prison doores, and set the Apostles at liberty, Act. 5. and 12. and have smitten and destroyed thousands of men in a night, as 2 Kin. 19. and rejoyce over sinners which repent.

Fourthly, the Scriptures reckon up Angels not among those inspirations, motions, or affections, which proceed from Gods Spirit, or any other person or substance; but among perfect crea­tures, and spirituall substances, which live, and move, and subsist by themselves, and not in another substance; and so the Spirit of God speakes of them, Psal. 149. 5. and in all the places, where they are said to come from heaven to earth, and to be sent from God unto men.

The third point in the definition is, That Angels are heavenly 3. Heavenly spirits. spirits, that is, neither made of any bodily substance, nor com­pounded of any elements, or creatures of the visible world, but of a pure and heavenly nature, made to dwell in the highest heaven, as in their proper and naturall place of habitation, and there [Page 87] have their continuall residence. This is manifestly proved by the former Doctrine, and also by those Scriptures which testifie, that they alwaies, and continually in heaven behold the face of God, as Matth. 18. 10. and that they are the heavenly host, Luke 2. 13. and Spirits of heaven, Zach. 6. 5. And there they encamping, are in a moment as ready to defend the righteous, and to guard the Church militant on earth, and avenge all wrongs done to Gods little ones, as if they were here present on earth: for in the twinck­ling of an eye, they can descend from heaven to earth, and deliver the godly, and stay the hand of their enemies, and smite them with death, as we see by the army of Angels coming from heaven, and guarding Elisha, so soon as he called upon God, 2 Kin. 6. and by the Angell of God, which, at the praier of Hezekiah, destroyed all the army of the Assyrians in one night: and at our Saviours praier in his agony, appearing presently from heaven, and com­forting him. In a word, our Saviour affirmes, that spirits have not flesh and bones, Luke 24. 39. They cannot be seen with bodily eies, nor felt by bodily hands, as corporall things may be: Therefore Angels, being spirits, are not corporall, nor compounded of bo­dily elements, but are pure, and invisible, as the Apostle cals them, Colos. 1. 16.

The fourth point to wit, That Angels were created by God in 4. the beginning, and God hath given to them their being, is aboun­dantly proved in divers Doctrines before: I need not say any more of it.

The fifth point is, That Angels were created in the image of 5. They are like to God. 1. 2. God, and doe in many respects resemble God more then any o­ther creatures: First, in their very substance and naturall being; for as God is a spirit, so they are spirits, yea pure spirits, and in that respect resemble God more then any other creatures. Secondly, as God is absolutely pure and simple; so they are more pure and simple then any other creatures, and have no corporall or visible substance in them. Thirdly, as God is the living God, and even 3. life it selfe; and as he is infinite in wisdome, knowledge, good­nesse, and power, and doth all things freely of himselfe, according to the good pleasure of his owne will; also is in and of himselfe most glorious and blessed for ever, and with him is no variable­nesse, or shadow of turning: so Angels are most quick, active, and [Page 88] lively spirits, the most excellent of all Gods creatures in wis­dome, knowledge, and liberty of will, and in all goodnesse, and good will towards men: they are also great in power, and excell in strength, Psal. 103. 20. and are called the blessed and glorious An­gels of light; heaven, the place of blisse, is their habitation: And as they are incorporeall spirits, which cannot be dissolved and die, as men doe, when their soules are separated from their bodies, and the whole person is dissolved: so, and in that respect, they are im­mortall, & do more resemble God, who only hath immortality, then any other creatures doe by nature: All these things, to wit, the lively strength, activity, knowledge, wisdome, free-will, glory, power, and blessed estate of Angels, wherein they were created, the Scriptures doe most clearly testifie and declare, where they af­firme, that the Angels doe see Gods face, who is all in all, and that they look into all the mysteries, know the manifold wisdome of God concerning the salvation of the Church, 1 Pet. 1. 12. and Ephes. 3. 10. and have great joy in heaven over sinners which repent; and doe relate great and mighty workes done by Angels, most readily and speedily without delay.

The sixth point is, That Angels are distinct and different among themselves, and one from another, by a proper and particular ex­istence, 6. and being: this I have fully proved in the second branch.

The last is, That Angels are finite in their nature and number, 7. They are finite in nature. and have their bounds and limits; and also are by nature muta­ble, such as might fall from the first estate, wherein they were created. That Angels are in nature finite, and cannot be in divers places, or in all places at once, is most plaine, both by this, that they are said to be Gods heavenly host, and Angels in heaven, that is, who are confined to heaven for the proper place of their dwel­ling; and when they are here on earth, are said to be descended from heaven, Matth. 28. 2. and to be here, and not there. That though they are many, and more then man can number, and in that respect are called innumerable; yet that their number is limi­ted, and that God knowes the number of them, cals them by their Heb. 12. names, and brings them out by number, the Prophet testifieth, Isa. 40. 26. That Angels are mutable by nature, subject to fall from the state wherein they were created, the Scriptures doe testifie, where they make this Gods property, that hee onely changeth [Page 89] not, Malach. 3. 6. And with him is no variablenesse, Iam. 1. 17. And where it is testified that God hath charged the Angels with folly, Iob 4 18. And many of the Angels did not keep their first estate, but left their habitation, and by sinning did fall from Heaven and are cast downe to Hell, and delivered into chaines of darknesse, 2 Pet. 2. 4. and Iude 6. And that onely the elect Angels are made holy and immutably blessed by the light which God hath added to them, Iob 4. 18. Thus much for the definition of Angels.

3. Corollary.

The third Corollary is, That the bodily shapes of men, and Of the as­sumed bo­dies of Angels. other creatures, in which Angels have appeared, were no parts of their nature and substance, neither were essentially united unto them, but were onely assumed for the present time and occasion, that thereby they might make fraile men see more evi­dently, and acknowledge their presence and their actions. For the heaven of heavens is not the place of grosse earthly bodies; and therefore Angels, being naturall inhabitants of heaven, have no such bodies personally united; they onely did for a time as­sume the bodies in which they appeared and performed some actions on earth. The wordes of our Saviour, Luk. 24. 39. shew that Spirits have not flesh and bones. Therefore Angels being spirits have no such bodies united to them as those wherein they appeared.

4. Corollary.

That Angels are confined to the places in which they are, How An­gels are in a place. and are in places definitively, though not circumscribed and mea­sured by them as bodily things are; Angels being pure spirits, doe not consist of parts as bodily things doe; neither have they any bodily quantity or dimension, as length, breadth, height, and thicknesse; and so they cannot bee compassed about, nor mea­sured, nor limited by any bodily space; but yet they are defini­tively in their places, that is, there and no where else; and their substance together with bodily substances may be in the same place; as the whole soule of man is in the whole body, and is wholly in every part of it and no where else, so it is with Angels.

5. Corollary.

Seeing Angels are by creation the proper and naturall inha­bitants of the highest heavens, which is a most spacious place, The num­ber of them very great. compassing about the whole visible World, and more large and capacious then all other places; as Solomon doth intimate, 1 Kin. 8. 27. Hence it followeth that the Angels are many in number, more then can be numbred by man, and so in respect of man innumerable. For we must not thinke that God, who in the creation replenished the Sea with fishes, the aire with birds, and the visible heavens with innumerable starres, and the earth with beasts and creeping things; and commanded man to multiply and replenish the earth, wouldleave the bestand most glorious place of all not fully replenished with inhabitants, glo­rious Angels, who were created at the first in their full number: undoubtedly therefore there must be many, farre more then man can number. And this the Prophet Daniel saw in a vision and testified, Dan. 7. 10. where hee saith that a thousand thousand ministred to the Lord Christ, and ten thousand thousand stood before him. Also in the Gospell wee read that there was a Le­gion; that is, six thousand divels in one man, Mark. 5. 9. And if there be so many divels, that is, evill Angels in one man; then surely the whole company or multitude of those evill Angels must be many. And the whole company of Angels, in the first creation of which some onely did fall and become Divels, must needs much more bee innumerable. And if that conjecture and opinion of learned men be true, to wit, that the Angels which sinned and were cast downe from heaven, are as many in num­ber as all the elect of mankind which have beene, are, or shalbe to the end of the World; and that they shall fill up the glorious mansions, and supply the roomes and places of the lost Angels; then surely the multitude of all the Angels which God created must needs, bee great and innumerable, farre exceeding our ca­pacity.

6. Corollary.

Sixthly the highest heavens, being the place of rest, and not Their mo­tion won­drous quick. of motion which is proper to visible and corporeall things, and [Page 91] being the place where God hath appointed that the eternall rest or Sabbath shalbe kept; Therefore the Angels, which were crea­ted to bee the naturall inhabitants of those glorious heavens, were not made to move with bodily motion, as bodily creatures doe: their coming from heaven to earth is not a passage through the whole space between heaven and earth. which would re­quire a long time; but, as it is with the mindes and thoughts of men, they are now here exercised about things present, and in a moment of time, in the twinckling of an eye, they are in the re­motest parts of the World, or in the highest heavens, and yet passe not through the space betweene: so it may well be, and we may with good reason conceive, that the Angels, which are of a purer and more heavenly substance then our soules, and more nimble and active then the mindes or thoughts of men are by nature; can in a moment bee present here on earth, and in the next moment bee againe in heaven. But howsoever, or by what way soever, they descend and ascend, it is most certaine, that they are the swiftest of all things created; and so much the Scri­ptures shew clearly in many places, where they describe An­gels with wings, and call them Cherubins and Seraphins; yea some one of them with many wings, which are instruments of flying and of swiftest motion, as Gen. 3. 24. Ezech. 10. 1. 19. and 11. 22. and Isa. 6. 2. Also we read that on a suddaine, even in an instant, a whole multitude of the heavenly host have de­scended from heaven and beene present on earth, Luk. 2. 13. And the Angell of the Lord is said to encampe with an heavenly host round about them that feare God, Psalm 34. 7. not by being here resident and abiding on earth, out of their proper place of abode; but by standing before God in heaven, and beholding his face; that they may bee ready in a moment when hee gives the watch word to present themselves on earth, there to deliver his elect, and to destroy their enemies, as our Saviour doth in­timate, Matth. 18. 20.

7. Corollary.

Seventhly, seeing the highest heaven is the proper place of Of the fal [...] and stan­ding of Angels. Angels, and this is the order which God did set in the crea­tion, that all creatures should keep their station, and not leave [Page 92] their dwelling; Hence it followes, that it is against nature, and contrary to the order of creation, that many Angels are ex­cluded and shut out of heaven, even all the evill Angels: And it is a thing above nature, even the supernaturall grace and gift of God, and a thing purchased and procured by the infinite power, excellency, and dignity of Christs merit and mediation, that the elect and holy Angels should bee made ministering spirits, and sent forth to minister for them who shall be heires of sal­vation, as the Apostle saith, Hebr. 1. 14. And here now oc­casion is offered to discourse about the sin and fall of the Divell and evill Angels; how contrary it was to the law of nature, that they should forsake their station, sin against God, and not stand in the truth, and to the order which God set in the crea­tion; that they should leave their dwelling, and exclude them­selves out of heaven, and be cast downe into Hell. Also here is occasion given to shew, that the elect Angels come to mi­nister for the elect through the supernaturall power and efficacy of Christs mediation; & that Christ, by supernaturall grace and be­nefits given to the heavenly Angels, hath obliged and bound them to himselfe, to obey him as their head, and to minister for the good of his little ones. But these things come more fittly to bee handled after the creation, when wee come to discourse of the confusion of the World by the Divels Apostasie and mans fall; and of the restoring of mankind, and the renuing and per­fecting of the World by Christ.

Now these Doctrines thus opened and proved, are of great Vse 1. Comfort by the mi­nistery of Angels. use for comfort and confidence to all the elect and faithfull people of God, in the midst of all troubles which befall them in this life; and when dangers and worldly enemies beset them round about; also for confirmation and strengthening of them against all the assaults, and temptations of the Divell. For if the glorious Angels which are ministering spirits for their good, which also love them, rejoyce at their conversion, watch for their safety, and are their fellow servants under one Lord Christ, be such heavenly, powerfull, and active spirits even by creation; so excellent in strength, so lively, quick, and ready at hand to help in a moment when God gives the watch-word; what need we feare or faint so long as wee cleave to God and sticke to his truth? Hee is a tender and loving father; and Christ our high [Page 93] Priest hath a feeling of our infirmities and doth pity us; he will be ready to help; and he hath mighty instruments and ministers, even thousands and ten thousand thousands ready to save and deliver us from all enemies, as he did Daniel from the Lyons, and his three fellowes from the fiery furnace. Or, if hee doth not send them to deliver us out of the troubles of this life; yet hee will at our death send his Angels to carry our soules with triumph to heaven, as Eliah was carried up in a fiery Chariot, and the soule of Lazarus is said to bee carried up by them into Abrahams bosome. Wherefore let us not feare either multi­tude, malice, or might of enemies; but carefully serve God, and confidently rest on the Lord Christ our Redeemer and Sa­viour.

Secondly, These Doctrines serve to discover divers errours Vse. 2. Confuta­tion of contrary errors. concerning the nature and substance of Angels; as that grosse opinion of Peter Lombard, who held that the Angels are cor­poreall substances, because the Divell and evill Angels shall suffer the torment, and feele the paines of hell fire, which hath no power but over bodily creatures: Also that opinion of the Gentiles, and Cardanus who held that the Angels were mortall and corruptible creatures; both these are here discovered to be erroneous. For the first is builded on a grosse conceipt, that the fire of hell is elementall and corporcall fire; which, as it bur­neth and consumeth bodily substances, over which it hath power; so it in time wasteth it selfe, and goeth out: but indeed the fire of Hell is the fire of Gods wrath, which burneth and tormenteth worse then elementarie fire; but consumeth not, neither shall ever be quenched, as our Saviour testifieth. The second opinion is also confuted by these doctrines, which have proved Angels to be spirits or spirituall substances; which, though they may bee stained with sin; yet they cannot bee dissolved, as men are in death by the separation of soule and body; not corrupted, as mens bodies are in the grave; but the evill An­gells shall live in eternall torment, and their substance shall ne­ver be corrupted and consumed, and the holy and blessed An­gels are immortall and shall live in glory for ever, and there shall be no end of their blessednesse.

CHAP. V.

Of the Creation of the Earth. The names whereby it is called. Pro­perties of it. All creatures have being of God: with Vses. The World is all mutable, and appointed so to be: Vses. The creation and redemption of the World, wherein they resemble one another: Vses. The holy Ghost is of one and the same nature with the Father and the Sonne.

THe Second thing created next after the highest heaven, with the inhabitants thereof the Angels, is the Earth, as my text here faith in these wordes, and the Earth. But wee must Gen. 1. 2. not here understand by Earth, this earth or drie land upon which men and beasts doe live, and move, and have their being; and What the earth here is. which is beautified and adorned with trees, plants, greene herbes and flowers; and replenished with stones and metals of all sorts: For that was created together with the waters of the Sea, and brought into forme and replenished in the third day, as appeares in the, 9. 10. 11. verses of this Chapter. But here by Earth, wee are to understand a certaine rude matter and masse without forme and void, out of which God made all the inferiour visible World, and all things therein contained; so the wordes following in the second verse plainely shew: The earth was without forme and void, and darknesse was upon the face of the deep. Now that wee may know what creature this Earth was, wee are to consider these 3 things; First, the severall names by which it is called. Secondly, the properties by which it is described. Thirdly, the meanes by which it was upheld in being, and disposed to bee the common matter of all othervi­sible things created afterwards.

First, the names by which it is called are three, 1 [...], the earth. 2 [...], the deep. 3 [...], waters. First it is called the The names of it. 1. earth because of the grossenesse, unmoveablenesse, and impurity of it. For the earth is of all elements most grosse, heavy, impure, and confused, not fit to move out of the place wherein it is; most untractable and not ready to apply it selfe to any other thing, and [Page 95] hard to bee turned into the forme of other things without la­bour and working of it. This first rude and informed masse which God created out of nothing, is here declared by this name, Earth, to have beene, like the earth, very impure and con­fused, dull and unfit for motion, resembling, at the first, the earth rather then any purer element.

Secondly, it is called [...], the deep, here also in the text, which 2. word signifies a great deep or devouring gulfe, as it were of troubled waters, also troubled and confounded with mixture of mud and myre; which, though in respect of the troubled mixture and confusion it hath a resemblance of earth, yet it is bottomlesse, there is no solidity in it, no ground or stay to bee found at all: Thus much the Hebrew word signifies according to the notation and common use of it.

Thirdly, it is called [...], waters, also in this text, because 3. of the waterish fluxibility which was in it; by meanes of which it was unstable and unsettled, and also because it was an huge deep like the great waters of the Sea. Now it may seeme strange, that this one and the same rude masse should bee like earth, and like a bottomlesse depth of myre or quick-sand, and like waters, all at once; which are things different and unlike one to ano­ther, especially the thinne flowing element of water, and the grosse, dull, unmoveable earth. And therefore the learned Ex­positors labour thus to qualifie the meaning of the words; they say it was a confused masse, even the matter of all the ele­ments mingled together; and because the earth and water are the most grosse and impure, and did most of all appeare in it, there­fore it is called earth and water, and the deep, which is a mixture of both. But in viewing, reviewing, and sifting the words thoroughly, I have observed something over & above that which by reading I could observe in others; to wit, that this rude masse was not suffered to lye idle one moment from the first creation, and bringing of it into being out of nothing; but being a meere unformed masse or Chaos, it had at the first a resemblance of earth, because the grosse matter of the earth was so mingled and confounded in it, that it chiefely appeared in the upper face of it, and so it seemed grosse and earthy, and is first called Earth. Secondly, by the operation of the spirit of God cherishing and [Page 96] moving it, the grosse thicke matter settling downward toward the center, it became immediatly in the upper face of it like a deep mire or quick-sand, which more inclines to water then earth, and hath no ground, stay or bottome in it; and therefore in the second place it is called the deep. Thirdly, God making the earthy matter to sinke and settle downward still more and more, all the upper face of it became more thinne and fluid, like unto impure water; and thereupon in the third place it is called the waters: though indeed, there was neither perfect water, nor earth, but a confused matter without forme and void, out of which all visible things were formed. Thus much the names shew unto us concerning this masse, which I propounded as the first thing.

The second thing is the consideration of the Properties by Properties of it. which it is described; for it is said to be Tohu and Bohu, and that darknesse was upon the upper face of it.

First, it is said to bee [...] Tohu, that is, without forme, even a thing imperfect, which had neither the nature, nor substance, 1. nor naturall shape or property of any perfect creature.

Secondly, it is called [...] Bohu, void; it had in it no formed 2. creature of any kinde to fill and replenish it; for this word is used to signifie the emptinesse and utter desolation of a land wholly depopulated & laid waste, and of a Citie brought to ruine having nothing left but heap [...]s of ruined Walls, Isa. 34. 11. and Ier. 4. 23.

Thirdly, it is said to bee all darknesse in the upper face of it; darknesse was upon the face of the deep. By darknesse we are not 3. here to understand any darke body, as aire or thick clouds of darknesse compassing it round, and over-spreading of it, as the dark aire and thick mist did the land of Egypt when God plagued it with darknesse; but this is the meaning, that in this rude matter there was no light, neither did any appeare in the out-side or upper face of it.

Now these properties, by which it is described, do comprehend in them that which in naturall philosophy is called privation, & is held to be a principle or beginning of natural things. For unto the making & generating of any bodily, creature or natural body there are three things required as first principles. 1. A matter capable of [Page 97] some forme, that is expressed in the names of earth, deep, and waters. 2. Privation, which is an absence or want of the forme which ought to be or might bee in that matter, for to give it that naturall being of which it is capable, and unto which it is inclined. This privation of forme, and this emptinesse of all naturall powers and properties which are required in creatures, and this darkenesse which is the privation of light, they are the second principle. The third is the naturall and substantiall forme, which is that which distinguisheth one creature from another, and gives being to every creature; that is, makes it to bee that which it is in the kind of it. This forme God by his word gave to the severall parts of this matter, when hee said, Let it be, & it was so. But when a matter rude, undigested and unformed is inclining to some forme, and wants it, there must be a dispo­sing of the matter to receive the forme which it ought to have to make it a perfect creature in his kind, and which it yet wants and requires; and that working, preparing and disposing of the matter, that it may bee fit to receive the forme which must perfect it. And this disposing of the common and rude matter of all the visible World is here expressed in these words of the text; And the spirit of God moved upon the face of the waters. Some doe here by the spirit of God understand some Angeli­call What the Spirit mo­ving is. spirit, which God used and imployed to fit and prepare this matter to his hand: thus Cajetan a Romish Cardinall and Schoole­man held. Tertullian. lib. 3. contra Hermog. saith, that this spirit of God was a winde, by which God prepared and disposed it. Theoderet saith it was the aire, which moved on the upper part of it, Quaest. 8. in Genes. But I conceive all these to bee un­sound opinions First, they are confuted by the very words [...]. of the text, and by all other Scriptures which ascribe the whole worke of the creation, and the making of the World, and all things therein wholly and onely to God the Father, the Word; and the Spirit, three Persons in one undivided essence. Se­condly, 1 Ioh. 5. 7. 2. it is against all reason, to thinke that God, who created the chiefest and most excellent of all his workes the highest heavens, and the Angels, the heavenly spirits, immediately of no­thing in a moment, and also the common matter of all the vi­sible World in an instant; would use, or did imploy any creature [Page 98] to dispose the matter and to fit it to his hand: Wherefore tho best exposition of these words is that which is held generally by the best learned; to wit, that this Spirit of God, here mentioned, is the eternall Spirit, one and the same God with the Father and the Son, by whom all things were made; and Hee is said here to move upon the face of the waters. The Hebrew word here used doth properly signifie the Eagles gentle fluttering with her wings over her young ones, thereby to cherish them; as appeares, Deut. 32. 11. And here it signifies the worke of Gods Spirit exten­ding his power upon this rude, confused, unformed and empty masse, and gently shaking it, and causing the grosser parts to settle downewards, and the more subtle parts to gather into the upper place, and so to prepare and dispose every part for the substantiall forme which God at length gave unto it. Thus you have the text opened.

From whence we learne, First, That man and all other creatures which live, and move, and have any being in the whole visible 1. Doctr. all crea­tures have being of God. World, howsoever they are engendered and propagated one by another, yet they have their whole substance and being from God, and he is the sole creatour and maker of them. That he made the first common matter out of which they were framed, the text here sheweth plainely. Also that the spirit of God did prepare and dispose that whole matter and every part of it, to receive that forme which God gave to the whole World, and every creature therein. And by his word he gave a speciall forme and being to every creature after his kind, as afterwards appeares throughout the whole Chapter. And hee gave the gift of ge­neration and propagation to every kind of creature which is propagated and begotten; and power to multiply; and without his power assisting and working together, no creature is formed at all: so that this Doctrine is most necessarily gathered from hence: And other Scriptures fully confirme it, as Act. 17. 25, 28. where it is said, that in him we live, move, and have our being; and hee gives life, breath, and being to all: Hee hath not onely made the heavens, and the earth, and all the host of them, and every thing which hath being, even all the changable elements, and vanishing meteors, in the first Creation, as fire, water, aite, earth, haile, snow, thunder, lightening, clouds, vapours, and [Page 99] the like, as wee read, Job 28. Psalm. 33. 6. and Psalm. 149. 5. and Isa. 66. 2. but he also frames every man in the womb of his mother; as the Psalmist testifieth, Psalm. 139. 13, 14, 15. and all children and the fruite of the womb are a gift, and blessing which cometh of the Lord, Psalm. 129. 3. And reason drawne from the proper name of God, Jehovah, proves this, that hee gives all being to every thing; and that as he is absolute of himselfe, so the being of every creature depends wholy on him; for so much that name signifieth, as I have elsewhere proved.

First, this serves to admonish us, that as wee our selves are Vse 1. He is the [...] Lord of all. the creatures of God, and he is our Lord to whom wee owe our whole substance, being, power, strength, life, breath, and motion, and are bound to imploy all to his glory: so all other things in the World which serve for our use, or can come within our reach and power, are Gods workmanship; he is the Lord and owner of them, and no man ought to use or imploy them, but by his permission, and in his service, and to his glory. There­fore let us devote our selves to God, and serve him by all his creatures, and for our life, breath, being, and all things, render due thankes to his heavenly Majesty, confessing that the whole World is his, and the fulnesse thereof.

Secondly, this Doctrine sheweth, that no man hath right or Vse 2. All our right is from God. interest before God in any creature, or in his owne life, limbs, and members of his body, but by the free gift of God: Yea, since mans fall and forfeiture of his life and all things by sin, no man hath right to any good thing in the World, but in Christ who is heire of all things, and hath by his merit and mediation procured the preservation and continuance of being to man, and to all other things made for mans use. Although wicked, carnall, unregenerate men, have a common right and interest ci­villy before men in their lives, goods, lands and possessions; yet before God (while they abuse their power, riches, and all abilities, to sin and to pride, and oppression in the service of their owne lusts) they are no better then theeves and usurpers: And let all such looke to it, for certainely God will call them to account, judge and condemne them, as for unjust possessing, so much more for their profane abuse of his creatures, and all worldly bles­sings.

[Page 100] Secondly, in that God, who by his infinite power can make perfect in a moment, and that immediatly out of nothing, the 2. Doctr. The World is all mu­table, and appointed so to be. most excellent creatures of all, even the highest heaven and the Angels; did of his owne will, and according to his counsell, make a rude, confused, imperfect and unstable matter first with­out forme, that out of it he might frame, and indeed did frame this whole visible World, and all creatures therein: Hence wee may learne, That as all this World is mutable and inconstant; so the mutability and inconstancy of all visible and naturall things in this World, is a thing which God purposed and fore­shewed in the creation of them; and all alterations and changes which are found in them, are according to the counsell of his will, and hee alone doth over-rule, order and dispose them. Many Scriptures prove this fully in all parts. Wise Solomon sheweth at large that all worldly things are subject to continuall changes, Eccles. 1. 4 5. 6. and David, Psalm 102. 26. testifieth of the visible heavens, which are the most durable parts of the inferiour World, that they shall perish, and shall waxe old as doth a gar­ment, and as a vesture God shall change them, and they shall be changed, and Isa. 40. 7. all Flesh is said to bee as grasse which withereth, and the glory thereof as the flower of the Field which fadeth; and 2 Pet. 3. 10. 11. the Apostle affirmes, that the heavens shall passe away with a noyse, and the elements shall melt with heat, and the Earth with all things therein shall bee burnt: and that it is God who over-ruleth, ordereth, and disposeth all mutations, and changes in the World. David also sheweth, Psalm 104. 29. 30. that when God hideth his face, all living crea­tures are troubled, when hee taketh away, their breath they dye, and are turned into their dust: and Psalm 46. 6. Hee saith, that, when God uttereth his voice, the Earth melteth, and Vers. 8. Come and behold the workes of the Lord, how hee disposeth desolutions in the Earth: and Isa. 24. 1. the Prophet saith, Behold the Lord will empty the Earth, and lay it waste; hee will ov [...]rturne the face of it, and disperse them that dwell therein. It is God who pulleth downe the mighty, and exalteth the humble and meeke, 1. Sam. 2. Hee restraines the waters, and rivers are dried up. Hee sendeth them out, and they overturne the Earth; Hee breaketh downe, and it cannot bee built againe; he leadeth counsellors away spoiled, and maketh judges [Page 101] fooles; hee removeth away the speech of the trustie, and taketh away the understanding of the aged; hee powreth out contempt upon princes, and weakeneth the strength of the mighty, Iob 12. 14. 15. 17. 20, 21.

This Doctrine serves to admonish us not to put trust or con­fidence Vse 1. Trust not in any earthly thing. in any worldly thing; not in the earth, nor any creatures in it; not in the face of the heavens, nor in the Sun, Moone, and Starres, because all are so mutable and changable. A faire Sun­shine morning may bee turned into a tempestuous day of haile and raine. When the Sun is risen up most gloriously in the mor­ning upon Sodome, and the countries of the plaine; before noone they may bee destroyed by a shower of fire and brimstone, and fruitfull lands may quickly bee turned into desarts, and barren wildernesse. The Sun it selfe may stand in the midst of [...]s course, and may bee turned backe when hee is going downe. Wherefore let us not trust in deceiptfull vanities, but still re­member that of the holy Psalmist, O put not your trust in princes, nor in any child of man, for there is no helpe in them, Psalme 146. 3. and that of the Prophet Ieremie, Cursed is the man that trusteth in man, and maketh flesh his arme, Ier. 17. 5.

Secondly, though there happen many changes and great con­fusion Vse 2. Thinke not changes in the World to come by chance. in the World, yet let us here take notice, that they come not by chance; and allwayes acknowledge, that they are in the will and power of God, and are ordered and disposed by his over-ruling wisedome. If to the wicked enemies and perse­cutors of Gods Church changes come for worse, to their con­fusion, and overturning of their power; let us see Gods hand therein, and let us give him the praise for working our delive­rance, and avenging our cause on our enemies. If changes come to our selves, and our peace bee turned into trouble and danger; let us humble our selves, as under Gods hand. If our adversity bee turned into prosperity, let God have all the thankes. If wee see just cause to feare great changes in Church or State, let us flie to God for helpe, strength, courage, and patience, and betake our selves to his protection, that wee may rest safely under the shadowes of his wings.

The third point of doctrine, which wee may observe from the Spirit of God moving upon the waters, cherishing and [Page 102] fitting the unformed masse to receive a perfect being and perfect Similitude of the Creation and Re­demp tion. formes of visible creatures, doth shew the concord and perfect similitude which is between the worke of creation, by which God formed all things by his word and Spirit; and the worke of restauration and redemption of mankind, by which he re­formes them by Christ and by his Spirit, and brings them to su­pernaturall perfection and blessednesse. As in the creation, God by his Spirit cherishing the rude masse did prepare, and fit every part thereof to receive a perfect forme and naturall being: so in the restoring of man kind, being deprived of his image and deformed, God doth by his Word, and by his Spirit shed on us through Christ, regenerate, renue, reforme and prepare us for the fruition of himselfe, and doth fit, and prepare us for supernaturall perfection and blessednesse. As in Ezechiels vision, the wind from God did move and shake the drie bones scattered upon the face of the earth, and fitted them by flesh and skinne to receive life, and to stand up living men in perfect strength and stature: So, by the word and Spirit of God, men dead and rotten in sinnes and sinfull corruption, are, by the Spi­rit of God breathed through Christ, renued after his image, and fitted by the life of grace, for the eternall life of glory, Ezech. 37. The Spirit of God (as our Saviour testifieth) is like the wind, which bloweth where it listeth: it is hee, which doth frame us after Gods image in our new birth, Ioh. 3. 5, 8. and fits us for the Kingdome of glory. Wee are as farre from God, and from Christ, and as void of his image and of all Spirituall life, as the rude masse was of all forme in the first creation; untill the Spirit of God bee given to us in Christ to dwell in us, and renue us, as the Apostle sheweth, Rom. 8. 9. 13. Ephes. 2. 18. 22. and Tit. 3. 5. 6.

Wherefore, as wee desire to be made like unto Christ in the image of glory, and to see, and enjoy God in his heavenly Vse 1. Kingdom, where all fulnesse of perfection and blessednesse is to bee found; So let us by the consideration of this Doctrine bee stirred up to thirst after the river of the water of life, even the gifts and graces of the holy Ghost, and never rest satisfied, till wee feele within us the testimony of the Spirit of Christ wit­nessing with our Spirits that wee are the children of God, [Page 103] and till wee feele our selves sanctified throughout both in soule and body, and holinesse engraven upon our hearts without which none can see God.

Secondly, seeing the Spirit of God is he who prepares men Vse 2. for supernaturall perfection, and there is no communion to be had with Christ, nor participation of his merits and saving benefits to salvation, except men have the Spirit of God dwelling in them, and of profane and carnall sons of Adam, making them holy, and spirituall sons of God; Let us not count it any shame or reproach to us, that profane mockers of these last times doe, in mockery and derision, call us spirituall men, who ascribe all good motions which are in us to the Spirit of God dwelling in us, & directing us in all our wayes. We doe not deny, but that all Enthusiasts, and other men of fanaticall Spirit, doe most profanely, and sacrilegiously Father their owne fansies, and lustfull motions on the Spirit of God, and therein deserve reproach and derision: but let men take heed, that they doe not, by loathing their hypocrisie and arrogancy, runne into Atheisme and blasphemous impiety, by rejecting and denying the Spirits dwelling in all Gods regenerate children, working in them all saving graces, and moving them to walke in the holy wayes of God which lead unto supernaturall perfection and eternall blessednesse. For, most certaine it is that as the first rude matter of the visible World was sustained and cherished by the Spirit of God moving upon the face of it, and was not otherwise able to subsist, or to bee formed into divers creatures, every one made perfect in their kind with naturall perfection: so the perfect stabilitie of man, in an happie unchangable estate; yea the per­fection of the visible World made for mans use, is the work of the holy Ghost uniting man to to God in Christ, and gathering and reconciling all things unto God in him, who is the head over all. Although man and all creatures (as ap­peares in the last verse of this Chapter) were created every one good and perfect in his kind, with naturall perfection: yet man the chiefe, and the Lord of them all, having not as yet the holy Ghost shed on him through Christ, as all the regenerate and faithfull have, was mutable, and in that honourable estate of innocency hee did not stand and abide, but did full from it [Page 104] very quickly after that the Woman was created and given to him, as wee read Chap. 3. yea hee did not lodge one night therein, Psalme 49. 12. and by Mans sinfull fall and corruption, the whole frame of the visible World was made subject to vanity, and groaneth under it as under an intolerable burden, and with earnest longing waiteth for deliverance and restitution to an higher estate in the glorious libertie of the sons of God, Rom. 8. 19. 20. And although the eternall Word, the Son of God, All whom Christ saves, re­newed by the Spirit. had undertaken for man in the eternall counsell of the blessed Trinitie, and did step in to mediate for man, and in the first pro­mise made upon mans fall was proclaimed to bee the onely and all-sufficient Redeemer, and was fully exhibited in the flesh, and became a perfect Redeemer in his death and resurrection; so that in him is plenteous redemption, and matter sufficient to merit more then man lost by sin, even heavenly glory and im­mortality: yet all this profits nothing without the work of the Spirit. Christ with all his sufferings, and obedience unto death, and all his righteousnesse, and fullfilling of the law; are as a Fountaine sealed up, and treasures hid, and locked up in dark­nesse; so that none can partake of him or them for re­demption and salvation without communion of the holy Ghost; which God in our regeneration doth shed on us aboundantly through Christ. This Spirit dwelling in Christ and the faith­full, makes them one mysticall body with Christ, sons and heires of God; makes his satisfaction their ransome for actuall re­demption and reconciliation, and his righteousnes their righteousnes for justification. This Spirit also doth renue them after the image of God, and transformes them into the image of Christ in all holinesse, that they may bee fit to see and enjoy God; and thus hee brings them to the fruition of perfect bles­sednesse, and to the inheritance incorruptible and undefiled, which never fadeth: And Gods blessings are through Christs mediation poured out upon all creatures for their sakes: And hereupon it is, that all gifts and graces, which tend to make men perfect and unchangably blessed, are ascribed to the Spirit, as wisedome, knowledge, faith, hope, love, meekenesse, patience, courage, strength, prayer, and in a word all holinesse and per­fection: and whensoever God is said to give any of these gifts [Page 105] to men in an effectuall and saving manner and measure, hee is said to give them the Spirit of grace, wisedome, zeale and supplica­tion, as appeares Isa. 11. 2. Zach. 12. 10. Yea common illumi­nation and all extraordinary supernaturall gifts, which are given to unregenerate reprobates for the revealing of Christ, as the gift of prophecie to Balaam and Saul, and the change of heart in Saul from cowardly pusillanimity, to fortitude and magna­nimity; the gift of miracles to Iudas; also illumination, tast of the heavenly gift, joy in the holy Word of God, given to back­sliders, Heb. 6. are the worke of the holy Ghost, assisting them and inspiring them from without, for the Churches good; not inwardly dwelling and working in them for their owne salva­tion. Wherefore let us count it no reproach that wee have no hope of being in an happy and blessed estate, no assurance that wee are in the way to perfection, till wee feele the Spirit of God dwelling and working in us, moving our hearts, and con­forming us to the image of Christ; and that wee rejoyce in this, and this is our glorying that wee are not carnall but spirituall. They, who think it enough, for the obtaining of perfection and salvation, to know, beleeve, and professe, that in Christ there is as sufficient matter of satisfaction for the redeeming of all mankind; as there was in the rude masse without forme, matter enough for the whole visible World and all creatures therein, doe much deceive themselves: for many who know and beleeve all this doe perish; and none are saved or perfected by Christ, but onely they who are by the Spirit dwelling in them united to Christ, and regenerated and renued after his image. This Spirit is the earnest of our inheritance, and witnesseth to us our adoption; hee makes us new creatures and a free willing people, hee sanctifieth us to bee an holy Temple for himselfe to dwell in, purgeth out sinfull corruption, mortifieth the deeds of the flesh, so that sin cannot reigne in our mortall bodies.

There is one thing more, which I may not passe over here in 4. Doctr. silence, to wit, that this text doth prove plainely, that the Spirit of God, the third person in the Trinity, is one and the same God with the Father and the Son, of the same uncreated nature and substance, the almighty Creatour, and Preserver of all things in heaven and in earth, visible and invisible. To sustaine [Page 106] a rude matter without forme and void, and to make it subsist, is a worke of power, farre above the power of any thing created; and to compasse and comprehend the whole matter and masse of the visible World; and to assist and cherish by present vertue every part thereof at once, is a strong argument and plaine proofe of divine and infinite power and omnipotency, proper to Iehovah the one onely true God: and all this is here testified of the Spi­rit of God in these words, and the Spirit of God moved upon the face of the waters, that is (as the Hebrew word [...], Merache­pheth, and here used in the originall signifieth) did sit upon and cherish that mightie masse, as an Hen doth sit upon and cher­ish her egges, that they may bee formed into chickens. There­fore the Spirit of God is here proved to bee one and the same God with the Father and the Son, and the almighty Creatour, former and preserver of the whole World, and all things there­in. To which purpose the Scriptures also speake fully in other places, where the heavens and the host of them are said to bee made by the Word and Spirit of God, as Psalme 33. 6. and that when God sends out his Spirit, things are created, as Psalme 104. 30. and that God by his Spirit garnished the heavens, Iob 26. 13. and that hee is present by his preserving and sustaining power in all places, Psalme 139. 7. which places prove the Spirit of God to bee Iehovah the Creatour and Former of all things, and the true God, in whom wee all live, move, and have our being.

This point, which I have proved and confirmed by many other strong arguments already, in my discourse of the Tri­nitie; Vse. as it discovers the desperate malice, impudency, and A­theisme of the Remonstrants, the Disciples of Socinus, and Ar­minius, who call into question the Deitie of the holy Ghost and his unitie, with the Father and the Son, and his right to bee prayed unto and worshipped with Divine worship: so it is of singular comfort to the faithfull, whose bodies are Temples of the holy Ghost, in that it assures them that God is their portion, and dwells in them, and they are begotten of his seed in re­generation, and are partakers of the Divine nature, and heaven is their inheritance.

CHAP. VI.

Of the first dayes worke. What the light was. What it is, God said, Let there be light. How be called the light, day, and the darkenesse night. Of a day naturall and civill. That the night was before the day. How a day was before the Sunne was. Prerogatives of the first day.

VErs. 3, 4, 5. And God said, Let there be light, and there was light; Gen. 1. And God saw the light that it was good. And God divided the light from the darknesse. And God called the light day, and the dark­nesse hee called night, and the evening and the morning were the first day.

After that darknesse had continued upon the face of the deep, and the whole matter of this inferiour World had remained full of darknesse for the space of one night, God by his power­full Word created Light, the first perfect creature and element of the visible World, and commanded it to shine out of darknesse; 2 Cor. 4. 6. and this was the morning of the first day. In the words wee may observe these foure things: First, the creation of light in the 3. vers. Secondly, Gods approbation of it in these words, God saw the light that it was good. Thirdly, Gods separation of it from the darknesse, vers. 4. Fourthly, Gods nomination or na­ming of the light, day, and the darknesse night, and so compounding these two, light and darknesse, into the first whole day of the World, vers. 5.

In the first thing, which is the creation of light, the first of all perfect creatures in this visible World, two things come to bee sifted and examined for our right understanding thereof. First, the thing created, Light, what is thereby here meant. Secondly, the manner of creating it, God said, Let light bee, and it was so.

Concerning the first, I find divers and severall opinions of What the Light was the learned. Saint Augustine lib. 1. in Genes. ad literam cap. 3. and Rupertus lib. 1. de Trinit. cap. 10. doe by this light un­derstand the highest heavens, and the Angels, which are not a [Page 108] corporeall but a spirituall light; but this cannot bee the truth, for this light is said to bee, that which is called the day, and is opposed to the darknesse of the night here in this mutable and vi­sible World; the shining whereof doth distinguish day from the night, which cannot bee said of the Angels and the highest hea­vens, which were not made out of darknesse, nor out of the rude unformed masse as this light was, which God commanded to shine out of darknesse as the Apostle saith, 2. Cor. 4. 6.

Secondly, others, as Beda, Lyra, and Lombard, doe by this light understand a bright cloud carried about, and making a difference of day and night.

Nazianzene and Theadoret doe think, that it was the same light, which now is in the Sun, Moone, and Starres, subsisting at the first in one bodie, and afterwards divided into severall parts when God made the Sun, Moone, and Starres out of it.

Basil thought that it was light without a subject. Aquinas, that it was the light of the Sun made imperfect at the first; and of this opinion is Pererius also.

Catharinus held, that it was the Sun it selfe, made first of all; which is directly contrary to the expresse words of the 16. vers. which affirme, that the Sun was made the fourth day.

Iunius, by light, here understands the element of fire.

In this variety of opinions, I hold it the best, and surest way of finding out the truth, to seeke it out of the word used in the originall text. The Hebrewword ( [...], Or) which is here translated Light, (besides the tropicall and spirituall senses, in which it is used in those Scriptures which call God the light in whom is no darknesse, and the light and salvation of his people; and doe call Gods regenerate people light in the Lord) doth more properly signifie two things: First, that naturall bodie or substance, which among all the parts and creatures of the visible World is most bright and shining in it selfe, and gives light to others; as for example, the Sun, Moone, and Starres, are called Lights, Psalme 136. 7. and the element of fire, is called by this name [...], Light, Ezech. 5. 2. Secondly, it signifies, and that most frequently in the Scripture, the light, that is, the shining brightnesse of the heavens, and of the Sun, Moone, and Starres, [Page 109] and of the element of fire burning in a lamp or torch, or other combustible matter. Here I doe not take the word in this latter sense, onely for a shining brightnesse; for then God had created an accident or quality without a subject, which is a thing against nature of things created; for common reason and experi­ence shew, that never did any qualitie subsist of it selfe with­out a substance; by course of nature no light can be but in some created body, as in the heavens, fire, or aire. But hereby light wee are to understand, of necessity, some notable part of this great frame of the visible World, which God first framed out of the rude masse, which was without forme and void, before mentio­ned; yea that part, which is most bright, shining and resplendent; and doth by light and brightnesse, which is naturall in it, shine forth and enlighten other things. Now that cannot bee any of these lower elements, the water and the earth, for they have no such light in them; and besides, it is manifest, that they were formed out of the grossest and most dark part of the common masse, on the third day, vers. 9. Neither can it bee the spacious region of the aire, which is extended and spread abroad farre and wide, over all the round globe of the earth and the waters, and reacheth up to the etheriall region of the visible heavens, even to the sphaere of the Moone, and is called the lowest heaven, or [...], that is, the broad expansion or firmament in the midst of the waters: For that was formed the second day, as appeares in 6. 7. 8. vers. It must needs therefore bee the firmament of the visible heavens, which is called [...], The large and farre stretched firmament of the midle hea­ven, even the fiery or etheriall region, wherein God, on the fourth day, formed and set the great lights of the Sun, Moone, and Starres, vers. 14. 16. For, first those heavens were framed and made of the most pure, and refined part of the masse, which is the common matter of the visible World, and are most bright and shining, full of light and brightnesse; and undoubtedly as in place and order, they are the next to the highest heavens, so they were created next after them in the first day, and are here called by the name of Light, because all the light of this visible World is in them, and from them shineth into the aire and giveth light upon the earth. Secondly, there is no particular mention made [Page 110] by Moses in this Chapter of the framing of these heavens, among all the works of the six dayes, except it bee in this word Light; and it is most incredible that hee would omit the creation of them which are the most excellent and glorious part of the visible frame of the World, especially seeing hee doth exactly and particularly name, and relate the creation of all other parts, and the day wherein they were created.

I am not ignorant, that Aristotle, and the most learned na­turall Philosophers of his sect, did hold, that the visible heavens are eternall and unchangable, and of a matter and substance dif­ferent from the foure elements, fire, aire, water, and earth; and were not made of the same common matter. Also divers learned Christians and Schoolemen doe thinke, that these heavens were created together with the highest heavens immediatly of no­thing, in the beginning when time first began to bee, and are mentioned in the first verse; and that light, which is here said to bee made, is the element of fire; the naturall place and region whereof, the Philosophers held to bee next under the visible hea­vens, and above the aire: their reasons are two especially; The first, because there is no other mention of the creation of the firie element in all this Chapter. The second is, because the fire is the most pure element, and full of light: But these things are not of strength to overthrow our exposition. First, for the opinion of the Philosophers, that the visible heavens are immu­table and cannot bee dissolved, it is contradicted by the expresse words of holy Scripture, Psalme 102. 26. and 2 Pet. 3. 10. Also wee finde by experience many changes in those heavens; as new Starres & Comets appearing for a time & after vanishing. The Sun and Moone stood still for the space of a whole day, Iosh. 10. and the Sun went back ten degrees, 2 King. 20. Secondly, the vertue and influence which is in the visible heavens, and is from them naturally communicated to the lower elements, sheweth plainely that they all are of one common matter. Thirdly, that they were not made at once of nothing with the highest heavens, appeares by this, that the Sun, Moone, and Stars, which are the chiefest parts and ornaments in them were created after the first rude matter, and secondarily formed out of it on the fourth day.

[Page 111] Fourthly, that the visible heavens are indeed the pure element of fire, which is here called Light, and that the creation of the light is the creation of them, and of the firie element all in one, may easily bee proved by divers reasons. First, by the light and servent heat, which flowes from them into things below, by meanes whereof they doe beget firie meteors and lighte­nings in the aire, and scorching sumes, and burning flames in the earth, as dayly experience teacheth. Secondly, by the burning and consuming fires, which descended from those heavens in the destruction of Sodom, and when the Lord came downe on mount Sinah to give the Law, and when Eliah consumed the captaines and their fifties, 2 King. 1, and was answered by fire, which consumed his sacrifice, 1 King. 18. Thirdly, that these heavens are of a fierie substance, and indeed the pure e­lement of fire, and that in the dissolution of them, when the Lord by his mighty voice shall rend them and dissolve them at the last day, and mingle them with the inferiour elements; they shall bee all on fire, and in flames and flashes shall passe away with a noyse, and melt the elements with servent heat, and burne the earth with all the works that are therein; the Apostle doth affirme in plaine words, 2 Pet. 3. 11. 12. If they were not of a firie substance made out of the rude masse, but of an higher and super-elementary nature created immediatly out of nothing, together with the highest heavens, they could not bee dissolved and set on fire. Thus you see the first thing opened, viz. what is here meant by Light.

The next thing is the manner of creation; expressed in these Of Gods saying, lee light be. words, God said, Let there bee light, and there was light. I will not here trouble my discourse with needlesse questions, which are moved by divers ancient Writers, and not cleared concerning the manner of Gods speech when He said, Let there bee light; as whether it were a bodily and audible voice, or a spirituall, and the like. Certainly it was no sound of voice, nor any forme of words or speech by which God formed the light: It was the act of his Almighty power, by which he formed, and brought into actuall being the light and every other thing, even so as hee had decreed from all eternitie. Now the Spirit of God doth here expresse this powerfull act by the name [Page 112] of saying or speaking, for 3. reasons. First, because as the speech and word of a wise man sheweth his minde and declareth his will, so by this act of power, by which the light and every other thing was formed, God did shew and declare his eternall counsell, purpose and decree concerning the nature and being of them. Secondly, because God the Father by his eternall Word, the Son, who is one God with himselfe, did forme and make the light and all other things created, as appeares, Ioh. 1. 3. and Colos. 1. 16. and Hebr. 1. 2. Thirdly, to shew, that the creation of the World, and all things therein, was a worke as easie to God, as it is for a man to speake a word and to command a thing to bee done; and that God by his power omnipotent, and power­full and mighty word and command, can as quickly bring into being the greatest things, and performe whatsoever he willeth and purposeth with more case, then man can speake and say, Let this thing be. This is the true sense of the words, wherein the manner of creation is expressed.

The second thing after the creation of light is Gods appro­bation [...]. of it, in these words, And God saw the light that it was good: That is, such as God purposed to make the light, such it was when hee had made it; there was no defect in the making, or in the thing made; but God did see and know it perfect in the kind thereof, and did approve it to bee good, profitable and usefull, every way, for the purposes which hee inten­ded.

The third thing is Gods dividing between the light and the 3. darknesse which did over-spread the face of the deep, and pos­sessed all the rude masse which yet remained without forme and void. This dividing between them, was nothing else but Gods setting and placing of the firie and shining visible heaven in the superiour place above the confused matter which was full of darknesse, and settled downe in the inferiour place where now the inferiour elements are

The fourth thing is Gods nomination of the light and dark­nesse, and composing the first day of the evening, that is, the 4. space wherein the darknesse remained over all the deep before light was created out of it; and of the morning, that is, the space wherein light appeared before God set upon the second dayes [Page 113] worke, and made the firmament. This is expressed vers. 5. God called the Light Day, and the Darknesse he called Night, & the evening and morning were the first day. Here for our right understanding of this point, divers doubts and questions come to bee touched and briefely answered.

The first is, how and in what sense God is said to call the light 1. Quest. Ans. Day, and the darknesse Night. The true and full answer is this, that God did not onely call the light Day, and darknesse Night: but also did ordaine and appoint, that the time of light should bee the day, and the time of darknesse should bee the night, and that they should bee so accounted and called.

The second is, why God called onely the light day, and 2. Quest. Moses calls both the evening and the morning, that is, the time of light and darknesse one day, or the first day.

I answere, that Gods day, which is most truly and properly so Ans. called, is the time of light, and in it their is no night or darknesse. For God speakes of a naturall day distinct from the night: but Moses speakes of a civill day which comprehends in it the space of 24. houres, in which the Sun runnes round about the World with the heavens; which day includes in it a day and a night: and here observe that Gods day is all light, and mans day is mixt of light and darknesse.

Thirdly, it may asked whether the night, or the day went be­fore 3. Quest. in the first day of the creation.

The Answer is, that the night or time of darknesse was first; Ans. and it is likely that darknesse did over-spread the face of the deep the space of a night, that is 12. houres, before God formed the light, and setled the visible heavens in their place; and that after the light was created, it did shine forth for the space of 12. houres more before God went about to make the firma­ment, which was the second dayes work; and so the first day of the World was of the same length with all other civill or Astro­nomicall dayes, that is, 24 houres, divided equally between light and darknesse. The words of the text shew that darknesse over­spread all the masse of the inferiour World for a time, before the light was formed. Also in naming the six dayes of the creation, the evening, that is, the time of darknesse, is rehearsed first before the morning, which is the [...] of light. Also Gods people [Page 114] began their dayes of the weeke and of the yeare with the night, and reckoned the Sabbath and other solemne dayes from eve­ning to evening, as appeares, Levit. 23. 32.

Fourthly it may bee asked, how the firie or visible heavens 4. Quest. could by their light make a day before the Sun was created, seeing the light of the same heavens, together with the light of the Moone, and the Starres added thereto, cannot make a day, but it is night where the Sun is absent, and the light of it not seene, not withstanding the light of the heavens, and of the Moone and Starres.

I answere, that the light of the heavens without Sun, Moone, and Starres is sufficient to make a bright day in the place where Ans. they are, and there it is alwayes day, though by reason of the spacious regions of the aire, and the great distance betweene them and the earth, their light doth not shine to us to make a day of light without the beames of the Sun, but it is dark night in that part of the earth where their light onely appeares. Now in the first day before the firmament was made, that is the re­gion of the aire purged and refined out of the masse by the sin­king and settling of the earthy and waterish matter towards the center, there was no need of light further then the body of the heavens reached, that is to the upper face of the rude masse, not yet formed, but remaining rude and full of darknesse; And therefore so farre as the visible World was brought into forme, they did give most clear day light: and as all had before bin over­spread with darknesse for the space of a night; so all was now overspread with light for a dayes space, and so the first day of the creation was one halfe all night, and another halfe all day in all the visible World, even in all parts thereof which were then created and brought into perfect forme and being. From this text thus opened wee may observe divers points of instru­ction.

First we learne, that as there are three Persons in that one God which created the World by his own infinite power; so 1. Doctr. Three Per­sons in the Godhead. every Person is a creatour; and God the Father by his eternall Word, the Son, did extend and shew forth his power to the framing of every creature, and by his Spirit did give all forme and perfection to them. As the word Elohim, used in the first [Page 115] verse, notes more Persons; so here, and in the verse before, wee see the Persons distinguished, and all three working in the framing of the World and all the creatures therein. First, God the Father is brought in creating. Secondly, by his Word, that is, not by a sound of the voice, or a word uttered; for there was then no aire to receive such a sound; but by his eternall Word bringing things into being according to his eternall Counsell and decree. Thirdly, by his Spirit moving upon the face of the waters, and cherishing the rude and common matter of the whole visible World, yet void and unformed, and preparing it for the receiving of the severall formes of all creatures in the severall parts of it.

Which point excellently confirmes our faith in the true Vse. Doctrine of the blessed Trinitie, and confutes Sabellius, Serve­tus, the Socinians and Arminians, who denied the eternall Deity of the Son and the holy Ghost, and overthrowes their severall heresies and damnable errours.

Secondly wee hence learne, that all things are possible to 2. Doctr. All things possible to God. God; he can as easily and quickly by his eternall Word and power bring greatest things to passe, even bring light out of darknesse, and the glorious, pure, spacious, visible heavens out of the rude, impure and confused masse, which was without forme and void; as a man of nimble tongue and ready speech can speake a word. Which Doctrine other Scriptures doe aboundantly con­firme, which ascribe to God omnipotency, and proclaime him to bee wonderfull in counsell, and excellent in working; and that nothing is too hard or wonderfull for him to doe, as Genes. 18. 14. Isa 28. 29. Iob 36. 5. and 42. 2.

Which serves to stirre us up to feare, admire, and reverence Vse. God, to seek his favour and protection above all things, and to rest confidently on him for defence against all enemies and dangers when wee are reconciled to him, and have him for our God and our portion.

Thirdly, we may here observe, that God is wonderful in wise­dome 3. Doctr. God won­derfull in wisedome and provi­dence. and providence, in that the first thing created in this visible World was light, even the bright and shining heavens; which, as above all visible creatures they shew the glory and super-celestial excellency of God in their naturall frame and substance, so also [Page 116] give bodily light to the eyes of all bodily living creatures, which were to bee made to see, and discerne the glorious beauty and admirable frame of his visible works: for hereby it came to passe, that none of gods visible & perfect works of wisedome, were for an houre smoothered in darknesse; but were all ma­nifest, and Gods glory was clearly seene in them, so soone as there was a seeing creature able to discerne them.

This sheweth, that God hath done his part to reveale him­selfe; Vse and man who takes not notice of God in his works, to worship him aright, is without all excuse. And this should stirre us up to labour to see God, and to discerne him in his works, and to place all our perfection and happinesse in the sight and knowledge of him.

Fourthly, we may hence observe divers singular prerogatives of the first day, which is now, by the resurrection of Christ, the 4. Doctr. Preroga­tives of the first day. Lords holy day, and the Sabbath of all true Christians. That by many speciall prerogatives, God did in the creation foreshew his eternall counsell and purpose to make this day his holy day in the dayes of Christ, and in the time of the Gospell under the Kingdome of grace. 1. This is the first fruits of all time. 2. In it was created the glorious frame of the heavens, and the 1. 2. 3. first light of the visible World. 3. In this day God first shewed by his eternall Word, the Son, his eternall counsell and purpose, and by his Word and Spirit, began to bring his purposes to passe, and produce things into being. 4. In this day darknesse and 4. light were so separated and divided, that, while the night lasted, there was no day in all the inferiour World; and while it was day, there was no night over all the face of the earth & the deep, but light in all the World, which was then created and brought into forme and perfect being. 5. In this day God first shewed his approbation and his pleasure, that he approved for good 5. the things which by his eternall Word, the Son, he did forme and bring into being. Therefore without doubt most fit to bee the day of the Lord Christ, and sanctified and kept holy to the ho­nour and glory of him, who is the first borne of God, and the first fruits of them that sleep, and the light of the World, and in whom God sheweth his counsell, and is in him well pleased, and by him turnes night into day, and brings light out of darknesse, [Page 117] and brings us to eternall rest in the highest heavens, which were created in the beginning of the first day.

CHAP. VII.

The second dayes worke. Of the skie and things now created. All made by the power of God in Christ. The use of the firmament. How called heaven. All was created wisely and orderly: Vse.

ANd God said, Let there bee a Firmament in the midst of the Verse 6, 7, 8. waters, and let it divide the waters from the waters. 7. And God made the Firmament, and divided the waters which were under the Firmament, from the waters which were above the Firmament; and it was so. 8. And God called the Firmament heaven: and the evening and the morning were the second day.

In these words wee have abriefe historie of the second dayes worke in the creation of the World: wherein wee are to con­sider these five things: 1. The thing created. 2. The creation and bringing of it into being. 3. The use of it. 4. The name which God gave unto it. 5. How by this worke there came in an evening and a morning, which where the second day

First, for the thing created, it is in the originall text called by Of the things now created. a generall name [...], which may signifie any thing which is spread abroad, or stretched farre and wide, according to the etymo­logie of it. For the Hebrew verb [...], of which it is derived, in all Scriptures wheresoever it is used, doth signifie the act of spreading any thing abroad, & stretching it out, and laying it wide­open to view, as Exod. 39. 3. Numb. 16 38. and Ier. 10. 9, it signi­fies beating out of gold, silver, or brasse into thinne broad plates, that is, spreading them broad by violent beating, Exod. 40. 19 It is used to signifie the spreading abroad of the tent over the Tabernacle, Psalme 139. 6. and Isa. 42. 5. and 44. 24. It is used to signifie the stretching out of the earth above the waters farre and wide, Iob 37. 18. it signifies the spreading out of the skie and of the thinne cloudes; and 2 Sam. 22. 43. it is used to signifie spreading abroad as a man spreads clay by stamping it with his feet; and, by a Metonymic of the effect, it is used to signifie stam­ping [Page 118] with the feet as men stamp clay and spread it abroad, Ezech. 6. 11. and 25. 6.

These are the places of Scriptures, in which onely that word is used. So then this word [...], being derived of it, must needs signifie a thing which is stretched out like a tent or canopie, or spread abroad as plates of gold and silver are by bea­ting, and clay by stamping. The Greeke Septuagints transiate this Word every where [...], that is, a thing which though it bee farre stretched out, yet it is so surely established, that it abides still in the place which God hath appointed for it. And the vulgar Latine, with divers later translaters, following the Greeke Septuagints, translate it Firmamentum, the firmament, that is, a thing firmely set and established in a place, which cannot from thence bee driven out, and leave the place empty. And al­though this word may, according to the notation of it, signifie any thing stretched out or spread abroad, or laid wide open, and is once onely used to signifie broad plates of brasse beaten out for a covering, and that in the plurall number, Num. 16. 38. yet in all other places of Scripture it is used in the singular num­ber for the skie, which God hath from the beginning stretched out over the globe of the Earth and the Sea, as here in this Chapter, and Psalme 19. 1. and 150. 1. and Dan. 12. 3. and Ezech. 1. 22. and 10. 1. Now what this skie or firmament is, that is a great question among the learned. Divers of the An­cients, as Basil, Ambrose, Beda, and others, doe by this firmament understand the starry heavens. First, because it is said in the 8. verse that God called this firmament heaven. Secondly, be­cause it is said that, when God made the Sun, Moone, & Starres, hee set them in the firmament of heaven, vers. 17. Thirdly, because they doe imagine that there is a watery heaven above the starry heaven, which consists of water congealed like to Cristall, and doth temper the heat of the Sun, Moone, and Stars; and out of this heaven they conceive that God poured the wa­ters which drowned the old World, because it is said, Gen. 7. 11. that the windowes of heaven were opened, and God rained on the earth.

But others doe hold, that by the firmament here is meant the whole heavens; that is, both the first heavens, the spacious re­gions [Page 119] of the aire; and also the middle, that is, the firie and starry heavens; and the third, that is, the highest heavens. First, because it is said that God called the firmament [...], Heaven; and this word is used in the Scriptures to signifie all these three heavens. And as the highest heaven is called by this name, Psalme 11. 4. the Lords throne is in heaven, and Psalme 148. where it is said, Praise Him, O heaven of heavens: So the middle and starry heavens, as Gen. 22. 17. where wee read of the Starres of heaven, and also the airy or lowest heaven is thus called, Verse 20. and 26. where it is said, Let the fowles flie in the open firmament of heaven, and Psalme 79. 2. and Hos. 2. 18. and many other places, where wee read of the fowles of heaven.

But the best learned of later times have for the most part The skie meant by the firma­ment, held, that by the firmament is here meant that vast and spacious element and region of the aire, which is extended and stretched out, not onely round about all the Earth and the Sea; but also reacheth from this globe of the Earth and the Sea, to the starry heavens even to the spheare of the Moone: and this is without doubt the true sense and meaning of the word in this place, as appears by divers reasons. First, the Hebrew name [...], Reas. 1. (by which God called this firmament or large region, being compounded of [...], which signifies there, or in that place, and [...], which signifies waters) notes out unto us, that this fir­mament is the place where waters are engendered in the clouds, and which from thence descend and water the earth, and that is the fluid and waterish element the aire. Secondly, 2. there is no other firmament besides the aire stretched out be­tween the waters of the Sea, which are below and the under­most, and the waters above in the clouds heaven-ward, and from thence distill and water the earth, and did descend in great aboundance, and drowned the old World, when God dissolved the clouds, & so opened the floud-gates and windowes of heaven: The aire is the onely element which divides be­tween these two waters of the clouds above, and of the Sea and Rivers below, Thirdly, the airy region is that in which the Sun, Moone, and Starres doe shine and give Light to the 3. Earth, and in which their beames and light appeare to us on earth. The light of the starry heavens, and of the Sun, which [Page 120] alwayes shines in them, even at midnight as well as at noone day, is not seene of us as it is in the heavens, but as it is in the aire; for, by multiplying their beames in the aire, the Sun, Moone, and Starres are seen of us, and give light upon the earth. And therefore it is not said, that God made the Sun, Moone, and Starres in the firmament, or set them to have their place and being in it; but gave them to bee lights in it, that is, set them above to shine through it, and, by multiplying their beames in this fir­mament the aire, to give light to the earth, Verse 15.

Fourthly, the fowles which flie in the open face of the aire, are said to flie in the firmament, which God called heaven, 4. Verse 20.

Fifthly, the highest heaven was created in the beginning in the first moment of time together with the Angels. And the 5. starry heaven is the light created in the first day; therefore this heaven here called firmament is the airie region or lowest heaven.

Sixthly, in all places of Scripture wherein wee finde this 6. word [...], which is here translated firmament, wee may very well and with good reason understand by firmament, the large extended region of the aire; and it cannot be proved by any one place that the word signifies any other then the airie heaven enlightned with the beames of the Sun and the starry hea­vens.

Seventhly, they who here by firmament do understand the starry heavens, are forced by the words of the text (which say, 7. that the firmament is in the midst of the waters, and divides the waters above from the waters below) to imagine that there are waters above the starry heavens, there placed to mitigate the heat of the Sun, and the Starres, and that these waters drowned the old World; which is a ridiculous conceipt, groun­ded on palpable mistaking of divers Scriptures, and contrary to all reason. For the places of Scripture which speake of wa­ters above the heavens, intend no other waters but such as are in the clouds in the middle region of the aire, and above the lowest region of the firmament or airy heaven. First, the He­brew phrase ( [...] and [...],) that is, above the firmament, or above the heavens; signifies no more but waters [Page 121] that are above, heavenward. Secondly, the Scriptures doe plainely expound this phrase, and in many places shew, that by waters above the heavens, they doe not meane either the multi­tude of heavenly Angels, as Origen dreamed; or any Crystall orbe or naturall waters above the starry heavens, as Basil, Am­brose, Beda, and others imagined; or the matter of spirituall and supercelestiall substances different from the matter of earthly creatures, as Austen thought; but that these waters above, are the waters in the clouds above in the middle region of the aire, even raine, and haile, and snow, and such waters as flow from thence in great aboundance when it pleaseth God to open the bottles, windowes, fountaines, and floodgates of heaven, that is, the clouds; for the clouds are called the bottles of heaven, Iob 38. 37. and the fountaines of the deep, Prov. 8. 28. and the watery roofe of Gods chambers, Psalme 104. 3. and God is said to bind up his waters in the thick clouds, and the cloud is not rent under them, Iob 26. 8. and when God openeth the clouds and sends downe raine to water the earth, & to give to it the blessing of fruitfulnesse, hee is said to open the windowes and flood­gates of heaven, Gen. 7. 11. and Mal. 3. 10. And the lowest region of the aire, in which the dew is engendered of vapours and mists dissolved into small drops, is called heaven; and the dew from thence distilling is called the Dew of heaven, Gen. 27. 28. Psalme 133. 3. and Zach. 12. 8.

So then wee see that the firmament here called heaven, is the wide and broad spread aire reaching from earth to the starry heaven, and compassing the globe of Sea and land round about; and by the waters above the firmament, the waters in the clouds are meant, which are above the lowest region of the airy heaven or firmament. And thus much for the opening of the first thing in my text, to wit, the thing created.

The second thing is the creation of this firmament, and the manner of it. It is said, God made the firmament, that is, framed it, as hee had done the light the starry heavens, out of the rude matter before named, which was without forme and void, Verse 2. and this hee did by the same power and after the same manner, as he did the light, saying, Let there be a Firmament, that is, by his eternall Word the Son, by whom he doth exercise all his [Page 122] power, and performe all his works according to his eternall Counsell, and by whom hee sheweth outwardly his eternall purpose and will, as a man by his word doth openly professe and declare his mind and purpose. And thus wee see the Son [...] still worketh with the Father and the Spirit in the creation of every thing in the World, and without him nothing is made and created.

The third thing is a maine use for which this firmament was made to serve; namely to divide the waters from the waters, that is, the waters which are below in the Sea, and Rivers, and are mingled with the earth, from the waters which are above in the clouds; for wee finde by experience, that there is no other thing, which divides between those waters, but onely the lowest heaven, the airie firmament. There is also another use here­after mentioned, Verse 20. that is to convey the light from the Sun, Moone, and Starry heavens to the earth.

The fourth thing is the name by which God called the fir­mament, that is, [...], heaven. Indeed, according to the com­mon etymologie and notation approved of all the learned, this name most properly expresseth the nature of the aire, the place of waters and waterish clouds; and the starry and highest heavens are so called by reason that they appeare to us, in our fight, to be one, and the same common body; or else by a me­taphore, because there is a great similitude between them and the aire, in respect of their purity and brightnesse; or (as I have formerly noted) this word [...], when it is the proper name of the highst heaven, may have another derivation of [...], which sig­nifieth there doubled, or made in the forme of the duall number; and so it is as much as if one should say there, there, that is, there is the place of all places, there is the best being in the heaven of hea­vens: and here wee may observe, what manifold and wonderfull wisedome there is in the names which God hath given to crea­tures which hee himselfe named.

The fifth and last thing to bee considered in this text, which How a day without the Sun. is a point of greatest difficultie, is, How by the framing and continuance of this worke, there came in an evening and a morning, which are the second day. The Sun was not yet created to shine and to give clear day light, such as wee now [Page 123] have, and therefore how could there bee a day or a morning? And the light, that is, the bright frame of the firie heavens being extended over all the inferiour masse of the inferiour ele­ments, not yet formed, how could there bee an evening or night, and so a whole civill day, as the text here speakes? All that the learned have devised and written for the removing of these doubts, is this: Some hold, that the light which God created subsisting without a subject, did, for the space of 12. houres, shine and send forth beames, and make the morning; and againe, for the space of 12. houres, was contracted and withdrew it selfe, and so made the night or evening. This is the opinion of Basil, and Damascene. Others think that light created the first day, being a bright cloud which moved about as the Sun doth, did shine like fire one while, and so made the day; and was like a thick cloud of darknesse for another while, and so made the night; as the pillar of cloud which lead Israel; so Beda holds. Others thinke it was the light of the Sun created imperfect at the first, and moving about with the heavens, did make a difference between day and night equally. But certainly the light which God created being good, that is, a perfect creature in his kind, and so approved of God, as the words of the text shew; cannot with any reason bee held to bee any imperfect thing, which afterwards was altered, or any such mutable and corruptible light as was kindled and quen­ched; for God, seeing, and approving it for good, would not so quickly alter it.

Wherefore I take the evening or night time of the second day, to bee the time wherein God by his word and power was separating the aire and purging it, by causing the thick wate­rish and earthy part to descend and settle downewards to­wards the center. For all that time, the vast and spacious wide region of the aire, being not purified, remained dark and duskish, because the light of the firie heaven did not shine thorough it, and that was the evening or night of the second day: but the aire being made pure & perfect, and settled in his naturall place, received the light of the heavens into it for the space of 12. houres, before God began to create the other elements, which were the first works of the third day. And this was a day of light cleare [Page 124] enough for the creatures then made, though not so light as when the Sun was made; and this evening and morning made the se­cond day, as the text saith. And thus we see the true sense and meaning of the text, and what is the second day and the work thereof: from whence wee may observe some points of Do­ctrine.

First wee hence learne, that God proceeds most wisely and Doctr. 1. All crea­ted wisely & orderly. orderly in the creation of the World, declaring manifestly that hee doth nothing in vaine, nor makes any thing before it is use­full and necessarily for the communicating of his goodnesse to his creatures; but doth all for the benefit of others, and addes no­thing to himselfe, neither hath need to receive glory from any creature. If God had made the Sun and Starres before hee made the aire or the earth, men might have imagined that hee had made the Sun and lights of heaven not for the use of men and other earthly creatures; but either because hee had need of them in the heavens to adde glory to himselfe; or else to remaine for a time without use and in vaine. But in that hee made not the glorious lights at the first before the aire, through which they might shine and give light to the earth, Hereby hee sheweth that hee created, all things wisely and orderly; the most need­full things in the first place; and nothing before there was use of it; nothing which remained unprofitable for one houre; and that in creating the World, hee neither sought nor needed any addition of glory to himselfe; but made the glorious Sun and lights for to shew and to impart his glory to men, and his good­nesse to other creatures.

Let us all see Gods wisedome and goodnesse, and labour to Vse. imitate him in them; and as he doth all for our use, not his owne profit, so let us not seek any thing in the World for our owne vaine ends: but make the setting forth of his glory, the end of all our labours; and strive to doe his will and pleasure, not our owne; nor the will and commandement of any man, when wee perceive it to bee contrary and not according to the will and word of God.

Secondly, in that the light of the second day which shined Doctr. 2. onely in the aire, and through it to the earth and deep, was not a cleare but obscure light in comparison of the first day, and [Page 125] the dayes after the Sun, Moone, and Starres were made, not much brighter then the night of the three last dayes; Hereby God did foreshew, that the aire and this lowest World is the place of Satans Kingdome, wherein hee doth rage and tyrannize with great power after his fall, untill hee be cast into Hell at the last day; which also other Scripture [...] shew, as Eph. 22. where Satan is called the Prince of the aire, and Revel. 16. 17. the Kingdome of Satan is called the aire, and Ioh. 14. 30. our Saviour calls him the Prince of this World.

Wherefore let us not place our felicity here in the things Vse. of this World, nor hope for peace and rest in this lowest airy heaven where Satan ruleth and rageth. Hee who preacheth for things here, hee speakes into the aire, 1 Cor. 14. 9. Hee who wrastleth for a prize here, hee beateth the aire, and strives for uncertainties, 1 Cor. 9. 26. Let us looke up higher to the Heaven of heavens, to the Country and City, which is above, and where Christ is, there let our heart bee, Verse 9.

CHAP. VIII.

The third dayes worke. Of Water and Earth, distinct elements. Of the names of Earth and Sea. Of Herbes, Plants, and Trees. All earthly things, nothing to God. Wee are Pilgrimes on earth: Vses. God ruleth the most tumultuous creatures: Vse.

ANd God said, Let the waters under the Heaven bee gathered Verse 9. together unto one place, and let the drie land appeare; and it was so, Verse 10. And God called the drie land Earth, and the gathering together of the Waters called hee Seas, and God saw that it was good, Verse 11. And God said, Let the Earth bring forth grasse, herbe yeelding seed; and the fruit tree yeelding fruit after his kind, whose seed is in it selfe upon the Earth; and it was so, Verse 12. And the Earth brought forth grasse, and herbe yeelding seed after his kind, and the tree yeelding fruit, whose seed was in it selfe after his kind; and God saw that it was good, Verse 13. And the evening and the morning, were the third day.

[Page 126] The third dayes worke, is the creation of the Earth and the Seas, and the separating of them one from another in place, and the calling of them by their names; also the creation of the Herbes, Plants, and Trees out of the Earth, all which made up a third dayes worke.

In the 9. verse, wee have the creation of the two grossest and lowest elements, the Water and the Earth, laid downe very briefely, and withall the separation of the Water from the Earth into one place, and the appearance of the earth above the waters.

The first words, (And God said,) shew, that God by his eter­nall Word the Son, created these inferiour elements, and all thing in them; and still the Son works with the Father in all the works of creation.

These next words, (Let the waters under the heaeen bee ga­thered together unto one place, and let the drie land appeare) seeme not to speake at all of the creation of the waters or of the earth; but onely of the separation of the waters into one place, and causing the dry land to appeare by it selfe. Some Expositors gather from these words, that the earth, and the waters were created before, and that the earth being made perfectly round in the lowest place, and framed of the heaviest and grossest part of the rude matter, which settled about the center, was all co­vered with the waters which were made of the purer part of that rude masse, which remained after the creation of the spa­cious firmament the airie heaven, and the naturall place of the waters was above the earth, betweene it and the aire. I easily beleeve and acknowledge, that the earth, being made of the heaviest part of the rude matter, doth occupie and possesse the lowest place about the middle center of the round World; and that the naturall place of the water which is a purer and ligh­ter element, in which place God first created it, and gave it being, is the place next above the earth compassing it round on every side; and if the element of water were in quantity more then the hollow places of the earth could conteine, it would overflow all the upper face of the earth: or if God should bring the earth into a perfect round globe without risings up of hils, or hollow valleyes; the waters of the Sea would stand in the [Page 127] upper place next above it, between the aire and the earth. For wee see and find by daily experience, that as heavier elements do descend downwards when they are in lighter elements, and doe by naturall motion tend to the lower place; as for exam­ple drops of raine-water, being ingendered in the aire, descend downward, and the earth and every part of it, whether a stone, or lump of clay or clod of earth, will sinke downe & move towards the bottom in a lake of standing water, and in a vessell full of wa­ter. So also the lighter and thinner elements doe naturally ascend above the heavier, and seeke the higher place, and cannot but by violence bee kept under them, or in the same place with them; for wee see, that sparks and flames of fire being in the aire, will continually ascend upward till they come to the place above it; and if aire be closed up in a bladder, and by some weight held downe in the bottom of a pond or some great vessell of wa­ter; if it bee let loose by opening or bursting the bladder, it will presently flie up and make speedy way in bubbles to the top of the waters; and if waters bee either ingendered in the earth under the ground, or, by secret conveyances, bee driven from the Sea into the earth, it will continually spring up till it cometh to the top of the earth; and hence it is, that wee have so many springs of water rising out of the earth. But I cannot beleeve, that the earth and the waters of the Sea were created distinct elements before the third day; because no words in this Historie of the creation, doe, before this day, mention any creation of water and earth as they are elements perfectly formed and di­stinct one from another. Indeed the rude masse, which was without forme and void, is called Earth, and the Deep, and the Waters, not because it had the forme of these, or was any one of them; but was onely the matter, of which they were made; and because it was like earth, for the grossnesse of it; and like water or a deep quagge or muddy lake, for the instability of it. And al­though it is said, before that God made the airie heaven, to di­vide between the waters above in the clouds, and the waters below under the aire in the Sea and the Rivers; yet it doth not follow that these waters were created before, or that then im­mediatly it did divide betweene them, but that it was made to divide between them afterwards when they were created. Yea [Page 128] itis plaine, that therewas no raine in the aire, nor clouds, nor mists, nor vapours ascending up from the earth, till after the earth was furnished with herbes, plants, and trees, Chap. 2. Verse 5, 6.

Wherefore (omitting to mention divers needlesse questions, and unprofitable opinions raised and held by former writers Of Water and Earth, distinct e­lements. and expositors of this text) I will in briefe shew what I con­ceive, and what I gather out of these words.

First, I conceive that these words, And God said, Let wa­ters 1. from under heaven bee gathered together, (for so they run in the originall) doe implie two things: First, that God by his creating word brought the waters and the earth into being, and made them perfect and distinct elements one from another; and the water being the lighter did at the first stand above the earth, and compasse it round, & that is the naturall place of it.

Secondly, that God immediatly after, when the waters had covered the earth almost for the space of a night, and had kept 2. it in darknesse from the sight and light of heaven, then I say, God did bring the earth into that forme and shape which it now hath: in the round globe of it he made hollow valleyes, deeper in one place then another; and hee raised up the hils and mountains so much in height above as those valleyes are deep and hollow below; and the earth being a firme and drie element and stan­ding fast in this fashion; and the waters being of a liquid and flowing substance, and more heavy then the aire, did (for the avoiding of vacuity, which nature abhorreth, and to fill up those hollow places, which otherwise would have remained empty, unlesse the aire could have descended through the water) descend downe from the hils, and through the valleyes of the earth, untill they came into and filled the great hollow valleyes, where the waters of the Sea remaine, and which is the place of the Sea to this day; and so there is as much water in the Sea, as there is drie land appearing above the waters; and the depth of the Sea is equall to the rising of the Earth, and the mountaines above the banks of it, as some learned men have observed. And for proofe hereof wee have the plaine word of God. The word [...], used in the originall text, signifies gathering together into one hollow place, and Psalme 104. 5, 6, 7, 8. David speaking of the first foundation of the earth, saith, that God covered it with [Page 129] the deep as with a garment, and the waters stood above the hils: at his rebuke they fled, at his thundering voice they hasted away: the hils did rise up to their height, and the waters went downe the val­lies, unto the place which God founded for them; and there hee set them a bound which they cannot passe, nor returne to cover the Earth. And the earth was first under the water; and after by Gods making of the great hollow vallies, and raising up the earth and drie land, caused it to stand out of the water, and so to ap­peare above the water as if it did stand in the water, and were founded upon the Sea, and established upon the flouds, the words of Saint Peter shew, 2 Pet. 3. 5. compared with this text, and the words of David, Psalme 24. 2. Thus much for the opening of the first words, wherein the creation and situation of the earth and the waters are laid downe in the 9. Verse.

The next thing is the naming of the waters and the drie Of the name of the Earth. land. It is said, that God called the drie land Earth, and the gathe­ring together of the waters called he the Seas, and God saw that it was good, Verse 10. The names, which God gave to the things here created, are full of wisedome; the drie land now appea­ring firme above the waters God called [...], Eretz, of which our English name Earth is derived, and hath the sound of it. In the Hebrew, the word may bee derived of the verb [...], which signifieth running speedily, or running a race; and [...], which is a negative particle & signifieth not; for the earth is made to stand firme and neither to move from the naturall place of it, nor to run about in the place. The common opinion of the best learned is, that God called the earth [...], of [...], which signifieth where, being an adverb of place, and [...], which signifieth running, be­cause the heaven and the aire move and run round about it; and because it stands firme and is a sure footing for men and other creatures to run upon, and neither sinke, as in waters; nor fall and stick fast, as in waterish bogges, myres, and quicksands; to which I may adde another and more divine reason, to wit, because God made the earth and drie land, that man and other creatures, which are made for mans use might live and move upon it, and that it might bee the place wherein man should run his race towards heaven and happinesse; in which hee would not have us to settle our rest, as if wee were to live here for ever, but [Page 130] to run towards the better Countrie, which is above.

The gathering together of the waters, God called [...], the And of the Sea. 1. Seas. First this name is of the plurall number; because, though there is but one maine ocean Sea, through which men may saile to all parts of the Earth; yet there are many inlets, creeks, corners, gulfes, and breakings in, between severall Coun­tries of the earth; as the mediterranean Sea, the red Sea, the Persian Gulfe, the Gulfe of Venice, the black Sea, the south Sea, and divers others. Secondly, this word is derived either of 2. [...], which signifies to rage and to make a noise and tumult, or of [...], which signifies to shake, and to cast downe and lay prostrate all things before it. And indeed wee finde by expe­rience, that the waters of the Sea, being gathered together, and detained in the hollow place of the earth, doe, partly by a naturall disposition and inclination to ascend to their naturall place above the earth, and partly by windes and tempests lying violently upon them, rage, roare, swell, and make the mountaines as it were to shake with their rage and noyse. And when they breake through their bankes into the drieland (as sometimes it happens) they beare downe all before them; as the flood in Noah's dayes did over-run, and destroyed the earth, when God brake up the fountaines of the great deep.

But howsoever the earth is made to bee a place of running, and of toile, and travell, and the gathering together of the wa­ters into the Seas makes a great noyse and tumult, and rageth terribly: yet God saw that this his worke was good; and that both the Earth and the Sea should bee of great use and profit to man both for necessaries of life, and also for magnifying of Gods dreadfull power, wisedome and goodnesse in mans eyes, and therefore Moses here saith, God saw that it was good.

Another maine thing followeth in this third dayes worke, Of herbes, plants, and trees. that is, the creation of grasse, herbes, plants, and trees: Where note onely these two things: First, what were these things created. Secondly, how they were created and brought into being.

The first is grasse, or greene herbe, [...], which is that which of it selfe springs up without setting, or sowing. The second [...], herbe, bearing seed, that is, all herbes which are [Page 131] set or sowne, and increase by mans industry. The third [...], that is, trees and plants, which are of a woodie substance, which beare fruit and have their seed, which turns to fruit in themselves; they are not multiplied onely by sowing of seed, but live all the year, and many yeares without sowing, and multiply by rootes, slips, graffes, and the like. These were the things, which God is here said, by his creating Word and power, to bring out of the earth, every one perfect in their kind.

Secondly, for the manner of creating them; they were not created immediatly of nothing, nor of any other element be­sides the earth, and then put into the earth there to grow: But God by his powerfull Word, without any help of mans tillage, Raine, or Sun, did make them immediatly out of the earth, and every one perfect in their kind; grasse and heroes with flowers and seeds; and trees with large bodies, branches, leaves, and fruits, growing up suddenly, as it were in a moment, by Gods Word and power. And thus much I gather not onely from the words of the text, which run thus, God said; Let the Earth bring forth grasse, herbes, and trees: but also from the words, Chap. 2. 5, 6. where it is said, that God formed every plant when yet it was not in the Earth; and every herb, when as yet it grew not up; that is, before they had any seed, or roote hidden or sowne in the earth from whence they might spring and grow up; and also without help of raine or dew, or any culture or til­lage.

Now all these things being thus formed by the word of God, were approved by God for good and perfect in their kind. And so the evening, that is, the time of darknesse over the earth (while the waters covered it, and before the drie land appeared above the waters, which was about twelve houres, a nights space) and the morning (that is, the time of light after the drie land appeared, and the light of the firie heavens shined upon it through the aire, which as yet was most pure and cleare without clouds, mists or vapours, which time of light was other twelve houres) made up a third day.

Thus we see, that in the three first daies before the creation of the Sun, Moon, and Starres, the night was a time of darknes, and the day a time of light in all that part of the World where night [Page 132] and day are said to have been, and in respect of which part of the World they are called evening, and morning; as for exam­ple, After that the light, the firie heavens were created, and made out of the rude masse, full of darknesse, there was no more night or darknesse but all light in the heavens ever since (for they are a day and light to themselves) and that which is night and day, with us, is all alike with them, even cleare day light. So like­wise after the creation of the light, all was darknesse in the rest of the rude masse which was not yet formed; and the time that it lay in darknesse before the airy heaven was perfectly purified and made, is called the evening or night: but after that the fir­mament, that is, the spacious element of the aire, was created and brought into perfect being and puritie, it received into it the light of the firie heavens which shined through it, and the time of that shining into the aire is called the morning or day light; and this day light shines still in the highest region of the aire, above the ascent of the clouds; and there is no more night of darknesse in that region, but as cleare light as that of the se­cond and third day; onely in the rest of the rude masse there did remaine darknesse, untill God created out of it at once the two lowest elements, the waters and the earth; and the time while the waters covered the earth; and kept the light of heaven from it, is called the evening or night of the third day; but when the drie land, and the hils and mountaines of the earth were raised up above the waters, and the great vast hollow valley, which is the place of the Sea and receptacle of the waters, was made in it, then the light of the heavens did shine through the aire unto the upper face of the earth and of the waters, and so con­tinued untill the herbes, plants, and trees were made: no clouds, or mists, or vapours made the lower region of the aire darke; and this was the time of morning or day light on earth the third day. Thus much for the opening of the third dayes work of creation, and how the times of light and darknesse, that is the evening and morning, did make up the third day.

From this dayes work, and from the things created, and the manner of creation, divers things may bee observed for our in­struction.

First, wee see that the two lowest elements, Earth and Sea, Doctr. 1. [Page 133] though they appeare to bee great and huge vast things, yet to All earthly things no­thing to God. God, working by his eternall Word, the making and separating of them was but a peece of a dayes work, and all the grasse, herbes, plants, and trees, which are innumerable and full of all admirable variety, they were but another peece of a dayes worke; they were not onely made and brought into being, but also to their perfect growth, full of flowers, seed and fruite in a little time, as it were in a moment: Hence we may learne, that all this World here below, wherein the sonnes of men live together, with all creatures which se [...]ve for their use; it is as nothing in the hand of God, and of small moment. All the herbes, plants, and trees, which Solomon with all his wisedome could scarcely come to know, were with the Earth, Sea, and all Waters, made perfect in one day. This is that which the Lord proclaimes by the Prophet, Isa. 40. 15, 17. where it is said, that all nations are as a drop of a bucket, and are counted as the small dust of the balance before him; All nations are before him as nothing, and they are counted to him lesse then nothing and vanity.

Which Doctrine serves to admonish us to despise all earthly Vse. riches and possessions in comparison of God, who is the portion of the godly and faithfull; also it serves to confound and put to shame all proud carnall worldlings, who glory and boast in a little nothing; and to make glad, and fill with joy Gods people, who have a true right and interest in God by their spirituall union and communion, which they have with Christ by one Spirit, even the holy Ghost, dwelling in him as the head, and in them as members of the same mysticall body.

Secondly, from the name of the earth, we learne, that this Doctr. 2. Wee stran­gers here, & in a pil­grimage. World is a race and pilgrimage, and a place of travell, and warfare, and here is not the rest of man, neither is here his abi­ding place. This the Scriptures proclaime every where. Iacob the Father of Israel, who had the land of Canaan promised to him and his seed for an inheritance for ever; hee counted his life as a pilgrimage on earth, and saith in his old age, Few and evill have my dayes been, Gen. 47. 9. And David saith, Psalme 119. 19. I am a stranger upon earth, and Psalme 39. 12. I am a stranger and sojourner with thee, as all my Fathers were. Iob calls mans life a few dayes and full of trouble, which fleet as a shadow, and [Page 134] continueth not, Iob 14. 1, 2. Saint Paul cals it a restelesse race, like that of men who runne for a prize, 1 Cor. 9. 24. 26. and Heb. 12. 1. Wee are here like Noah's dove, which being sent out of the Arke found no rest for the soale of her foote till shee returned thither againe. Here wee have no continuing Citie, Hebr. 13 14. neither is here our rest, Mich. 2. 10. till our Soules re­turne to God who gave them wee shall alwayes be in a pil­grimage and never find quiet rest.

This Doctrine is of good use to keep and restraine us from Vse 1. dreaming of setled rest here on earth, and from seeking to build our nests sure in the tops of earthly rocks for many generations, and to stirre us up to put on resolution and courage to labour, and travell, and strive, and run as men doe in a race, and for ma­steries, while wee live on earth: For our life is short and fleeth away as a shadow, and the art and divine skill of gaining heaven, and getting the Crowne of glory, doth require much studie, sweating, toile, and industrie; and wee cannot attaine to it, but by hearing, reading, studying, and meditating in Gods Word day and night.

Secondly, it discovers worldlings to bee dreaming and doa­ting fooles, who put trust and confidence in things of this Vse 2. World, and build great houses, purchase lands, and large reve­nues, and think that their houses shall continue for ever: The Prophet justly compareth such men to a dreamer, who being hungrie doth dreame that hee eateth, but when hee awaketh his soule is empty; & in his thirst he dreameth that he is drinking, but when he awaketh hee is faint, and his soule hath appetite, Isa. 29. 8. This is the case of foolish and brutish worldings, who see how the forme and fashion of the World passeth away, and yet seeing will not see; but still dreame of setled rest and dwelling on earth.

Thirdly, though the Seas are such as the name signifieth which God gave to them, that is, troubelous and tumultuous, and doe Doctr. 3. God ruleth the most tumultuous creatures. dreadfully rage and roar; yet seeing, God is above them as their Lord and Creatour, and when hee made them such saw that they were good and usefull and profitable for man, this teacheth, that God ruleth over the most tumultuous creatures of the World, and maketh the most outrageous roarers work for the [Page 135] good of his people. First, hee makes them serve to shew the 1. power, dread and terrour of him their creatour, that all may feare and stand in awe of him: for if the creatures be so dreadfull and terrible, much more God the Creatour, who gave them their being. And as God makes them worke feare, so also admira­tion in men; so David sheweth, Psalme 46. and Psalme 107. 24. Secondly, hee makes them worke for the good of his people, and 2. for the safety of his Church; by destroying and devouring their wicked enemies, persecutors, and oppressors; as wee see in the red Sea drowning Pharaoh and his host; and as wee have seene in the year 88. when the Sea, wind and stromes scattered and devoured the Armado of our bloudy enemies, who came en­raged with furie, and furnished with all weapons of cruelty, and instruments of death, to destroy our Land and the Church of God in it.

The consideration whereof serves to make us east our selves Vse. upon God in all times of trouble, and to comfort our selves in him, knowing that as hee is the Lord mighty above all, and a terrour to the most terrible, and hath in his hand power to save us from all troubles: so hee is gracious and willing to save us; And though hee sometimes suffers the swelling waves to rise, and the tempestuous stormes and Seas to threaten, and put us in feare and danger, yet it is not in wrath but in wise­dome, because for the present hee sees them to bee good for us.

CHAP. IX.

The fourth dayes worke. Of the lights, substantiall bodies: The place of them: Their Vse; For signes, seasons, dayes, and yeares. Of the Sun, Moone, and Starres. No instruments used in the crea­tion. Note the great wisedome of God in the order of creation. This World not made to bee the place of our immutable perfection. Vses of each of these.

ANd God said, Let there bee Lights in the firmament of the Verse 14. heaven, to divide the day from the night: and let them bee for [Page 136] signes, and for seasons, and for dayes, and for yeares. 15. And lot them bee for lights in the firmament of heaven, to give light upon the Earth; and it was so. 16. And God made two great lights, the greater light to rule the day, and the lesse light to rule the night; he made also the Starres. 17. And God set them in the firmament of heaven, to give light upon the Earth. 18. And to rule over the day and the night, and to divide the light from the darknesse; and God saw that it was good. 19. And the evening and the morning were the fourth day.

These words containe a briefe Historie of the fourth dayes worke in the creation: in which wee may observe; First, Gods powerfull commanding the worke to bee done by his eternall Word, in the 14. and 15. Verses. Secondly, his bringing of the worke to passe by that eternall Word, in the 16, 17, 18. Verses. Thirdly, Gods approbation of the worke, and so perfecting that day.

First, wee see God still proceeds in the worke of creation by his powerfull Word, and saith, Let there be Lights. The things which hee commands to bee done are two.

First, that there shall bee lights in the firmament of heaven, that is, the Sun, Moone, and Starres, which are the lights created out of the first element, even that light which was made the first day, that is, the body of the visible firie heavens.

The second, that they shall bee for speciall use: 1. To divide the day from the night. 2. To bee for signes, seasons, dayes, and yeares. 3. To bee for lights in the firmament of heaven to give light upon the Earth.

That these lights are not bare lights without a subject, but Of these lights, that they are substantial bodies. bright shining substantiall bodies, which have light in them­selves, and send forth beames of light into other pure elements and cleare transparent bodies, no man can deny; for the Hebrew word here in my text is, [...], which signifies lamps, torches, or other things which shine forth and give light; and the words following, Verse 16. shew plainely, that these lights are the Sun, Moone, and Starres, which rule the day and the night by the light which they give to the earth.

The greatest doubt here is about the place where God com­manded them to bee, to wit, the firmament of heaven. For if Quest. [Page 137] wee take the word firmament of heaven for the spacious re­gion of the aire, as wee have expounded it before, Verse 6, 7, 8. then men will conceive that the Sun, Moone, and Starres, have The place of them. their place in the airie region, and not in the firie region of the visible heavens; which is a thing contrary to reason and expe­rience, and to the common judgement of all the learned, and to the holy Scriptures.

For clearing of this doubt wee have two answers ready at Answ. 1. hand, either of which may satisfie. The first, that as the word [...], heaven, signifies not onely the airy region, wherein the fowles doe flie, Verse 20. and above which there are waters in the clouds, as appeares Verse 7. but also the highest heaven, Verse 1. and the firie heavens, which are called the starry heaven. Gen. 15. 5. and the garnished heaven, Iob 26. 13. and which are the heavens next unto the highest, and in comparison of which the highest is called the heaven of heavens, 1 Kings 8. 27. and the third heaven, 2 Cor. 12. 2. So also the Hebrew word [...], which is here translated firmament, and signifies a broad spreading, or a thing which is broad spread and stretched out farre and wide may very well here in this place bee used to signifie the firie region of the starry heaven, spread abroad farré more large and wide, then the airy region, and then this is the meaning, that God commanded lights to bee, and made lights, and set them in the firie region or firmament which is above the airy firmament; in which sense the word firmament is used, Psalme 19. 1. and Dan. 12. 3.

Secondly, if any should not bee satisfied with this first answere, Arsw. 2. which is cleare and sufficient, but should still hold, that the word firmament is here used to signifie the airy heaven, as in the 7. and 20. Verses: Then this may serve for a second answere, that God commanded lights to be, that is, the Sun, Moone, and Starres, to have a being, and created them out of the firie heavens, in which they have their place of being: but hee gave them bright light for this end and purpose, that they might shine through the region of the aire, and might multiplie their beames in it, and so bee therein for lights to the earth. The words of the text in the originall doe not expressely affirme, that God made them of the matter of the airy region the firmament, or that hee [Page 138] there placed them: but onely that he gave them to be lights, and to shine through the aire upon the earth: & though the bodie & sub­stance of Sun, Moone, and Stars be set and placed in the starry hea­ven or firmament; yet they are lights in the airy firmament, and through it give light to the earth. And this I prove by a de­monstration gathered from the text it selfe: For where the Sun, and Moone, and Starres, are given to divide betweene day and night, and to bee for seasons, dayes and yeares, and to rule over the day and over the night; there God gave them to bee for lights. This is most certaine and manifest; for the Sun doth no other way rule the day, nor the Moone the night, but onely by their light & by appearing one while & not another in the severall hemisphaeres of heaven to the earth below: Now they divide the day from the night, and make difference of seasons, dayes and yeares onely in the lowest heavens and in the earth: for above, in the starry hea­ven, the Sun, Moone, and Starres doe shine all alike continually: there is one perpetuall day of light and no night or darkenesse from the beginning to the end of the World: It is the suns ap­pearing to one side of the earth for a time, once in 24. houres, which makes the day; and the absence and not appearing of it for the rest of the 24. houres to that side of the earth, which makes the night there; and both day and night make a civill day, and seven such dayes a Week, and four weekes a Moneth, had 12 moneths a Year, and the seasons of Summer, Winter, Spring, and Autumne, have place onely on earth, and in the lowest airie heaven, not in the starry heaven. Therefore God gave them; and set them to be lights, that is, to give light in the aire and to the earth.

And thus the doubt is fully cleared; and the first thing opened, to wit, Gods commanding lights to bee in the firmament of hea­ven.

The second thing commanded is the use of those Lights. The use of them.

The first use is, to divide the day from the night, that is, the time of light from the time of darknesse. For clearing or which point wee are to consider, First, what is here properly meant by day and night, and how the lights divide them one from another. Secondly, how there could be a division betweene day and night, before these Lights, the Sun, Moone, and Starres were made. First [Page 139] by day we are here to understand not the space of the Sun, Moone, and Starres, compassing the earth, which is the space of 24. houres; for that day consists of an evening and a morning, and comprehends in it one night; and some call it a naturall, and some a civill, and some an astronomicall day: but here by day wee are to understand the time while the Sun, the greatest light, shines and gives light upon the face of the earth: And by night the time while the Moone and Starres doe onely appeare and give their dimme light upon the earth, which some call an ar­tificiall and civill day and night, but others doe more proper [...] call it a naturall day, and a naturall night. The day in this sense hath no night in it, and the night in this sense is no part of the day; but these two, being the one the time of darknesse or dimme light, & the other the time of cleare light, are so opposite, that they cannot both bee at once in one and the same part of the World. Now as the visible World consists of divers maine parts or ele­ments; and the motions of the Sun, Moone, and Starres are most variable among themselves; so the day and night taken in this proper sense are most variable.

First, the day, as it is a time of light, doth in respect of some parts of the World comprehend in it the whole time from the first creation of the Sun and of the starry heavens, the making of which brought in the first morning or day-light; as for exam­ple, Ever since the firie heavens were made and created a bright shining substance, they have retained their light continually, and so there hath beene a continuall day in them, and no night nor darknesse; although the light of them, by reason of the vast di­stance, doth not make day here on earth. Also ever since the Sun was created, it shineth most cleare in the firie or starry hea­ven from East to West, and from the North to the South-Pole; when the Sun sets in the West from our sight, it shineth bright in the face of the full Moone, which is then rising in the East part of heaven, or else the Moone would bee darke and enclyp­sed: All the shadow which the earth makes in the heavens, by comming betweene the Sun and that part of the heaven which is most opposite, is very little, neare about the compasse of the body of the Moone, as in every great eclypse of the Moone may easily bee seene and discerned. Likewise that light which [Page 140] was the day light of the second day, continueth still in the supe­riour region of the aire, and in the lowest regions also when there are no clouds, mists, or vapours: And the light of the Sun also appeares continually in the most part of the highest regions of the aire, even under our Hemisphare, and in our Horizon, when the Sun is furthest from our sight. And as there is al­wayes day light in the middle heavens, so there is alwayes night and darknesse in the midst of the earth, and through all the body of it from the upper face to the center, which is the very middle and heart of it.

Secondly, in those places of the World which are directly under the North and South poles, the day, that is, the time of the Sons being in theirsight, is just halfe a year; and the night also, that is, the time of the Suns absence from their sight, is another halfe year.

Thirdly, under the equinoctiall line, which cuts the heavens equally in the middle betweene the North and South poles, the day and night are alwayes equall each one 12. houres, because the Sun, and Moone, and Starres doe appeare so long, and are hid just so long againe. And thus dayes and nights varie according to the severall parts of the World, and divers climats of the earth. And ever since that God did make the lights in heaven, the Sun, Moone, and Starres; they have made the division betweene the darknesse which wee call night, and the light which wee call day, as God here appointed. For the time while the Sun shines and rules, by giving greatest light in any part of the World, that is called the day light; and the time while the Sun is out of sight, and the Moone and Starres onely shine and rule, that is called the night, because it is a time of dimme light, which is darknesse in comparison of the Sun light, as appeares in the words of the 16. Verse.

The second thing, which comes to bee considered in the first 2. use of these lights, is the division and distinction betweene day and night before this fourth dayes worke, when these lights were made for this use.

For clearing of this point, wee are to call to minde some­things which I have opened before, and withall adde some few things more, which will make the truth manifest. First we [Page 141] are to know and perswade our selves, that there is no difference or division betweene day and night, but onely in this inferiour visible World, which wee see with bodily eyes: For in the hea­ven of heavens, which is above the visible World, there is no darknesse, neither can bee at any time; but there is the in­heritance of the Saints in light, and the light thereof is spirituall and to us supernaturall. And in Hell, wheresoever that is, there is nothing but blacknesse of darknesse for ever, 2 Pet. 2. 17. Iude 13. Secondly, the time of day-light, which is called the morning, and the time of night and of darknesse, which is called the evening, in the three first dayes did much differ from the eve­ning and morning, that is, the time of darknesse and light, in the rest of the dayes after that the Sun, Moone, and Starres were made. For the evening, that is, the time of darknesse or night, in the first day was onely the time while all this inferiour World remained in that rude informed masse, without forme and void, which was all over-spread with darknesse, and had no light in it: And the morning, that is, the time of light and of day, was the time after that God formed the light, that is the firie or starry heavens; for they were in themselves full of light, and had cleare day in them without the Sun, before the light of them was united in the Sun, Moone, and Starres: I say from the forming of them, untill God began to create the spacious airie firmament, it was cleare day in so much of the visible World as was perfectly formed, that is, in the firie heavens, which are called light; and that was twelve houres at the least. But when God began to create out of the rude masse full of darknesse the lowest heavens, the aire, which is a spacious re­gion, while the earthy and waterish parts were setling down­ward, and the aire was a purging and growing into purity; untill it became pure and cleare, there was a time of darknesse and dimnesse in it; which I conceive to bee the space of a night about twelve houres: And the time after that it was made pure and received into it the light of the heavens shining clearly in it, was the morning or time of day-light sufficient for so much of the World as was then created, which was twelve houres more, and made up the second day.

Then God began to create the water, and the drie land, and [Page 142] while the earth was setling downward to the center, and the waters, being made of the thinner and lighter part of the masse which remained, did cover the face of the earth which was created round in the middle of them, this was the space of twelve houres, and it was a time of darknesse upon the earth which lay hid and covered with all the waters which are now in the Seas and Rivers, and this was the night of the third day upon earth. But after that God made the great and hollow vallies, which are now the receptacles of the waters, and made the hils and drie land stand up and appeare above the waters, being gathered into that hollow place; there was a time of day-light for the light of the heavens, which then had in them all that light which is now gathered and united in the bodies of the Sun, Moone, and Starres, did shine upon the face of the earth for the space of twelve houres; in which God made the grasse, and the herbes bearing seced, and the trees of all kinds bearing fruits; and this was the third day.

Now after this day ended, God created clouds, and mists, and vapours; which, ascending up into the middle region of the aire, did make a time of darknesse, and a night upon the face of the Earth and the Sea; and this was the evening or night of the fourth day. But when after twelve houres God had made the lights in the firmament, the Sun, Moone, and Starres, then came in the morning, that is, the time of light; in which the Sun shining bright upon the earth made the fourth day; and ever since that fourth day, the division betweene the day and night is by means of the Sun, Moone, and Starres. For all the while that the Sun appeares and shines upon the upper face of the earth, that is the day-time in that place; and while the Sun is absent, and the light thereof is not seen, and there is no light except of the Moone and the Starres, that is the time of darknesse and of the night.

This is the first use of these lights expressed in my text, even to divide betweene the day and betweene the night.

The second use for which God made these lights and ap­pointed them, is to bee for signes, and for seasons, and for dayes, and for yeares.

First, they are for signes to men, both of things supernaturall, [Page 143] that is, to shew the glory, the wisedome and the power of God and his admirable love to man, in making such great, and glo­rious shining lights for his use; and also they are signes of things naturall, as of faire, foule, and seasonable weather, and such like; for the Pleindes arising, are signes of sweet showers, which make the earth to spring, Iob 38. 31. The dogge-Starre arising, is a signe of scorching heat; the Moone also by her change, and full, and middle quarters, is a signe of high and low tydes, and flow­ings of the Sea; and the divers colours of it, shew divers changes of weather.

Secondly, they are for seasons. For the Suns declining to the 2. South line, makes the shortest dayes to them who live North­ward from the equinoctiall, and the Autumne and Winter sea­son; but when it cometh back to the equinoctiall, it makes the spring season; and when it cometh to the northerne Tropick, it brings in the hot Summer, and declining againe to the equino­ctiall, it brings in Autumne and the harvest season.

Thirdly, they serve for dayes and yeares. For the motion of the 3. Sun, Moone, and Starres, round about the heavens in 24. houres, maketh a day in the large sense, that is, a civill day; And the ap­pearance and shining of the Sun upon the face of the earth, makes a day of light, that is, a naturall day; and the setting and absence of the Sun make the night.

The motion of the Moone in her proper course thorough the twelve signes of the Zodiak, from change to change, and from full to full, makes a moneth of foure weeks; And the proper motion of the Sun thorough the same twelve signes, makes a yeare of twelve distinct solary moneths; And the Moone by her foure quarters, makes four weeks every one of seven dayes: And the concurrence of the Sun, Moone, and Starres, returning to their severall places, make set times for civill and Ecclesiasti­call use, as for feasts of Easter, Pentecost, and the like, which are appointed by God and his Church to bee observed yearly for Gods honour and for remembrances of some great works of mercy performed by God and by Christ, for mans deliverance and salvation.

The last and maine use of all is, to give light upon Earth; for, by giving of light and shining in, and thorough the aire, they [Page 144] cause heat, and moysture, and drienesse; and by their severall degrees, aspects, and reflexions of beames and light, they yeeld their influence and cherish and worke upon things below; they also make all things visible to men and other creatures, and by their light wee come to see and discerne all things here visible; without which sight and visibility, no man can performe the works for which God created and placed him on earth.

And so much for opening the first maine thing in my text, to wit, Gods commanding lights to bee in the firmament of hea­ven for the speciall uses here named, laid downe in the 14. and 15. Verses.

The second maine thing, is his bringing of the worke to [...]se by his powerfull Word, and making it to bee in all respects according to his counsell, will and word. This is laid downe, first summarily, in the last clause of the 15. Verse, in these words, audit was so; that is, as God said and commanded, so it was done presently. Secondly, it is more largely described in the next words, Verse 16, 17, 18. And God made two great lights, the grea­ter to rule the day, the lesse to rule the night; hee made also the Starres. And God set them in the firmament to give light upon the Earth, and to divide light and darknesse.

First, of whatsoever God sad, Let it be, it was made, & for the same use as here we read: For as he said, Let there be lights, and let them be to divide the day from the night; so he made lights, and gave them in the firmament of heaven to divide day from night and to serve for the uses which hee appointed.

Secondly, it is here said, that God himselfe made those lights; no Angels, or others besides himselfe were commanded to make them, nor had any hand in creating them.

Thirdly, the lights, which were before generally mentioned, are here more specially and particularly rehearsed and expressed, and the severall offices of them all. Two of them are said to bee great lights, one greater, that is, the Sun to rule the day; the other lesser, that is, the Moone to have dominion in the night; the rest of the lights are said to bee the Starres:

First, for the Sun, that is called the greatest light, and that most Of the Sun. truly and properly; both for the body and substance of it; and also for the brightnesse and aboundance of the light which is in [Page 145] it: For the most skilfull Mathematicians have observed and demonstrated, that the very body of the Sun doth exceed the whole earth in bignesse 166. times; and our owne eyes are wit­nesses of the greatnesse of the light in it, farre exceeding all bodily lights, and dazling our weake sight.

Secondly, the Moone is also called a great light (though lesser Of the Moone. then the Sun;) not for the bignesse of the bodie of it, but be­cause it is the lowest of all the Planets, and nearest unto the earth, and therefore appeares biggest of all next unto the Sun, and gives to the earth a greater light then any of the Starres, which are farre greater in substance, and brighter in light. For the most skilfull Mathematicians have found by their art, that it is 39. times lesser then the earth, and the least of all the Starres except Mercury, which is the Planet next above it: And those Starres which are said to bee of the first Magnitude, are some of them observed to bee 18. times bigger then the earth. And although the Moone, being the lowest and nearest of all the heavenly lights unto the earth, and therefore more dimme in it selfe, and of a more impure bodie and substance, as appeares by the cloudy specks in it, shining very little of it selfe, may in that respect bee called one of the least lights: yet because it borrowes light from the Sun, shining in the face of it as in a looking glasse, and because it is 18. times lower then the Sun, and nearer to us then the earth is; lower then it, as Mathemati­cians have observed, and so it is nearer to the earth then the Sun almost 18. hundred thousand miles; therefore in our eyes it appeares the greatest of all the lights next to the Sun: And Moses here speaking according to the capacity of the vulgar, and our outward senses, and the sensible effects of light which the Moone gives to the earth, cals it one of the two great lights. And as hee gives to the Sun the office and prerogative of ruling the day, because the sight and presence of the Sun makes the day light, and smoothers and obscures all other lights in the day time: so hee gives to the Moone the office of ruling the night; because when it appeares in the night, it giveth more light to us here on earth then all the other Starres.

Thus wee see, that as God said, so every thing which was made in the fourth day came to passe; God himselfe made every [Page 146] thing by his eternall Word, according to his owne eternall Coun­sell, minde, and will. And therefore no marvell though hee gives approbation to this dayes worke also, which is the third maine thing in the text, expressed in these words, And God saw that it was good. And so the Sun, having shined for the space of twelve houres, till it had passed through one Hemisphaere or halfe of heaven; that time or morning of light, together with the evening or time of darknesse going before it, and caused by clouds, mists and vapours over-shadowing the Earth, is called the fourth day.

Now this History of the fourth dayes worke, as I have ex­pounded it, affords us some points of instruction.

First, in that herbes, grasse, plants, and trees, were made per­fect in their kinde before any Raine, or Dew, or Sun, Moone, Doctr. [...]. No instru­ments used in the crea­tion. and Starres were created; Hence wee may learne, that God used no instruments, nor helpe of any creatures in the creation of any thing; but made and formed every creature himselfe by his eter­nall Word and Spirit, who are with him one and the same Ieho­vah, infinite, almighty and omnipotent. For further proofe whereof, there are many testimonies in the holy Scriptures, as Isa. 40. 21. 22. and 66. 2. where the Lord appropriateth to himselfe, and to his owne hand, the creating and making of heaven and earth, and Ioh. 1. 3. and Colos. 1. 16. where all things are said to bee created by the eternall Word the Son; and also by the Spirit, Psalme 33. 6.

This Doctrine admonisheth us to give all the glory of the wisedome, power, and goodnesse, shewed in the creation, to Vse God alone; and to acknowledge that all things created, even the whole World and all things therein, are the Lords; also to make us admire his rich bountie, & to render all thanks to his holy Ma­jesty for all the profit, benefit, and comforts, which wee receive from any of Gods creatures.

Secondly, wee may hence learne and observe, the wisedome and wise providence of God, in making every thing in due season, Doctr. 2. Great wisedome of God in the Crea­tion. and nothing before there was need of it for the creatures, which were next in order to bee made; for hee did not create the lights of Sun, Moone, and Starres, together with the starry heavens, which is the place of them, untill hee was about to create living [Page 147] things which could not well bee, nor move according to their kinde, without such lights shining in the earth and in the wa­ters.

Which wise providence of God, is a patterne and direction Vse. to us to doe all things in order: in the first place, things neces­sarie and usefull for the well-being, and bringing to passe of things which are afterwards to bee done; and nothing which may bee and remaine without use and profit. As God would not make the Sun, Moone, and Starres, together with the first light, the firie heavens, on the first day, because then there was no use nor necessitie of them; but deferred the creation of them untill the fourth day, when there was use and necessity to make a cleare day-light; and living creatures endued with life, sense, and sight were to bee made in the two next dayes following, whose life without such cleare day light would have beene but like the shadow of death; So let us bee carefull then to provide things necessary and usefull, when wee see and perceive that wee shall have present use of them, and not bee like foolish prodi­gall and fantasticall builders, who build stately houses like pa­laces with large barnes, stables, and stals, when neither they nor theirs are in any way or possibility to furnish them with corne, horses or cattell, or to make use of them for fit and necessary habitation.

Thirdly, though the glory of God doth more appeare in Doctr. 3. light of day then, in darknesse of night; and it was and is in Gods power, to make more great lights and divers Sunnes in severall places of the heaven, to shine in all the World at once, and to make a perpetuall day on earth: yet hee made them so, that on the earth, in this lower and inferiour World, there should bee as much night as day, and darknesse as light; whereby hee teacheth us even from the creation, that this earthly World was not made to bee the place of mans immutable perfection and blessednesse; but a place of changes and alterations; wherein, by reason of darknesse, the Prince of darknesse may rule, rage and tyrannise by himselfe and his wicked instruments; and drive us to seeke a better rest, and an incorruptible and undefiled inheritance reserved in 1 Pet. 1. 4. heaven, in the place of perpetuall light. The whole booke of the wise Preacher is an ample testimony of this truth, and a large [Page 148] commentary upon this Doctrine; for it wholy tends to make men loath this inferiour World under the Sun, wherein there is nothing but changes, and vanity of vanities, and all is va­nitie.

Wherefore let us not seeke for immutability nor unchangable peace and prosperity here on earth, lest wee bee found as foolish Vse. as those builders who build and set up goodly houses on a sandy foundation, which may easily bee beaten downe, and ruined with every wind, wave, and tempest. They who settle their rest on earth, and here seeke perfect felicity and immutable blessednesse; they trust under the shadow and shelter of a gourd, Jon. 4. which may grow up in one night, and in the next night wi­ther away, and perish, and bring much griefe and sorrow to them, which will vex them, and drive them like Ionah to im­patiency and anger against God their Creatour. Let us looke up to heaven where is light without darknesse, and an ever­lasting day without any night; and bend all our course to that countrie above, and long for everlasting light and glory, which the blessed Saints and Angels there enjoy in the presence of God, and at his right hand, where are pleasures for evermore.

CHAP. X.

The fifth dayes worke. Of fishes and fowles. All made in perfect wisedome: Vses. Two notable properties of fishes: their sensitive soule, and matter. The matter of birds. Of other flying things. Of whales. Of the fruitfulnesse of fishes. Gods infinite power jioyned with infinite wisedome: Vses. All is made by Christ, and likewise bestowed on us: Vse. Gods great providence for mankinde: Vse.

ANd God said, Let the Waters bring for aboundantly the mo­ving Verse 20. creature which hath life: And let the fowle flie above the earth in the open firmament of heaven. 21. And God created great whales, & every living creature that moveth, which the waters brought forth aboundantly after their kinde, and every winged fowle [Page 149] after his kinds, and God saw that it was good. 22. And Godbles­sed them, saying, Bee fruitfull and multiply, and fill the waters in the Sea, and let fowle multiplie in the Earth. 23. And the evening and the morning were the fifth day.

In these words wee have the History of the fifth dayes worke, which was the creation of all living creatures which live and move in the two moist elements, the water and the aire, to wit, fishes and moving creatures which live and move in the waters; and all kinds of fowles which flie in the open region of the aire, which is here called the open firmament of heaven. First, wee have Gods powerfull Word and commandement given for the bringing of them into being, in the 20. Verse. Secondly, wee have Gods creation of them and bringing them into being by his mighty Word; together with his approbation of them in the 21. Verse. Thirdly, Gods blessing of them with the blessing of fruitfulnesse and increase, Verse 22. Lastly, the time wherein all things were done, to wit, in the space and compasse of the fifth day, Verse 23.

First, as in all other works God said, Let them bee; so here hee God do [...] all on good advice. still proceeds to create every thing by his eternall Word: So much this phrase signifieth, as I have before shewed. It also intimates thus much unto us, that God did not suddenly and unadvisedly create any of these things, but according to his eternall Counsell, as hee in his infinite wisedome had purposed and determined in himselfe from all eternity. For wee finde by experience among men, that when any workman doth say before hand of the worke which hee goeth about; Thus I will make it, and Thus let it bee, it is a cleare evidence that hee doth it with advice, as hee hath framed it in his mind, and determined it by his will; and there­fore Moses here used this forme of speech, that God said first, Let things bee, and then hee created them; to teach us, that God had from all eternity framed them in his decree, and determined them in his Counsell and Will to bee such as hee made them in the creation.

Whence wee may gather this Doctrine: That God hath crea­ted all Doctr. things in wisedome, and never doth any worke rashly, without counsell or consideration; but orders and brings to passe every thing, so as he hath purposed, with perfect knowledge and understanding. [Page 150] This is that which the Prophet David doth preach and pro­claime with admiration, Psalme 104. 24. saying, O how mani­fold are thy works! in wisedome and hast thou made them all. And his wise Son Solomon, Proverb. 3. 19, 20. saith, the Lord by wise­dome hath founded the earth, by understanding hath hee established the heavens, by his knowledge the depths are broken up, and the clouds drop downe dew. And Ier. 10. 12. and 51. 15. The Prophet affirmes, that God hath made the earth by his power, and hath established the World by his wisedome, and stretched out the heavens by this discretion. Yea the actions of revenge upon ene­mies, which men doe for the most part rashly, and run in to them head-long without discretion, God doth in wisedome, and understanding, and according to his wise Counsell, as holy Iob testifieth, Iob 26. 12. saying, He divideth the Sea with his power, and by his understanding smiteth through the proud. And, in a Word, that God hath made all things wisely and wi [...]h good understanding, so that in every creature his wisedome and counsell appeares, wee may plainely see by dayly experience, and by that which Iob saith, chap. 12. 7, 8, 9. to wit, that if wee aske the beasts, they will teach; and the fowles of the aire, they shall tell us: or if wee speake to the earth, it shall instruct us; or to the fishes of the Sea, they shall declare unto us; who knoweth not in all these things that the hand of the Lord hath wrought this? that is, wee may see, and read Gods wisedome in all his works; for, as it followes, Verse 13. With him is wisedome and strength, he hath counsell and understanding: and these hee sheweth manifestly in all his works and doings.

First, this Doctrine serves for direction to all men in all their works and doings, how to doe all things according to the per­fect Vse 1. Bee fol­lowers of God as deare chil­dren. paterne and true rule of all well-doing. The rule of all mans actions ought to bee the will of God, who created him and gave him his whole being; and the perfect paterne whom the Sons of God ought to follow in all their works, is, God who formed them after his owne image; so that the perfection of man consists in his conformity to God; and the more or lesse hee resembles God in all his wayes, the more or lesse perfect hee is, and the nearer or further from perfection and true happinesse. Now here this Doctrine teacheth, that God hath created all things in wise­dome, [Page 151] and doth all his workes according to his determinate counsell, and with perfect understanding, and nothing rashly without consideration. Wherefore, as wee desire to order our wayes aright, and wallie in the right and ready pathes which lead unto perfection; and as wee have a minde to doe all our works so as that they may bee profitable and comfortable to our selves and others: so let us imitate God in all our wayes and works, and never doe any thing rashly without consulting with his word; want of this marres all: when men follow their owne lusts and head-strong will and affections, and consult not with Gods Word; then they follow their owne wayes, and for­sake the wayes of God; then they doe their owne works, not the works of God; and those wayes and works of their owne will, procure all evils and mischiefes unto them, according to that of the Prophet, Ier. 4 18. thy wayes and doings have procured these things unto thee; this is thy wickednesse because it is bitter, because it reacheth unto thine heart. Whereas, on the contrary, they that walke after Gods wayes, and take his counsell along with them in all their doings, and doe nothing rashly, but so as God by his Word puts into their heart; they shall bee holy and wise in their degree, as God is wise and holy; and by holinesse shall come to see God, and the reward and end of their doings shall bee glory, honour, immortality, and eternall life, Rom. 2. 7.

Secondly, seeing God hath made all things in wisedome, and Vse [...]. How to view the crea [...] [...]. according to his eternall Counsell; this serves to stirre us up so to behold and consider all things created by God, as that wee may see and discerne his wisedome in their very frame; and if wee doe not see and discerne the image of Gods wise­dome and goodnesse in them all, and a good use of them all; let us blame our owne blindnesse and ignorance, and not vilifie, or dis-esteeme any worke or any creature of God: But if wee finde any creature which seemes unprofita­ble, or hurtfull altogether, and serving for no good use; let us know, that it is mans sin which hath made the crea­tures subject to vanity, and hatefull and hurtfull to men; And yet Rom [...]. 12. in the meane time Gods wisedome appeares in ordering and disposing to a good use, even by the enmity, hurtfulnesse, loath­some poison and filthinesse which is in them, to chastise and [Page 152] correct his owne people, and to put them in remembrance of their sinfulnesse and corruption, that they may forsake and mor­tifie it by repentance, or to punish the impenitent, and execute just vengance on the wicked in the day and time of his visita­tion. And upon these considerations, let us all, so often as wee see or remember the unprofitablenesse, loathsomnesse and poison which is in some creatures, bee stirred up to repent of our sinnes which have brought them under this corruption for a scourge of our dis-obedience; and let us firmely beleeve, that God in wisedome useth them to punish the wicked and to correct his people, and hee will make us see in all his wisedome shining clearly at the last.

But now, from the Word of God, I proceed to that which hee set himselfe to doe by his eternall Word, according to his will and purpose; this is in these words, Let the waters bring forth aboundantly every moving creature that hath life, and let the fowle she above the Earth. The things which here God sets him­selfe to create are of two sorts: First, all creatures which live and have their being in the element of water, all fishes and other creatures, which live in the Sea, Rivers, Lakes, and all other wa­ters. Secondly, all fowles, birds, and flying things which flie above the Earth in the open region of the aire.

The first sort are all called by this generall name [...], which is here translated, the moving creature, and in the Hebrew signifieth Of fishes. Their two notable properties. 1. a creature which is most notable for these two properties: First, that it is a living creature, which moves, not by going upon feet onely, or by flying with wings; but by creeping or sliding, and moving forwards, as wee see fishes doe in the water, and creeping things doe in and upon the earth. Secondly, that it breeds and brings forth young in great aboundance, more then any other 2. creatures doe; as wee see the fishes, which by the multitude of spawne would increase beyond all measure and number, if by one meanes or other the spawne were not devoured and consumed. For the Hebrew verbe [...], of which the word [...], which is here translated the moving creature, is derived; is used as in my text, so in other Scriptures frequently, first to signifie creeping, or moving forward without feet, as Gen. 7. 21. and Levit. 11. 19. and secondly also to bring forth aboundantly as here, and also, [...] [Page 169] of the creation which God wrought, and by which hee made the whole frame of the World perfect and complete, and every way fully furnished. This last worke is described by Moses, first generally, briefely and summarily, in the 26. Verse, and from thence to the end of this first Chapter: And secondly, the creation of the Woman is more particularly related, Chap. 2. from the 18. Verse to the end of that Chapter.

Verse 26. And God said, Let us make man in our owne image, Creation of man­kind male & female. and after our likenesse, &c. 27. So God created man in his owne image, &c. 28. And God blessed them and said, Be fruitfull and multiplie, and replenish the earth, &c.

In this History of the creation of mankinde, wee may observe these speciall things, which are most notable and worthy to bee opened.

First, Gods consultation about the creation of mankind in 1. the 26. Verse; And God said, Let us make man in our image.

Secondly, Gods creating of mankind according to his owne 2. eternall Counsell; which is laid downe summarily and more ge­nerally, that God made them, 1 in his owne image, 2 male and female, Verse 27.

This creation of mankind is more plainely and particularly laid downe in the next Chapter; where Moses relates, First, how God made the man of the dust of the ground, and breathed into his nosthrils the breath of life, and Man became a living soule, Verse 7.

Secondly, how God made the female, the Woman, to bee an helpe meet for man, and that of a Rib taken out of the mans side in a deep sleep, Verse 21. 22. &c. Thirdly that they were both naked, and were not ashamed, Verse 25. These things are to bee noted in the creation of mankind.

The third thing is the blessing, wherewith God blessed them 3. joyntly together, the Man and the Woman; and it comprehends in it two things: First, the blessing of fruitfulnesse, that they should multiply and replenish the earth with mankind. Se­condly, the honour, dominion and prerogative which God gave to them to subdue the earth, and to have dominion over all other living creatures; this is expressed, Chap. 1. 28.

The fourth is the meat and bodily food which God assigned 4. to man in the creation, Verse 29. but with limitation & restraint [Page 170] from the fruit of one tree, Chap. 2. 16, 17. As for other crea­tures, which live on the earth, hee assigned the greene herbe or grasse to them for food, Verse 30.

The fifth thing, is the place of mans habitation, the garden of Eden, the earthly paradise, which is described, Chap. 2. 8, 9, &c. 5.

The last thing is Gods viewing of all things, which hee had 6. made, after the creation of the Man and the Woman, and his placing of them in paradise, which was the accomplishment of the creation and the last worke; and his approbation of every creature for very good and perfect in his kind; this is expressed in the 31. Verse.

The first thing is Gods consultation concerning the crea­tion Of the consulta­tion in ma­king man. of mankind, wherein wee are to consider these particulars; 1. Who it is that saith, Let us make. 2. With whom hee doth thus consult and conferre. 3. What is the thing consulted about, even the making of man in their owns image, and after their likenesse, to bee Lord over all other creatures, the fishes of the Sea, the fowles of the aire, and all living things on earth.

In the creation of all other things God said onely, Let them bee, and so they were made: but in the creation of mankind hee calls a councell as being now about a greater worke, and saith, Let us make Man; which is a speciall point not lightly to bee passed over without due consideration: First, hee who thus enters into consultation is said to bee Elohim, that is, God the Who con­sults. Creatour, who is more persons then one or two, even three Persons in one essence (as the Hebrew word, being plurall doth imply). And hee who here saith, Let us make man, and in the next verse is said to create man in his owne image, hee is the same God which created the heavens, and the earth, Verse 1. and the light, and the firmament, and all other things mentioned before in this Chapter.

They with whom hee conferres, are not the Angels as some have vainely imagined; nor the foure elements which God With whom. here calls together, that hee may frame Mans body of them being compounded and tempered together, as others have dreamed. For the text shewes plainely divers strong reasons to the con­trary: First, it is said, that God created man not by the ministery of Angels or the elements, but by his owne selfe, as it followes [Page 171] in the next Verse, and Chap. 2. 7. Secondly, God created man in his owne image, not in the image of Angels or elements; and therefore it is most ridiculous to imagine that God spake to them, or of making man in their image. Thirdly, it is shewed that man was made to rule over the earth, and the fowles of the aire, and the fishes of the Sea; and therefore it is absurd to thinkethat the earth, or any elements were fellow-makers of man together with God. And lastly, it is both foolish and impious to thinke that God who made heaven, earth, & the heavenly host, the Angels, of nothing, should call upon others to helpe him, and to share with him in the honour of mans creation, seeing hee doth so often in Scripture challenge this honour of creating all things to himselfe, and professeth that hee will not give this glory to ano­ther: Here therefore God the Creatour is brought in by Moses, as it were consulting within himselfe, even the eternall Father with the eternall Word the Son (who is called the brightnesse of his glory, and the expresse image of his Person, by whom hee made the World, of which, man is a part, Hebr. 1. 2.) and with the eternall Spirit. And here hee brings in God consulting about mans crea­tion to bee Lord over other creatures, for 3. speciall reasons, and to teach us three things, which are reasons of consultations among men, when they are about a worke.

The first is to shew, not that God needed any advice or helpe, It was for 3. reasons. 1. but that the worke which hee was about was a speciall worke, even the making of man, the chiefest of all visible creatures; one that should bee Lord over all the rest, being made in Gods owne image, indued with reason, understanding, wisedome, and liberty of will.

The second, to shew that man was to bee made a creature in 2. whom God should have occasion given to shew himselfe a mighty and wise Creatour and Governour, a just Iudge and re­venger of wickednesse and sin, which doe provoke him to wrath and revenge; a mercifull Redeemer and Saviour of sinners seduced; and an holy sanctifier of them by his Spirit. If wee consider man as a creature which might fall, and have Gods image defaced in him, and by his many provoking sins might give God cause to repent that hee had made him, as is said, Gen. 6. then there appeares some reason why God should as it were [Page 172] consult whether hee should make him, or no. Also, if wee con­sider that man being fallen, and brought under the bondage and slavery of death and the Divell, and under eternall condemna­tion, could not possibly bee redeemed but by the Son of God un­dertaking to become man, and to suffer and satisfie in mans na­ture; and that man cannot bee made partaker of Christs benefits for redemption, without the holy Ghost, the eternall spirit of God infused into man, and descending to dwell in man as in an earthly tabernacle: There will appeare to us great cause of consultation, that God the Father should consult with the Son, and the Spi­rit; and this consulting about mans creation doth intimate all these things: But in that this consultation is with a resolution (all things considered) to make man with a joynt consent; this shewes that God foresaw how mans fall and corruption, and all the evils which by it were to come into the World (how­soever, to our understanding and in our reason, they may seeme just impediments to hinder God from creating mankind) yet might by his wisedome bee turned to the greater advancement of his glory, and might give him occasion to shew all his good­nesse, wisedome, power, perfect purity and holinesse in hating sin; his infinite justice in the destruction and damnation of wicked reprobates, and in exacting a full satisfaction for the sins of them that are saved; his infinite mercy, love, and free grace in giving his Son to redeeme and save his elect from sin, death, and hell; and his unspeakeable bounty in giving his Spirit to sanctifie them, to unite them to Christ, and to conforme them to his image, and so to bring them to the full fruition of himselfe in glory. God in consulting within himselfe, and thereupon resolving to create mankind, and saying, Let us make man, and then immediatly creating him (as the text sheweth) did in the creation of man shew before-hand, that in mankind hee would manifest and make knowne all his goodnesse, more then in all other creatures.

The third reason of Gods consultation, is, to manifest more plainely in mans creation then in any other creature, the mystery 3. of the blessed Trinity, that in the one infinite eternall God the Creatour there are more, even three Persons of one and the same undivided nature and substance. For such consultations [Page 173] and resolutions, as are expressed in this forme of words, Let us make man in our image, and after our likenesse, doe necessarily imply that there are more Persons then one consenting, and con­curring in the worke. And that these three Persons are all but one and the same God, it is [...]manifest by the words following, which speake of these Persons as of one God; for it is said, that God created man in his owne image, and not they created man in their image.

Thus much for the intent and meaning of the Spirit of God in these words, Let us make man in our image, and after our lik­nesse. From which words thus expounded, wee learne,

First, that the creation of mankind was a speciall worke of Doctr. 1. Man the chiefest of creatures. God, and that man is by nature the chiefest and most excellent of all creatures, which God made in all the visible World; which point the holy Psalmist openly proclaimed; saying, I am fearefully and wonderfully made, marvellous are they works, Psalme 139. 14.

Secondly, Gods consultation sheweth, that in the creation Doctr. 2. hee considered mans fall, and did foresee not onely that man in his nature and kind is a creature subject to such evils as might make it a matter questionable, whether it were fit for God to create him or not: but also the great good which comes by his creation and fall, and that man is a fit object, wherein God may make manifest his wisedome, power, and all his goodnesse more then in any other creature, and in that respect most wor­thy to bee made by the counsell, joynt consent, and concurrence of all the three Persons in the Trinity.

Thirdly, here we may observe, that in one God the almighty Doctr. 3. Creatour, there are more Persons then one manifested by Moses in the History of the creation. And therefore the Doctrine of the Trinity is no new and lately devised opinion since Christ, but a most ancient truth revealed from the first founda­tion of the World.

These Doctrines I here onely name, which will come to be handled more fitly in the next thing which followes, to wit, Gods creating of mankind according to this his counsell and resolution: which act of creation is laid downe first more ge­nerally and confusedly in the 27. Verse. And more distinctly [Page 174] and particularly by way of recapitulation in the next Chap­ter.

First, it is here said, that as God upon consultation resolved, so hee created man in his owne image, and male and female crea­ted hee them: wherein wee may observe two things generally laid downe; First, that God created man in his owne image. Secondly, that hee created them male and female.

I will not here enter into a discourse concerning the imag [...] of God, and the speciall things wherein it doth consist; that shall have a more fit place hereafter, when I shall come to de­scribe the excellent state of man in his innocency before his fall.

The thing which here comes specially to bee considered is the true meaning of the Hebrew word Adam, which is transla­ted Of the name A­dam, used two wayes. [...] man in this present text. This word is in the Scriptures used two wayes: First, as a proper name of the first man, even our first Father Adam; thus wee must understand the word Chap. 21. where it is said, that God did cast Adam into a deep sleepe, and Verse 22. brought the Woman to Adam when hee had made her of his Rib; and chap. 4. 1. and many other places, where Adam is distinguished from Evah his wife, and is called the man.

Secondly, it is used as a common name of mankinde, and in­cludes [...]. in it both male and female, Man and Woman, as Psalm [...] 144. 4. Man is like to vanity, and Gen. 5. 2. where it is said, that God called the Man and Woman, and all mankind in them, both male and female by this name Adam.

Here in this text, this word Adam is used in this latter sense as the common name of mankinde, comprehending in it both male and female; as appeares by the words following, Male and female created hee them; that is, this Adam whom God created in his owne image was male and female, of both sexes, Man and Woman, who are both but one kind of creature. Whereby it is manifest, that here is laid downe in generall the creation of all mankind in our first Parents Adam and his wife Evah; and that they both were created in the image of God; and that the difference of their sexes, and the creation of the Woman after the Man, of a Rib taken out of mans side, doe not make any [Page 175] difference of their nature, and kind; but both are of one kind, and both made in the image of God and after his likenesse: And Women as well as Men are capable of the same grace, and fit to bee heires of the same glory in Heaven, where there is no difference of male and female, but all shall bee like to the Angels, not marrying nor given in marriage: as all members of the same Christ, and partakers of the same spirituall grace here; so all fellow-citizens of the heavenly Citie there, raigning with Christ in glory, as our Saviour himselfe affirmeth in the Gospell.

Hence then wee learne, That the Woman as well as the Man Doctr. Woman as capable of grace and glory [...] man. was made in the image of God, and is by nature as fit a subject, and as capable as man of grace and glory. Which point is con­firmed by divers Scriptures; as by the words of our Saviour, Matth 22. 30. where hee saith, that Women and Men in the Re­surrection are as the Angels of God in the last Resurrection, not marrying nor given in m [...]rriage; And 2 Cor. 6. 18. I will bee a Father unto you, and the shall yee my Sons and Daughters saith the Lord almighty; and Gal. 3. 28. Male and female are all one in Christ; and 1 Tim. 2. 15. the Apostle affirmes, that Woman may bee, and shall be saved by continuing in faith, charitie, and holi­nesse with sobriety; and 1 Pet. 3. 7. mention is made of holy Women, and Wives are said to be heires together with their Husbands of the grace of life. To which testimonies the examples of many holy, godly and faithfull Women, mentioned in the Scriptures, may be added; as our first Mother Evah, who, through faith in the promise, obtained the title of the Mother of life, Gen. 3. and the virgin Marie the Mother of the blessed seed is called blessed in all nations: Sarah, Rebecca, Hannah, Deborah, Ruth, Dorcas, Marie Magdalene, and many others.

But, 1 Cor. 11. 7. Man is called the image and glory of God, Object. the Woman the glory of the Man.

The Apostle doth not here speake of the image of God as Answ. it consists in perfect uprightnesse and indowments of nature; or in holinesse and supernaturall gifts of grace; for so the image of God is one and the same in both, and common to the Woman with the Man, and they both have equall dominion and Lord­ship over the creatures given in the creation: But here hee speakes of Man as hee was first created before the Woman, and [Page 176] the Woman as shee was made to bee a meet helpe for Man, and as it were his second selfe here on earth, and of a Rib, which is a part of mans substance, and in all things like man of the same na­ture and kinde; and in these respects man hath a priority, and a kinde of power and authority over the Woman in outward things, which concerne Ecclesiasticall and Civill order; and mans glory even the image of his authority appeares in the Womans sub­jection to him ever since the fall, upon which God made her desire subject to man; and tooke from her power over man, and the exercise of publike offices in the Church and common wealth: And this subjection doth not exclude her from faith, charity, and holinesse with sobriety, or any other part of Gods image needfull to salvation, as the Apostle testifieth, 1 Tim. 2. 15. In a word, common sense and reason teach us, that, if the Woman be made in the image of the Man, and the Man is made in Gods image, then Women must needs beare Gods image and likenesse: But the truth is, God being still the same, both in the creation of the Man and of the Woman, and creating both by the same wisedome and power; hee needed not to take Adam for his paterne whereby to make the Woman, but made her in his owne image as hee did man, and so in all things like to man, the different sexe onely excepted.

This serves to admonish and stirre up women to bee carefull, diligent and industrious so to beare themselves as they that are Vse 1. made after Gods image, & so to order their lives & conversation as they who expect the glory of heaven, and must, by passing through the state of grace here, and by conforming themselves to Christ both in his death by mortification, and in his life by sanctification, come to the fulnesse of glory in Heaven, and bee made conformable and like to Christ in his glorious body, and coheires of God with him.

Secondly, it serves to reprove the wicked and profane men of the World, whose wickednesse is transcendent, and their Vse 2. profanenesse most horrible and impious, in that base esteeme which they have of the female sexe, and the vile account which they make of woman-kind, who thinke and speake of women that they have no soules, nor any part in Gods image, and are utterly uncapable either of grace in this World, or glory in the [Page 177] World to come. Like and equall unto which, in their profane impiety, are common strumpets and whorish women, the shame and staine of woman-kind, who prostitute themselves to all filthinesse, and so live as if they were made onely to serve the lusts of unreasonable men of bruitish lust.

I proceed to the more speciall things, which are more di­stinctly laid downe concerning the creation of mankind; where I will first insist upon the creation of the male and female, and the matter of which they were made, and of the manner and order in which God formed them: Which that wee may di­stinctly understand, wee must looke forward to the 7. Verse of the 2. Chapter, where the creation of mankind is more par­ticularly rehearsed in these words, and the Lord God formed man of the dust of the ground, and breathed into his nosthrils the breath of life, and man became a living soule. In the Hebrew text, the man is here called Adam, not as by his proper name, but as it is the common name of all mankind; for, so much the article which is prefixed before it doth shew; and therefore as the Greeke, so also our English Translators, doe translate this word not Adam, but Man; God formed man of the dust; For in the first creation, the man comprehended in him all mankind, even the Woman who then was a Rib in his side, and afterward was taken out and formed into a Woman.

The matter of which God formed Adam is said to bee the dust of the ground; and here he useth another word not used be­fore in the creation of other things, that is, the word formed; for hee doth not say, that God made or created, but formed man; and true it is, that whole man was not made of dust, but onely the substance of his bodie; and therefore it is said, that God formed man (to wit, in respect of his body,) of the dust of the ground, that is, hee framed and fashioned it of dust, as a potter formes a pot of clay, and brought it into that forme and shape which all perfect bodies of mankind doe beare untill this day: And this is the first beginning of the being both of the Man and also of the Woman, who was created here a Rib at the first in Mans side, and afterwards taken out, and made into a Woman.

First, in that Iehovah Elohim, the Lord God, is here said to forme man, that is, to frame his body of dust, and to bring it into [Page 178] the forme and shape which it beares in all mankind: Hereby Doctor. Man was made by God alone. wee are taught, that God did neither consult with Angels about mans creation, nor assume them, or any other creatures into the fellowship of this worke; but God himselfe alone who is Ieho­vah, one God in essence and substance, and yet Elohim, that is more Persons, even three Persons, in that one undivided essence, did forme the very body of man, and brought it into that forme and temper, that it might bee a fit subject of the soule, which is a spirituall substance. And this all other Scriptures confirme, which attribute the creation of mankind to God alone; as Deut. 4. 32. and Isa. 45. 12. with many other places, where the crea­tion of man upon earth is ascribed unto God onely, and where holy and faithfull men, speaking as they were moved by the holy Ghost, confesse themselves the worke of Gods hands, as Iob 10. 3. and God their maker and former, Iob 36. 3. and Malac. 2. 10. and God the potter and themselves his formed worke, Isa. 64. 8.

This Doctrine well weighed is of excellent use: First to make us ascribe all our excellency and all our well being to God, Vse 1. that wee may give him the glory of them, and that wee may beare our selves before God as before our creatour, and may ever remember, that whatsoever service wee are able to performe either with our soules or bodies, it is wholy due to God, and none other but onely in him and by commandement and war­rant from his holy and infallible Word. Seeing God alone hath created us and given us all our being, even the forme and shape of our bodies, wee must not thinke it enough to keepe our selves to God, and to serve him in spirit onely, but wee must serve and worship him with our bodies also, and with all parts and mem­bers of our bodies. Although God many times makes men instruments and meanes to convey health, life, being, and well being to us; as naturall Parents, to bring us into being and life, and to nourish and bring us up; and as Kings, and Rulers, and wise Ma­gistrates to bee Saviours of our bodily lives from death and other dangers, and to procure safety, peace and well being to us; and in this respect and for these causes wee doe owe love, honour, and service to them in, and under God: yet in no case may wee in things which tend not to the honour, but dishonour [Page 179] of God, and are contrary to his Word and Will, and offensive to his Majesty, obey, serve and honour them. In such cases, let us say as the Apostles did to the high-Priests and Rulers of the Iewes, We ought to obey God rather then men; and whether it be right and lawfull to obey you more then God judge yee, Act. 4. 19. and 5. 29. All Potentates, Kings and Rulers, because they are men and have no power but from God, must not looke that any should serve and obey them rather then God, or in things which they command contrary to Gods commandements; Yea they must remember that they are Gods creatures and handi-worke, and ought to employ all their power and authority to the ho­nour of God. If otherwise they abuse the talents, which God hath lent them; let them know, that God will one day call them to a reckoning, and give them the reward of evill, unfaithfull, and unprofitable servants, even eternall destruction and tor­ment in Hell, where shall be howling, and wayling, and gnashing of teeth.

Secondly, this serves to shew, that whosoever offers wrong Vse 2. Danger of them that wrong man. and injury to any of mankind by cutting, mangling, or any way defacing their [...]age, and deforming their bodies; by af­flicting or some way corrupting their soules; or by taking away their lives and naturall being, without speciall warrant and cōmmandement from God; they are notoriously injurious to God himselfe; they scorne, despise, mis-use and deface Gods Workmanship; they provoke God to wrath and jealousie, and hee surely will bee avenged on such doings. And here wee have matter, as of dread and terrour to all cruell Tyrants and unmercifull men; so of hope and comfort to all who suffer in­jury and wrong at their hands: As the first sort have just cause to feare and tremble so often as they thinke on God the avenger of such wrong; so the other have cause to hope that God will not wholy forsake them, being the worke of his owne hands, nor leave them to the will and lust of the wicked, his enemies; but will in his good time save them, and send them de­liverance.

Thirdly, this discovers the abomination and filthinesse of all Vse 3. The sin of idolaters. Idolaters, who being the workmanship of God, the Lord and wise creator of all things, doe most basely bow downe to ima­ges, [Page 180] and altars; and debase themselves to worship humane in­ventions, and the worke of mens hands, which are dumbe I­dols of wood, and stone, and lying vanities. It is just with God to cast out and expose all such people to ignominy, shame, and confusion in this world, and, in the world to come, into that place of darknesse, where the Divell and all such as forsake God, and rebell against the light which from the creation shines to them, shall be punished with everlasting destruction from the face and presence of God, and from the glory of his power.

Secondly, in that God is here said to forme man of the dust of the ground, not of clay well tempered and wrought, but of dust, which of it selfe is most unfit to be compacted and made into a stedfast shape; and which is counted so base, and so light, that every blast of wind drives it away; and in Scripture the ba­sest things are resembled to it: Hence wee may learne two things:

First, that God in the creation, even of mans body, shewed his infinite power and wisedome in bringing dust of the earth, Doctr. 1. Mans body being of dust, was wondrous­ly made. which is the basest thing of all, into the forme and shape of mans body, which is the most excellent of all visible bodies, and a fit house and temple not onely of a reasonable living soule, but also of Gods holy spirit; (as other Scriptures plain­ly affirme.) This point appeares so plainly in the Text, that I need not spend time in further confirmation of it; the word [...], formed, here first used, implies an excellent forme, and the upright face of man: Here therefore I will adde, for illustra­tion sake, the words of David, which are very pertinent to this purpose, Psal. 139. 14, 15, 16. where, speaking of Gods forming and fashioning him in the wombe of the living substance, even the seed, blood, and flesh of his parents, saith he, I will prayse thee, for I am fearefully and wonderfully made. Marvelous are thy workes, and that my soule knoweth right well: My substance was not hid from thee, when I was made in secret, and curiously wrought in the lowest parts of the earth: Thine eyes did see my substance, yet being im­perfect, and in thy booke were all my members written, which in con­tinuance were fashioned, when as yet there was none of them. Here we see with what feare, admiration and astonishment David [Page 181] considers mans frame, and the curious workmanship of his body, when God forms it in the mothers womb by lively instruments, and of a lively matter and substance: How much more may we conclude, that Gods creating of Adams body, which was the most curious naturall body that ever was made, is most ad­mirable, and deserves more reverence, feare, and astonishment at our hands, being made without instruments out of the basest matter and substance even dust of the earth! Surely in this God shewed wisedome and power beyond all admiration.

The Vse of this doctrine is to stirre us up, so often as we Vse 1. thinke of our creation in Adam, to laud and praise Gods wise­dome and power, to feare and reverence God, and to admire his curious workmanship. And although the matter of which God framed mans body was the basest of all, even dust of the ground; yet let us not thinke ever a whit more meanly of our creation; but so much more admire Gods workmanship in our bodies. For, to make a curious worke in gold, silver, or of some beautifull, precious, and plyable mettall, is not rare, nor so ex­cellent: but to frame of the basest matter, the dust of the ground; the chiefest worke, and even the Master-piece of all works in the visible world, that is, the body of Adam in the state of in­nocency; this is worthy of all admiration, and is a just motive and provocation to stirre us up to praise, and to extoll with admiration the wisedome and power of God; especially, if wee consider the most excellent forme of mans body and upright stature, together with the head, comely face, hands, and other members every way fitted and composed to bee instruments of a reasonable soule, and to rule and keepe in order and sub­jection all living creatures.

Secondly, in that the dust of the ground, the basest part of the Doctr. 2. Man at best a du­sty sub­stance. earth, is the matter out of which mans body, the beautifull Pa­lace and Temple of his Soul, was formed in the excellent state of innocency; Hence wee learne, that man is by nature, and in his best naturall being given to him in the creation, but a dusty, earthy substance in respect of his body; and, in respect of his Soul, an inhabitant of an house of clay, the foundation whereof is in the dust.

But some perhaps, will object against the collection of Object. [Page 182] this Doctrine, from the base and fraile matter of which mans body was formed; and will thus argue, That the state and con­dition of creatures is not to bee esteemed by the matter of which they were made, but by the forme and being which God gave to them; as for example, the Angels, together with the highest heaven, were created immediatly of nothing, as well as the rude unformed masse which is called earth, and yet they are most glorious spirits, and the rude masse is not to bee compared to them; Yea man was created according to his inferiour part the body, of dust, which is a created substance better then nothing, of which the Angels were made; and yet the Angels in nature far excell man: Therefore mans creation of dust doth not prove him to bee so fraile a creature, seeing God gave him such an excellent forme.

To this I answer, that to bee created immediatly of nothing is in it selfe a more excellent worke, and shewes greater power, Answ. 1. then to bee made of a meane inferiour matter: For when things are said to bee created of nothing, the meaning is not, that they are made of nothing as of a matter; but that they are made of no matter at all, but have their whole being from God, and his in­finite power, and so may bee, if God will, most excellent: But when man is said to be formed of dust, the meaning is, that dust is a part of his substance even the matter of which hee consists, and that his body according to the matter is a dusty, earthy substance; and his Soul, though a spirituall substance created of nothing, yet, dwelling in that body, is an inhabitant of an earthly Tabernacle and house of clay founded in the dust. Secondly, 2. though the frame of mans body is in it selfe most excellent, and surpasseth all bodily formes, and his Soul is a spirituall substance endowed with reason; yet all these were of mutable excellency in the best naturall estate of innocency, and could not continue in that excellency but by dependance upon God, and cleaving fast to him; and by his hand and power sustaining them con­tinually, which by promise hee was not bound to doe in that estate. And therefore wee may truly gather from the matter of which God formed mans body, that hee was in his best na­turall being, in respect of his body, but a dusty substance, such as might returne to dust, by falling off from God by sin, and [Page 183] disobedience; yea undoubtedly as God in framing man his chiefest visible creature of dust, intended to shew his wise­dome and power, and to glorifie his goodnesse: so also hee teacheth man thereby his owne naturall frailty and mutability, how unable hee is of himselfe to abide in honour and excellency. And this hee shewes most plainely, Gen. 3. 19. where hee saith to man, alluding to his creation, Dust thou art, and to dust thou shalt returne: Wee have also an excellent argument to this pur­pose, Iob 14. 18, 19. and 15. 15. where the Lord is said to charge his Angels with folly, and to lay no trust in his servants, and the heavens are not cleare in his sight; how much lesse can hee find steadfastnesse in men, who dwell in houses of clay, which have their foundation in the dust? that is, seeing the heavenly spirits are not immutably pure in Gods sight, but some of the Angels hath God charged with folly, to wit, such as did fall, and to the rest hee hath added supernaturall light of his Spirit, and so hath made them Saints immutably holy, much lesse is man immutably pure and steadfast by nature, whose better part the Soul is by creation made to dwell in an house of clay, a body made of dust. To this purpose serve those Scriptures of the Prophets and Apostles, which compare man in his first creation to clay in the hand of the potter, Ier. 18. 9. & Rom. 9. 21 & which affirme that the first Adam was of the Earth earthy; 1 Cor. 15, 47. that is, in his first creation hee was of an earthy and dusty substance. Vse [...]. For humi­lity and thankful­nesse.

First, this serves by discovering unto man his frailty and mu­tability in his best naturall being, to humble every man in his owne eyes, and to make him lowly, and to withdraw his heart from pride and all high conceipts of any worth in himselfe, and to teach us all to ascribe all the unchangable purity which wee finde in ourselves, and all our steadfastnesse to the free grace of God in Christ, and not to any power of our owne free will, or to the excellency of our naturall frame and being. If man in his first creation and best naturall being was but of earth and dust, an earthy and dusty creature; and, before that death entered into the World, while hee had yet power of free will to obey God, and to depend on him, was mutable and might fall into sin, and disobedience, and by sin might bring and did bring death upon himselfe and all his posterity: how much more now [Page 184] in the state of nature corrupted is every Son of man, a very masse of corruption and frailty, yea vanity and abominable filthinesse, who drinketh iniquity like water as it is written, Iob 15. 16. Wherefore, Let no man glory in any naturall power or preroga­tive, nor hope to stand by his owne strength, much lesse to merit or purchase by any works of nature or power of free will, the least grace supernaturall, which tends to bring him to heavenly happinesse and glory unchangeable: For man, as hee is flesh and blood, that is, an earthly creature, cannot possibly come to inherite the Kingdome of God, 1 Cor. 15. 50.

Secondly, this discovers the madnesse and desperate blind­nesse Vse 2. Against Pelagians and Pa­pists. of Pelagians and Papists, who teach, that a man by the right use of his naturall power and free-will may procure spirituall grace from God, and even the Spirit of regeneration, and faith working by love, by which hee may merit and purchase to him­selfe eternall life, and heavenly glory and felicity, as a just and condigne reward of his works. If Angels cannot bee made steadfast and trusty without supernaturall light added to them; much lesse can earthy man, who by sin is become filthy and abo­minable, worke out his owne salvation by meriting and pur­chasing the heavenly reward. Oh let us all hate and abhorre all such conceipts, which wholly tend to the frustrating and evacuating of Christs merits and satisfaction, and to make them seeme vaine and needlesse. Be not deceived, God is not mocked; they who sow such tares, and feed like swine on the huskes of their owne works, and on things which nature teacheth, they are enemies to the grace of God, which is given onely in Iesus Christ, and together with him by communion of his Spirit.

After the creation of mans Body of dust, immediatly fol­lowes The crea­tion of mans soule. the creation of his Soule; which is to bee understood in these words: And breathed into his nosthrils the breath of life, and man was a living Soule; For no sooner was mans body brought into frame, but God breathed into him the breath of life; that is, caused him to breathe with the breath of life, even those vi­tall spirits which are the band of union by which the Soule is united to the body; and in the first instant wherein he created the vitall spirits, he also created the spiritual substance of his Soule in his body immediatly of nothing by his omnipotent hand.

[Page 185] Some are opinion, that mans Soule was first created a Spirit, Opinions. 1. subsisting by it selfe before his body was formed; and when the body was formed a fit subject for it, then instantly God infused it into the body, and by it did give life and breath to the body.

Some thinke, that the body was formed, and the Soule 2. in the same instant created together with it, as Damascene lib. 2. de fide, cap. 12. Aquinas, and others: And Cyrill thinks, that Gods breathing into mans face the breath of life, was the infu­sion of the holy Ghost into man; and that man in the creation had the holy Spirit given to dwell in him, and was sancti­fied and endowed with supernaturall grace and holinesse.

Some thinke, that Gods breathing into mans nosthrils was 3. his inspiring into man a reasonable Soule, as a part of himselfe: so Rabby Moses Maymonides.

But by breathing into mans face, I doe not understand any 4. materiall breathing or blast, but that God, in causing breath of life to breathe through mans nosthrils, did withall create the Soule in the body, and by meanes of this reasonable Soule crea­ted in the body, and united to the body by vitall spirits and breath, man became a living Soule, that is, a living reasonable creature, living onely a perfect naturall, not an holy spirituall life. The Apostle expounds these words in this Sense, 1 Cor. 15. and doth make this a maine difference betweene the first man Adam, and Christ the second Adam, that the first Adam was onely a naturall Man endowed with a naturall living Soule; but to be a quickning Spirit, that is, to bee sanctified by the holy Ghost, and endowed with spirituall life, is proper to Christ in his creation, for in him the Spirit dwelt from his first con­ception.

Hence wee learne, That the image of God in which mans Doctrine. No super­naturall gifts in the soule of Adam. was created, was onely naturall and did consist in naturall gifts, which naturally flow from his reasonable Soule, and not in any supernaturall gifts of the holy Ghost; as true holinesse, and the like: The words of Saint Paul last before named doe fully prove this. I will here onely adde one strong Reason and invincible argument to prove it fully.

And that is drawne from the mutability of man in the crea­tion, Reason. [Page 186] and from his fall, by which Gods image was defaced in him. For it is most certaine, that hee who hath in him that image of God which consists in true holinesse, and in spirituall and supernaturall gifts, hee is not mutable nor subject to fall away, because hee hath the holy Ghost dwelling in him, who is greater then he that dwels in the World, 1 Ioh. 4. that is, then the Divell who worketh powerfully in the children of disobedience. For all true holinesse, and all spirituall graces are the proper worke of the holy Ghost dwelling in man, as all the Scriptures testifie. But Adam in innocency and honour lodged not therein one night, Psalme 49. 12. The Divell at the first onset gave him the foile in his greatest strength of nature and best estate; which Divell with all his temptations and all the powers of dark­nesse and spirituall wickednesses, the little ones of Christs flocke doe overcome by the power of the holy Ghost and his graces, which they have in their fraile earthen vessels. Therefore the image of God in which man was created, was naturall one­ly.

This discovers Gods goodnesse, free grace, and bounty be­yond all measure, and all conceipt and comprehension of hu­mane Vse 1. Our estate better by regenera­tion, then by crea­tion. reason, in that it shewes how God, by mans fall, malice and corruption which made him a slave of Hell and Death, did take occasion to bee more kind and bountifull to man, and to shew more love and goodnesse to him, by repairing the ruines of his fall, and renuing him after a better image then that which hee gave him in the creation, and making him better after his sin and fall, then hee was before in the state of inno­cency, when hee had of himselfe no inclination to any sin or evill, and bringing him to grace spirituall in Christ, and to an image which cannot bee defaced and to a state firme and un­changable: when wee rightly consider these things, wee have no cause to murmur at Gods voluntary suffering of man to fall from his estate, which was perfect and pure naturall; but ra­ther to rejoyce in God, and to blesse his name, and to magnifie his goodnesse, for turning his fall to our higher rising and exal­tation, and lifting us up by Christ from hell and misery, to hea­venly glory which never fadeth, and to a state spirituall and supernaturall not subject to change and alteration.

[Page 187] Secondly, this Doctrine overthrowes the foundation and Vse 2. No Apo­stasie of Saints. false ground, upon which Papists and Pelagians doe build, and seeke to establish their false and erroneous opinion concerning the apostasie of the Saints regenerate, and their falling from supernaturall grace and Iosing the Spirit of regeneration; which errour they seeke to establish by this argument, Because Adam in innocency had the holy Ghost shed on him, and was endued with spirituall and supernaturall gifts of holinesse, from which hee did fall by sin and transgression. But here wee see there is no such matter; Adams image was onely naturall uprightnesse; not spirituall, supernaturall, and true holinesse. Hee was but a perfect naturall Man, and a living Soule; Christ, the second Adam, onely is called the quickning Spirit, because through him onely God sheds the holy Ghost on men; and hence it is, that though Adam did fall away from his estate, which was onely naturall; yet the Saints regenerate and called to the state of grace in Christ, can never fall away totally nor finally into apo­stacy, because they have the seed of God, even the holy Ghost dwelling and abiding in them.

CHAP. XIII.

Of the womans creation in particular. How without her all was not good. Woman not made to be a servant. Of giving names to the crea­tures. No creature but woman a meet companion for man, Vses. Of the rib whereof woman was made. Of Adams deepe sleepe: Five Points thence collected. Of Gods bringing Eve to Adam; and two Points thence. Of Adams accepting Eve for his wife; and calling her bone, &c. w [...]h divers points thence. Of their naked­nesse: demonstrating the perfection of the creation.

GEn. 2. 18, 19, 20, 21. And the Lord said, It is not good that the man should be alone, I will make an helpe meet for him. And eve­ry beast, and every fowle God brought to Adam, to see what hee would call them, &c. And Adam gave names to them all: but for Adam there was not found an helpe meet for him. And the Lord [Page 188] God caused a deepe sleep to fall upon Adam, and he slept; and he tooke one of his ribs and made it a Woman, and brought her to the Man, &c.

These words, and the rest which follow in this Chapter, con­taine a particular description of the creation of the Woman, which before was touched generally and summarily, Chap. 1. 27. in these words, Male and female created hee them. In this History of the Womans creation, wee may observe three spe­ciall things: First, the preparation to it, or the antecedents im­mediatly going before it. Secondly, the creation it selfe. Thirdly, the consequents which followed upon it.

In the preparation, wee may observe three distinct things: First, Gods counsell and resolution for mans well being, Verse 18: Secondly, Gods setting of the Man a worke to view the crea­tures, and to exercise his reason and naturall wisedome in na­ming them, Verse 19. Thirdly, the inequality which Adam found in the creatures and the unfitnesse of them for his conversation, Verse 20.

First, Moses brings in the Lord God consulting with him­selfe, and according to his eternall Counsell concluding that it was not good for Man to bee alone, and resolving that hee will make an helpe meet for him: For these words, And God said, are not to be understood of any sound of words uttered by God; but of Gods eternall Counsell, purpose, and fore-knowledge now beginning to manifest it selfe by outward action and exe­cution, as a mans mind is manifested by his speech. The things, which God foreknew in his counsell, and purposed, are two: First, that it was not good for man to bee alone. Secondly, that hee would make an helpe meet for him. Hence it may seeme strange All good, and Adam good, yet not to bee alone: how. which God saith, that any thing which he had made should not be good: For did not hee make man alone and single at the first? And did not hee make every thing good, especially man created in his owne image? Was not the image of God, in which hee created man, fully and perfectly good?

To this doubt I answer, that the Man was created good and perfect after the likenesse of God, and there was no defect in his being and substance: But yet, as all other creatures, though they were made good, and there was no evill in them; yet they were [Page 189] not so good as man; so man, though as hee was created in the image of God, was good, yea in goodnesse farre excelled other earthly creatures; yet hee was not so good, but that hee might bee made more good, and created in an image of God more excellent then that wherein hee was first made, even in the holy image of the heavenly Adam Christ, which farre excels and is immutable: Yea, wee finde by experience that many things which are good in themselves, are not good for all purposes; fire is good in it selfe, and for many uses; but not to bee eaten; and so many other crea­tures are good, as the flesh of beasts for mans meat, but not with­out bread and salt, nor raw: So man was created good and fit to rule all other living creatures, even considered alone in him­selfe; but it was not good for the bringing of all Gods purposes to passe that man should bee alone; it was farre better that a Woman should bee created meet for him, for the procreation of mankind, for the increase of Gods Church, and for the in­carnation of Christ, and the bringing forth of him the blessed seed of the Woman, in whom God reveales all his goodnesse and good pleasure. Here then wee may learne two points of in­struction.

First, that as God from all eternity in his eternall councell Doctr. 1 In Christ a better thing in­tended then the creation. immutably purposed, so in the first creation of man hee shewed, that hee intended all things which hee hath brought to passe in and by the incarnation of Christ, and in the gathering together of his elect Church by Christ, and that hee had in his purpose the exaltation of man to an higher and better estate then that in which hee first created him. For it is most cleare and ma­nifest, that Adam, being created in the image of God, in all up­rightnesse and perfection of nature; and having all the visible World to view, and to contemplate upon Gods wisedome and workmanship therein, and all the creatures to rule over, and all things necessary for worldly delight, needed no more for naturall and earthly felicity: But yet for all this God said, it was not good that man should bee alone; that is, it was not good for that which God intended, that is, for the obtaining of eternall felicity in and by Christ, and for the full manifestation of Gods goodnesse and glory in and upon mankind. This is that truth, which is so often testified by our Saviour and his Apostles, [Page 190] where they tell us, that God prepared a Kingdome for his elect from the beginning of the World; and that as an elect number was chosen in Christ before the foundation of the World; so Christs in­carnation' death, satisfaction and mediation were ordained be­fore all worlds, as Matth. 25. 34. and Eph. 1. 4.

First, this sheweth against all Atheists, Pagans, and Hereticks Vse 1. that nothing comes to passe by chance, nothing without the foresight and foreknowledge of God: but hee saw before hee created the World what should befall every creature, and with­out his will permitting, no evill comes to passe, & without his wil ordaining, and his hand working, no good can come to any creature; all things are according to his foreknowledge, and there is no place for idle suppositions of vainemen.

Secondly, as the wicked may here for their terrour take no­tice, that all their evil deeds are foreseene and foreknowne of God, Vse 2. and hee hath just vengance laid up in store for them: So the godly may comfort themselves against all Calumnies, Slanders, and false witnesses; all are knowne to God, and hee will in the end make the truth knowne, and bring their cause to light.

Thirdly, wee are hereby stirred up to all diligence in Gods service, and that betimes, seeing God hath so long before hand Vse 3. ordained and prepared all good things for us: All our time spent in praise and thanks before him, is nothing to the time wherein hee hath shewed love to us, in preparing good for us before and from the beginning of the World.

Secondly, in that it is said, of man created in Gods image Doctr. 2. in full perfection of nature, that it was not good, that hee should bee alone: Hence wee learne, that the image of God, and the state wherein man was first created, is not absolutely the best which man can have; but that in Christ there is a better image, and a more excellent state and condition provided for him, which is best of all. This is fully proved, 1 Cor. 15. where the Apostle shewes, that the image of the heavenly Adam is farre above the image of the earthly, and that the Kingdome which is prepared in Christ for the elect, is such as flesh and bloud, that is, naturall man cannot inherite.

This shewes, that wee gaine more by Christ, then wee lost Vse. in Adam; and God by mans fall, is become more bountifull to [Page 191] mankind: And wee who in Christ have our hope, have no More gained in Christ, then lost in Adam. cause to repine at Gods decreeing, willing and suffering of mans fall, nor to bee impatient under the afflictions which thereby come upon us; seeing the end of all is glory and blisse, and a crowne too high and precious for Adam in the state of in­nocency.

The second thing in Gods councell and purpose is, that hee will make an helpe meet for man. Here againe it may seeme strange, that Adam should need an helpe in the state of inno­cency; for helpe is required when a man is in need, and wants necessaries for avoiding evill or gaining some good; which Adam, being created in Gods image and having all the World at will, seemed not to want. But to this I answere, that by an helpe here, wee are to understand not an helpe to resist any evill, or to gaine some naturall good which hee wanted; but an helpe for obtaining an higher and more blessed estate, even the supernatu­rall and heavenly estate of grace and glory in Christ, the seed of the Women: Whence wee may learne,

That the Woman was created not to bee a servant to man, Doctrine. Woman not made to bee a servant. to serve his naturall necessity; for hee needed no such helpe or service in that estate, being made good and perfect with naturall perfection: but to bee an helpe and furtherance to hea­venly happinesse, and in things which tend thereunto. And al­beit the Woman by being first in the transgression, and a meanes of mans fall is made in her desire subject to man, and to his rule and dominion over her; yet by Christ the promised seed of the Woman, shee is restored to her first honourable estate, to bee an helpe to man in heavenly things, and a meanes to winne man, and to bring him to God in Christ by her chast and holy conver­sation, and by shewing a lively example of piety, and of the true feare of God, and giving due reverence to her husband, as Saint Peter testifieth, 1 Pet. 1. 23.

This Doctrine is of good use: First, to teach men how to use Vse 1. and esteeeme their Wives, and wherein especially to seeke their helpe even in heavenly things, and in earthly and temporall, so farre as they serve to further them in spirituall. If men could bee brought to understand and beleeve this, they would bee carefull to marrie in the Lord, and to match themselves with [Page 192] Wives of the true religion, godly and vertuous, well ap­proved for piety, faith and knowledge, and truly fearing God.

Secondly, to direct Women, how they ought to frame, beare, Vse 2. and behave themselves towards their husbands; and wherein they ought to strive, study, and endeavour to bee helps to them, even in the way to heaven; Let the daughters of the cursed Ido­latrous Canaanites beare this just brand, that, like Iezabel, they are snares, and stirre up their husbands to wickednesse, and to Idolatry and cruelty.

To reprove Men and Women, who onely or chiefely seeke fleshly, carnall and worldly helpe, content, profit, and pleasure Vse 3. one from another, and in their mutuall society and conjugall communion; and so quite swerve and stray from the rule of this Doctrine: where wee have much matter of reproofe mi­nistred to us, both of men who take Wives according to their lust, and greedy desire of wealth and riches, not for religion and the feare of God; or who make drudges and slaves of their Wives whom God made to bee helps meet for them; and also of Women who give themselves to bee no helps to their hus­bands except it bee for the World, no furtherers at all but rather pul-backs and hinderers in the way to heaven, and in heavenly and spirituall things.

The second thing, in the preparation to the Womans creation, Of giving names to the crea­tures. is, Gods setting of Adam a worke to view all living creatures, and to employ his reason and wisedome in giving names to them. Where wee are to note and observe, First, that here is no men­tion made of the living creatures in the Sea, but onely of those which God formed out of the ground, that is, beasts, and cat­tell, and fowles of the aire all which were ready at hand, and God might quickly present, and make to passe before Adam all kinds of them, that hee might view and name them. Se­condly, wee here may observe the intent and purpose of God in bringing them to Adam; to wit, the exercise and triall of Adams naturall reason, wisedome, and knowledge; which were made manifest by his giving to every kind fit names, which God approved and confirmed. Thirdly, the manifestation of Adams wisedome, and Gods confirming of his judgement, [Page 193] which hee shewed in naming every kind of earthly creature with a name agreeable to the nature of it. For whatsoever Adam called every living creature, that was the name of it, that is, that name was ratified by God. Yea also, because there was no use of names, whereby the creatures might bee knowne to any other or revealed, (there being as yet no man besides Adam himselfe, nor the Woman yet made to whom hee might shew them by their names) I am induced to thinke, that Adam gave such a fit and proper name agreeable to the nature and qualities of every creature, that the creature, being called by that name, would come to Adam whensoever hee called upon it; such was the obedience of the creatures to Man, and such was mans wise­dome to rule them, and so excellent was his knowledge of their severall natures and qualities. From which observations thus opened wee may learne:

That, in the state of innocency in the first creation, man had Doctrine. Adam per­fect in na­tural know­ledge. perfect naturall knowledge of all naturall things, arising and sprin­ging immediatly from his naturall soule, and the powers and faculties thereof, which were naturall principles created in him; he had no need to bee taught by any instructor, in any art or knowledge fit for his state and condition, nor to learne by experience as now we doe since the fall.

Now, seeing Adam was thus perfect in naturall knowledge of Vse. The best naturall knowledge cannot up­hold. all things which concerned his naturall state and condition, and yet was seduced by the woman, & the serpent: This serves to teach us, that no naturall knowledge, gifts, and abilities can uphold and sustaine a man against spirituall enemies, and temptations; that power is proper to supernaturall grace, neither can naturall reason dive into the depth of heavenly and supernaturall things. If naturall wit and reason could have conceived the spirituall meaning of the tree of life, and of the tree of knowledge of good and evill; surely Adam would first have eaten of the tree of life, and not by any meanes have beene tempted and drawn to eat of the tree of knowledge of good and evill: For he who was created good, could in no case wittingly have neglected the tree of life, and desired the other upon any false suggestion. Wherefore let us not build upon nature, but wholly upon grace, in things which concerne eternall life and heavenly happinesse. [Page 194] He that followeth naturall reason for his guide in the way to heaven, may easily bee carried aside, and fall into the crooked wayes of errour, which lead unto hell, and speedily fall into the pit of destruction.

The third thing to be noted in the preparation to the wo­mans creation is, the inequalitie which Adam found in all the creatures to be his mates and companions, and their unfitnesse for his conversation to be an helpe meet for him: this is in these words, but for Adam there was not found an helpe meet for him. The words seeme to sound, as if God had brought the crea­tures before Adam, to see if either he himselfe, or Adam could find one among them all fit to bee a consort for Adam and a meet help. But the purpose and intent of God was to imploy Adams wit, and to take an experiment of it, as is before noted: And as for God, hee knew well enough what was to bee found among all the creatures, hee needed not either to seeke for Adam, or to set Adam to seeke a meet helpe among them: Yea, hee had said before, I will make an helpe meet for him. The mea­ning is, that when Adam had viewed and named all kinds of earthly creatures, hee found them all so farre inferiour to him­selfe, and so unlike in nature, that they could not all yeeld him an help meet for him. The word [...], which is here transla­ted, meet for him, some would have it to signifie against him, which is most absurd; For the Woman was not made a perverse creature to thwart Man; then shee had beene a Crosse and an Hell, not an help. Tostatus would have this word to signifie contrary to him, because the Woman in her naturall members or parts is contrary to Man; which is also absurd. Neither doth this word signifie as one before him, that is, as Kimchi expounds it, as one to stand before him, and to attend him as a servant; for then God would not have made her of his owne substance; but of a meaner and inferiour matter: But the word signifies, as one which is his second selfe, made in the same forme like him, as a picture is drawne in a table set just before a mans face, and over against him, that it may in all parts answer to his shape and feature. Such an help Adam could not finde among all earthly creatures; but such a one God purposed, and resolved to make for him, even one who should be his second selfe, made of [Page 195] his owne substance, and in the same image of God, and consisting of a living reasonable Soule (as hee did) and of a body in all parts and members, and in forme and shape fully like to his body, (onely the difference of sex excepted.) This common sense and experience doth shew and teach, and therefore, this is the true sense and meaning of this phrase, I will make an help meet for him. And hence wee learne:

That man created in the image of God doth so farre in nature, Doctr. None but Woman a meet com­panion for. Man. former and substance excell all living creatures, birds, beasts and living things on earth, that none of them all is a meet consort or companion for him to converse with. Some delight hee may take in ruling over them, and in their service and obedience; but no true or solid content in their society and conversation. As Adam found this in the state of innocency, and in his pure uncorrupt nature; so all Adams sons of the best temper ever ab­horred to bee excluded from humane society, and to converse with birds and beasts. David counted it worse then death to live among wild beasts in the desarts, and complained bitterly of it; Psalme 42. and could not bee satisfied till hee had drawne to him all discontented persons, and them who durst not shew their heads for debt, 1 Sam. 22. 2. So did austere Eliah, when Iezabel made him flee for his life into the wildernesse, 1 King. 19. And never any of Gods Saints delighted to live in the wildernesse onely, among beasts and birds without humane so­ciety, except in times of cruell persecution, as appeares, Hebr. 11. or for some speciall triall and temptation, as our Saviour, Mark. 1. 13. and his forerunner Iohn the Baptist, Luk. 1. last verse, to harden him and make him austere, and a second Eliah.

This admonisheth us to esteeme the society of men as a Vse 1. great blessing of God; and not to set our delight on dogs, horses, hawkes, and hounds, more then in the company of men, as many doe, which is an argument that they are degenerate from the nature of men.

Secondly, this discovers the beastly dotage of many Romish Vse 2. Saints, and of the Monkes, and Anachorites of the Church of Rome, who count it an high point of perfection to live in caves, and dennes, and cottages in the wildernesse remote from all humane society, and to converse onely whith beasts, yea and [Page 196] to preach unto them, as their Saint Francis is by them recor­ded to have done, and have called ravenous Wolves his bretheren. God made man a sociable creature, to delight in humane society, and hath given him a mouth and tongue to speake his minde to others, who can with reason hear and understand him. Hee who will follow Christ must not looke on his owne things, but on the things of others; and must impart all his holy me­ditations to as many as hee can, if hee hath any in him: Other­wise hee hides his talent, and covers his candle under a bushell, which favours of Satanicall envy, hath no relish of Christian kindnesse and charity.

I might here observe the conformity of Woman in her na­ture Of the rib, where of Woman was made. and frame unto man, and the sweet harmony and concord which, by the law of nature and creation, ought to betweene Man and Woman; but I have in part touched it before, and shall have more occasion hereafter.

I proceed to the creation it selfe, laid downe in the 21. and 22. Verses: wherein I observe, First, the matter of which the Woman was made, to wit, a Rib of the Man, Verse 21. Secondly, the manner, Verse 22: In the matter; First, it is shewed, that God caused a deep sleepe to fall upon Adam, such as makes a man senselesse of any thing which is done to him; so the Hebrew word [...] signifies. This sleepe was not naturall, but an extraordinarie sleepe which God made to fall on him; a sleepe which came not from any violence done to nature but by the powerfull hand of God making man to sleepe quietly, so that hee did not feele what God did to him. Secondly, it is said, that in this deep sleepe God did take one of Adams Ribs, and closed up the flesh in stead of it. Here divers questions are moved by divers interpreters: 1. Whether it was one Rib, or a paire of ribs. 2. Whether it was one of Adams necessary Ribs, one of the twelve, which every man hath naturally in his side; or whether an extraordinary Rib, made in Adam for the purpose. 3. Whether Adam was cast into stupidity to take away paine and feare, or whether for some other cause.

Some thinke, that if it was a Rib created in Adam above the ordinary number, then Adam was made a monster. Others say, that if it was an ordinary Rib; then Adam was afterwards a may­med [Page 197] man, and wanted a necessary naturall part. But I conceive this to bee the truth:

First, that it was but one Rib, or at least one paire of Ribs; so the text affirmes.

Secondly, it was not one of Adams necessary Ribs, required to make him a perfect man; but a Rib above the ordinary num­ber, which God created in Adam of purpose, and yet Adam was no monster, neither was it a superfluous part: for as Adam was created the common stock and root of all mankind; so it was requisite that hee should have one Rib extraordinary crea­ted in him above other Men, whereof the Woman was to bee made, and he neverthelesse remaine perfect and complete as any other man afterwards.

Thirdly, Adams deep sleepe was not to take away sense of Of Adams deep sleep. paine; but a mystery of building the Church out of Christs death, under which hee slept to the third day. And it is said, that God closed up the flesh in stead thereof, or in the place thereof; not that God left a scarre or hollow place, or that God created flesh to fill up the place of the Rib; but onely closed up the flesh in the place where hee tooke out the Rib, so that no scar or print did there appeare, but man appeared most per­fect, and without mayme or signe of any wound.

In the second place, for the manner of the Womans creation, it is said, that God made this Rib a Woman or builded it up to bee a Woman, as the words run in the Hebrew; which word im­plies, that as children are derived of their parents to build up their familie; so the Woman was derived from Adam to build up his great family, mankind, of his owne nature and substance; and that his posterity might spring wholly from him, both in respect of himselfe, and of his wife their common Mother, which was taken out of him. I omit needlesse questions, and ridiculous collections which some have here made: as, that the Woman being made of a bone is hard hearted, and such like. The profitable points which I observe from hence, are these following:

First, wee are here taught by mans falling into a deep sleepe, Doctr. 1. senselesse like death, that the Woman might bee taken and formed out of him, That God in the creation foreshewed, that the spouse [Page 198] of the second Adam Christ, even the true Church should be pur­chased Out of Christ dy­ing the Church is raised. by the death of Christ, and the blood drawne out of his side; and Christ, by his sleepe in death, should make way to raise and build up his Church. That the first Adam and his Wife in her creation were the types and figures of Christ and his spouse the Church, I need not stand to prove; the Apostle hath done it sufficiently, Ephes. 5. 25, 26, 32.

This serves for much heavenly instruction; as first, to put us in minde of the unity which is betweene Christ and his Church; Vse 1. and to make us, as wee desire, to bee a true and chaste spouse of Christ; also to labour to be spiritually united to him, & never rest till wee feele and perceive that wee are borne of Gods immor­tall seed, even of his Spirit.

Secondly, to make us ascribe our being wholly to Christ, as wee are the true, holy, and regenerate Church and people of Vse 2. God, and of the heavenly family. Thirdly, to make us love Christ, and to meditate on his death with all holy reverence 3. and tender affection, as the thing by which wee are purchased; yea to make us ready to conforme our selves to Christ in his death, by suffering for the good of his Church. Fourthly, to make us see, that the creation was as it were a shadow of Gods 4. restauration of the World by Christ, and that the restauration is the substance by which the creation is perfected.

Secondly, God made the Woman of a Rib, which was a part of the mans body; which teacheth us, that Woman must by the Doctr. 2. course of nature yeeld to man the preheminence, as being made out of him; this the Apostle also teacheth 1 Cor. 11. 7, 8. And this admonisheth Women to give due respect to their hus­bands, Vse. as is meet, in the Lord, and not to usurpe rule and autho­rity over men.

Thirdly, God made Woman of Mans substance; which tea­cheth, that Woman is neare and ought to bee deare to Man, as Doctr. 3. a part of himselfe; which the Apostle confirmes, Ephes. 5. And here all harsh and tyrannicall husbands are justly noted; and their doings reproved.

Fourthly, the making of the Woman of a bone, a solid part, Doctr. 4. teacheth us, that shee is made to bee a solid helpe and stay to man, and ought so to be in his family. And hereby husbands are directed [Page 199] to esteeme their wives, as the stay of their family. And wives to strive to bee helps.

Fifthly, in that God made the Woman not out of mans head Doctr. 5. Wives are continuall compani­ons of our lives. nor feet; but out of his side, hereby hee hath taught us, that wo­men must not bee too high and proud as the head, nor too low vassals as the feet, but consorts and companions of their hus­bands in the whole course of their life, partakers of the same grace, and of the same honours and dignities; yoke-fellowes in the same labours and cares in this World, and coheires of the same glory in the World to come. The wise-Man confirmes this fully by the description of a vertuous Woman, which is reformed after the true image, in which shee was created, Prov. 31. For hee describes her to bee one who consorts with her husband in labour and provident care, and drawes equally with him in the same yoke, and partakes of the same honour, and respect both in publike and private. The holy Prophets also and Apostles shew, that the Woman is made to bee Mans in­separable companion, Mal. 2. 14. even the desire of his eye, and the joy of his glory, on whom especially hee sets his mind, Ezech. 24 16. and that mans delight must bee to have her continually at his side, and her delight must bee to present her selfe to his eyes as a looking-glasse, in which hee may behold his owne glory, even the image of God, in which hee was formed first, and shee after him, 1 Cor. 7. 10, 11. where the Apostle forbids the Wife to depart from her Husband, and the Husband to put away his Wife, and their defrauding one another of mutuall comfort by separating and living apart. For as man is the image and glory of God; so the Woman is the glory of the Man, 1 Cor. 11. 7. in whom man may behold, as in a glasse, the image of God in which hee was created. And therefore the holy Apostles who were married, as Peter, and the bretheren of the Lord, in their travelling to preach the Gospell, did lead about their wives, as Saint Paul testifieth, 1 Cor. 9. 5. Also Saint Peter speakes plainely to this purpose, 1 Pet. 3. 7. where hee injoynes hus­bands to dwell with their Wives according to knowledge, giving honour to the Wife as to the weaker vessell, and as being co­heires of the grace of life; that is, as a man is indued with more knowledge, so it is his duty to dwell and converse with his [Page 200] Wife wisely as a man of knowledge: and as wee tender those ne­cessary vessells which are usefull for us, and the more weake and brittle they are, the more wee take care for them, and have a continuall eye over them; so men ought to bee more carefull over their Wives, because they are the weaker sex; and to give them more respect, honour and shield, and more to esteeme of them by having a constant eye towards them, and keeping them in their sight and presence, as much as may bee; and so much more, because they are coheires of the grace of life, and must draw joyntly together as under the same yoke in the way to heavenly happinesse.

This Doctrine of truth, written in our hearts in the creation, should bee a guide and direction unto us all in the whole course Vse. 1. of our lives: It directs Men how to esteeme their Wives, and to beare themselves towards them; and Women how to be­have themselves before their Husbands, that the one ought not cast the other behind as an unfit and unworthy mate and com­panion: the Man must not run too farre before, and leave his Wife behind, either in worldly estate, or in grace and in the way to heaven; nor the Wife draw back and lagge behind, ei­ther through careleseness, or mean conceipt of her owne frame, nature and sex; but both must draw cheeke by cheeke, and side by side, and by joynt strength and endeavour draw on, & pull, and put forward one another, as a couple that are by the yoke which God imposed on them in the creation fast tied together. This is the will and law of God, and they that walke by this true rule, Gal. 6. 16. peace, prosperity and blessing shall bee on them all their dayes, and the end of their labour shall bee an eternall Sabbath in hea­ven.

Secondly, it serves to reprove the great corruption which is daily seene among Men and Women in this miserable World, Vse 2. by meanes of which the World appeares to bee very much out of frame. Some men, like Turkes and Italians, make no account of their wives, but as of slaves to serve their lust, and as foote­stooles to tread upon, and trample at their pleasure. Some, like savage Indians, make them drudges to toile and labour for them as Oxen and Horses, and to serve them as servants and slaves. Some account them weake creatures, not capable of any great [Page 201] knowledge or wisedome, and thereupon neglect the care and pains of instructing them, and teaching them, and imparting their knowledge to them, & drawing and pulling them on in the same way, and causing them to go on with themselves in an equal pace. And so again, some women esteeme their husbands as men that are bound to serve, please, humour and flatter them in all things which they desire; and that the maine care of the man should bee to deck, adorne, and set forth his wife as his Idoll in all costly apparell, and toyish painting, and vanities, as if shee were made to feed his eyes with her ornaments, and vanishing beau­ty. And on the other side, some out of a base mind and sloth­fulnesse thinke it belongs not to them to bee fellow builders of the family, equall to their husband in honest care, labour and industry for the common good of the family, or in grace and spirituall gifts; in all which they must bee partakers in their measure and proportion. Let such transgressors of the law of nature bee assured, that as they come short of common humanity, so much more of the grace and glory of God.

The third thing in the history of womans creation, is the consequents of it. 3. Conse­quents. 1. 2.

The first, that God brought her to the man, vers. 22.

The Second, that Adam accepted her, as an help meet for him, that is, as his second selfe, a most pleasing and delightsome com­panion of his life, and most helpfull to build up mankind, ver. 23. upon which Moses by inspiration of Gods spirit, inferres by way of necessary conclusion an excellent doctrine, which hath both a morall and propheticall meaning.

First a naturall morall sense, to wit, First, that a mans wife is nearer to him, and ought to be esteemed dearer than his na­turall parents, and to her he must cleave, though it be with lea­ving them. Secondly that in creating the woman, and joyning her to man in marriage, God did prefigure and fore-shew the infinite love of Christ to his Church, and the love of the Church to Christ, and the spirituall and mysticall union which is between them; as is noted Eph. 5. 32.

The third consequent is, the nakednesse of the man and woman, 3. which was without shame or any inconvenience in their first creation before their fall, ver. 25.

[Page 202] First, it is said that God brought her to the man, that is, so soone as God had made and formed her of mans rib, he presen­ted 1. Of Gods bringing Eve to A­dam. her to him to be his wife, and so an help meet for him; we must not thinke that this bringing of her to him was onely a setting of her before his eyes, and shewing her to his sight; but that God withall declared to the man how, and whereof he had made her, even of a rib taken out of him, and did offer her to him for a wife and equall consort; so much the phrase of bringing her to him doth import. From whence we learne,

That the marriage of man and wife is the ordinance of God in the state of innocency, and God is the first Author of it, and the Doctr. 1. Marriage the ordi­nance of God. first match-maker between man and woman in the first creation. Our Saviour also testifieth this in the gospell, Mat. 19. 6. saying that by vertue of Gods first ordaining of marriage, man and woman married together are no more twaine, but one flesh. And whatsoever God hath thus joyned together, no man ought to put asunder.

And there is good reason why God should be the first au­thor of marriage; Because it is the onely lawfull meanes of Reas. 1. bringing forth people to God, and of propagation of mankind; and it is such a ground and foundation of the Church, that with­out it God cannot have an holy seed, as the Prophet intimates Mal. 2. 15. which point serves.

First, to shew that marriage is honourable in it selfe, in the na­ture of it, among all men and women of all sorts, orders and de­grees, Vse 1. as the Apostle teacheth, Heb. 13. 4. And the Popes and Church of Rome, in counting marriage a kind of fleshly un­cleanenesse, and defilement, discover themselves to be opposers of Gods ordinance, and violaters of the law of nature.

Secondly, to shew that the best celebration of marriage is, when it is solemnly celebrated, and man and woman joyned to­gether Vse 2. by Gods publike Ministers, who stand in the place of God, as Ambassadours, and are his mouth to blesse his people: For then God is after a secondarie manner the author and match-maker; And his ordinance being thus observed, and the marri­age blessed by his ministers, there may be more hope of blessing upon it, and upon the parties joyned together.

Thirdly this, In going about marriage men and women ought Vse 3. [Page 203] chiefly & first of all to consult with God, to looke up to him, & to seeke his direction and assistance by humble, fervent and faithfull prayers and supplication. It is onely he who knoweth fittest mat­ches and consorts for every one, and can give to man an help meet for him.

Fourthly it discovers to us the abomination, and unnaturall Vse 4. filthinesse of whoredome and fornication, wherein men and wo­men do joyne and mingle themselves together without God, the Divell and fleshly lust leading them. No marvell that A­dulterers, whoremongers, and fornicators, are so often in the Scriptures excluded out of the kingdome of God.

Secondly, wee hence learne. That pure marriage, which is Doctr. 2. Marriage is of one Man with one Wo­man. Mal. 2. 15. Gods ordinance, is of one man with one woman, For God had an excellency and over-plus of spirit in the creation; and yet hee made but one Woman for Adam who was but one man; & why? but that he might seeke a godly seed, as the Prophet saith, Mal. 2. 15. Our Saviour also teacheth in the Gospell that a man ought to have but one wife while he and shee liveth; and God from the begin­ning, even from the creation, shewed that he did not allow Po­lygamie. And in old time God tolerated it in some of the Patri­archs and Prophets, not as a thing naturally good and allowable; but as a type and figure of Christ and his severall Churches, which, as severall spouses, he gathers to himselfe out of Iewes and Gentiles, Cant. 6. 8.

This, being so, teacheth every man to bee carefull, circum­spect Vse. and inquisitive in choosing to himselfe a Wife who is to bee his perpetuall consort and companion of his life. It is good councell of a wise-Man, which he gives to all; that There ought much deliberation to bee used in doing a thing which is to bee done once for all, and if it bee done amisse, can never bee amended; And such is a mans taking of a woman to bee his Wife, shee is once taken for all, and during her life, hee may not seeke a better, nor can bee eased of his burden if shee proveth froward, perverse and contentious: hee who finds a good wife, gets a meet helpe and continuall comfort to himselfe; but hee who takes a brawling wife, puls upon himselfe a perpetuall crosse and clogge.

The second consequent, is Adams free and willing accepta­tion 2. [Page 204] of the woman to bee his wife, and so an helpe meet for him, in these words, And Adam said, This is now bone of my bone, and flesh of my flesh; shee shall bee called Woman, because shee was taken out of man, Verse 23. wherein wee may note three things worthy to bee considered.

First, that God having made a wife fit for Adam, doth not by [...]. c [...]active or commanding power and authority put her upon him; but having shewed her to him, what one, and whence shee was, suffers him to accept and choose her freely of his owne accord, and makes not up the marriage till Adam doth cheere­fully, upon certaine knowledge of her nature and disposi­tion, accept her for his wife and second selfe. Whence wee learne,

That Marriage, according to Gods ordinance, is a free volun­tary Doctrine. Marriage must bee free and voluntary. contract made betweene a Man and his Wife, made with the well liking and mutuall consent of both parties. Though Fathers are said to take Wives to their Sons, and to give their Daughters to bee wives, Exod. 34. 16. And some Sons are said to desire their Fathers to give them such, or such wives, as Gen. 34. 4. and Iud. 14. 2. Yet they ought not to impose wives on their Sons without good liking and free consent, nor give their Daughters in marriage against their wils, as appeares in the example of Re­becca, whose consent was first asked before shee was promised to Isaac, Gen. 24. 58. And there is good reason of this: Because, where mindes, hearts, & affections are not united in two parties, Reas. they cannot delight to draw cheerefully under the same yoke, nor bee an helpe or stay one to another. Now a wife is ordai­ned of God to bee an helpe to her husband, and the desire of his eyes, and to draw with him in the same yoke; and hee is to bee a shelter to cover, and a stay to uphold her all his life. There­fore reason requires that marriage should bee a free and volun­tary contract made with the well liking and mutuall consent of both parties.

This Doctrine serves to reprove divers sorts of people, and Vse. A reproofe to many. to condemne divers marriages. First, marriages of Persons under age, before the parties have knowledge and discretion either to make a fit choice, or to order their affections. Secondly, [Page 205] marriages of wards, who have wives imposed on them under great penalties. Thirdly, forced marriages, unto which children are compelled by violent and tyrannicall Parents, or cruell un­just guardians, against their mind and liking; on such marriages there can bee no blessing hoped for nor expected, but much mischiefe and many inconveniencies, adulteries, and whore­domes, and many discontentments of life, as experience teacheth.

The second thing here to bee noted is Adams speech; This 2. is now bone of my bone, and flesh of my flesh; &c. by which it is manifest, that God, in presenting the Woman to him, did de­clare whereof hee had made her, and of what nature and kind shee was. Some ancient and moderne Writers doe gather from hence, that Adam was divinely inspired with the Spirit of Prophecie, and had understanding of hidden mysteries, which hee had never seene, heard, nor learned from any; because so soone as God brought the Woman, hee could presently tell whence shee was, and whereof shee was made, without any infor­mation. But this is a vaine and false surmise; for no Prophet could at any time know and declare secret things beyond sense and reason, without revelation either in a dreame, or vision, or word speaken to him by God. To know mens secret thoughts or doings without revelation or word from God, is proper to God, and to Christ, and to the Spirit, which searcheth all things; undoubtedly therefore, when God brought the Woman to A­dam and presented and offered her to him, hee did withall de­clare how and whereof hee had made her, of the same nature, and framed her in the same image, as I have before touched: For, in marriage-making, there are such declarations going be­fore to draw affection and free consent, and externall infor­mations by outward meanes; and this was a true platforme of marriage.

Hence wee learne, That men and women must not bee lead Doctrine. What guides must lead to mar­riage. unto marriage by secret inspirations, and divine revelations: But by knowledge gotten by experience, inquiry and infor­mation. Lust and fleshly desire are blind guides to marriage; as wee see in the Sons of God, the seed of Seth, who by beauty were drawne to take to wives the Daughters of men, who were [Page 206] of Cain's carnall and profane posterity, Gen. 6. 1. and in Esau, Gen. 27. A wife was chosen for Isaac upon knowledge and experience of her vertue, modesty, and hospitality, and there­fore God blessed the match. And Boaz tooke Ruth to wife, not for riches or kinred, but because shee was knowne a vertuous Woman, Ruth 3. 11.

As this Doctrine serves for direction and exhortation to Vse. men and women, to ground their conjugall affections aright upon knowledge, experience, and good information; which is a course most commendable and agreeing to Gods ordinance: So also for reproofe and conviction of Anabaptists, Enthusiasts, and Antinomians; such as Iohn of Leiden, and they of his sect; the Anabaptists of the family of love, who challenged women to bee their wives upon pretence of inspiration and divine re­velation; and, when they had satisfied their lust on them, and were [...]aged with lust of others, did upon the same pretence either murder, or cast them off, and take others; Gods wrath for this horrible sin and disorder pursuing them, and giving them up to monstrous and unnaturall lusts, and at length to mi­serable destruction. There are some who too much resemble these miscreants, and hereby also are reproved; I mean them who, like lustfull Shechem, upon the first sight are set on fire of lust, and are so strongly carried by it with violence, that they must have one another, or else they will dye or bee distracted. Such matches and marriages for the most part prove unhappy and uncomfortable; if any doe not, it is a great mercy of God, and a favour which ought to bee acknowledged with all thank­fulnesse.

The third thing here to bee noted is the manifest sense of Adams words, which is, that the Woman was not onely bone 3. of his bones, but also flesh of his flesh; that is, shee had both of his flesh and of his bones in her concurring to her substance. Whence wee may probably gather,

That the Rib of which the Woman was made, was not one bone, that is, an halfe Rib taken out of one side; but bones, that is, Doctr. 1. a paire of Ribs, or whole Rib taken out of both sides. The He­brew word [...], that is, my bones, intimates so much; and that this Rib was not a bare naked bone, but had some flesh clea­ving [Page 207] to it, because hee cals her flesh of his flesh, as being made of his flesh as well as of his bones. This is a matter of no great mo­ment; but, being a truth necessarily implied in the words of the text, it may serve for speciall use.

First, to put us in minde, that Adam, the first man, was the Vse 1. common stock and root of all mankind; and not onely all A­dams posterity were wholly contained in Adam alone; but also the first woman, the Mother of us all, had her first vitall life in Adam, and was a part of his living flesh and bones. And, as in the first Adam all mankind had their naturall being: so in Christ all the elect and faithfull have their spirituall being and whole life, and even the Church, Christs spouse, the Mother of all true beleevers, hath her being wholly from Christ; and therefore to Christ wee must ascribe our whole spirituall being and new birth. The Father, by his Spirit shed on us through Christ, begets us to himselfe of his immortall seed, his Spirit, to the lively hope, to the inheritance incorruptible and undefiled, that fadeth not away, reserved for us in heaven.

Secondly, it serves to worke constant love betweene man Vse 2. and his wife, and to stirre up man to love his wife as his owne flesh; and every woman to love her husband as every part of the body loves the body whereof it is a part; and also to pro­voke men to love one another, as being a most naturall affection of one member to another in the same body. As for them who are envious, and men-haters, and cruell persecuters; they are here discovered to bee children of the great man-murthe­rer the Divell, and with him they shall have their por­tion.

Secondly, in that Adam gives this as a reason of his free Doctr. 2. Similitude of manners the best ground of love. accepting of his wife, because shee is of the same nature and substance, bone of his bones, and fit to bee named [...], Wo­man, or as one would say a she-man: Hence wee learne, that the best ground of marriage and band of love is similitude of natures and dispositions, and unity of heart and spirit, by which they are both alike affected. This is that which the Apostle teacheth, were hee saith, Bee not unequally yoked; for what con­cord can there bee betweene light and darknesse, righteousnesse and unrighteousnesse? that is, contrary natures and dispositions? [Page 208] 2 Cor. 6. 14. This rule Abrahams faithfull servant followed in chusing a wife for Isaae: as hee knew Isaac to bee charitable and kind to strangers and given to hospitality, so hee made his prayer to God to direct him to find a wife for him of the same disposition; and when hee found Rebecca to bee such a one by the entertainment which shee gave to him being a stranger, hee would not rest till hee had gotten the consent of her, and her parents, and friends; Gen. 24. The neglect of this rule God forbids in his law, and threatens with a curse, Deut. 7. 3. It was that which made wise Solomon, prove a doating foole in his old age, because wives of a contrary religion turned away his heart, and made him build high places for Idols, 1 Kings 11. Ahabs matching with Iezabel an Idolatrous worshipper of Baal, made him an Idolater and a slave, who sold himselfe to all wickednesse when his wife Iezabel stirred him up, 1 King. 21. 25. And Ie­horam the Son of Iehosaphat King of Iudah by taking to wife the daughter of Ahab of a contrary religion, brought misera­ble destruction upon himselfe and his whole family, 2 Cron. 21. 6.

This Doctrine serves for admonition to all Men, to bee wary and circumspect in the choice of their wives; and if they bee Vse 1. A rule for [...]husing. vertuously and piously affected, and have a desire to live in the feare of God, and to build up a godly family, to have a speciall eye and respect of true religion, as well as of a good naturall disposition, and good education and behaviour. A godly Man must seeke a godly Wife, a kind and liberall Man a free hearted Wife; and a courageous Man a Woman of courage, that they may both draw one way. It is true, that sometimes in case of no­table infirmities bearing sway in Men, Women of contrary disposition may bee usefull and fit Wives to correct, amend, or moderate their corruptions; a Woman of a meeke and patient disposition may asswage the heat of her Husband being hasty and cholericke, and so bee an helpe meet for him. A wise Abigail may prove a necessary & helpful wife to a foolish Nabal, and by her wisedome may overcome his folly, and by her liberall hand may make amends and prevent the mischiefe of his churlish­nesse But it is no wisedome either in Man or Woman to runne such a desperate hazzard, in confidence of their owne wisedome, [Page 209] vertue or abilities. For wee find by experience, and it is a thing commonly seene, that Men and Women, by reason of humane frailty and naturall corruption which remaine in the best, are more subject of the froward to learne perversenesse, then by the wife, meeke and liberall consorts to be drawne from their folly, fury and churlishnesse: and therefore though in case when an hard lot befals Men or Women, they must make the best they can of that which is too bad, in hope that God will blesse their vertuous and godly endeavours; yet the best rule which godly Christians can observe in the choice of wives i [...], to choose such as are like affected and vertuously disposed as they themselves are, to regard chiefely the unity of Spirit, and the similitude of nature and disposition; which is a thing here taught by God in the creation and first marriage betweene Adam and Evah, the first Father and Mother of all man­kind.

Secondly, we may gather from this doctrine, that there can Vse 2. bee no hope or expectation of good from unequall marriages. And when men for carnall, worldly and politike respects, yoke themselves with wives of a contrary disposition and religion, daughters of a strange God, and vassals of Antichrist, there sel­dome or never followes a blessing. For just it is with God, that when men and women wall▪ contrary to God, and reject his right rule in their marriages, and in laying the foundation of their families; God should walke contrary to them in their whole course of life, and should crosse them in their endeavours, and bring their families to confusion.

The third and last consequent of the womans creation, 3. Conse­quent. is, that they were both naked, [...]he man and his wife, and they were not ashamed, ver. 25. In which words, wee are not in any case to understand by nakednesse, either want of necessary apparell, (for in the state of innocency there was no need thereof, and therefore no want of any) nor any want of naturall abilities or vertues, need full for beau­ty, Of the na­kadnesse of Adam and Eve. comlinesse, and ornament, or for naturall perfection; All such nakednesse, and want came in by sin, and after their fall: But here they are said to be naked, because they neither had nor needed any cloathes, or covering of their bodies, which were in [Page 210] all parts most comely and beautifull: Their skin was not rough, over-growne with haire like beasts, nor with feathers like birds, nor with hard scales like fishes; but their skin, faire, white, and ruddie, was comely in it selfe, and beautifull to their owne eyes, more then all ornaments of silke, fine linnen, and all jewels of gold and silver, set with the most glorious and precious stones, of most resplendent colour and brightnesse. And their bodies were of that excellent temper and constitution, that they neither felt nor feared any distemper of heat or cold. The aire and all the elements were tempered according to the temper of their bodies; and all things were pleasing, wholesome, and delight­some unto them; and to all living creatures they appeared love­ly, and full of beauty, and majestie. It was the creatures de­light to see them, and to looke on them; and it was their joy to see the creatures admiring them, and rejoycing in their sight and presence. And therefore there was no cause or occasion of any shame, or of any feare to shew their simple naked bodies, and to have every part and member openly seene; no uncom­linesse which needed a covering, but all parts and members were beautifull in themselves, and composed together in a comely order and frame. This is the true sense and meaning of the words; Wherein we have this plaine doctrine,

That the worke of God in the creation of our first parents was perfect without errour; the image of God appeared in their Doctr. 3. The crea­tion per­fect. bodies, and bodily for me and shape; they were full of all naturall grace, beauty, and comlinesse, in all parts and members from the crowne of their heads to the sole of their feete; the glory and wisedome of Gods workmanship shined in them most clearely to their owne eyes, and the eyes of all crea­tures. The truth of this appeares most manifestly in the words; for, certainly, if there had beene any least blemish or unseemely member in their naked bodies, they would have beene ashamed to goe and appeare openly bare and naked without covering; therefore I need not stand to prove it with many argu­ments: this one is sufficient, That all the forme, beauty and comelinesse of the most goodly Men and fairest Women that ever were, or are in the World, gathered together, and com­posed in the body of one Man or Woman; the goodly personage [Page 211] of Ioseph or Adonijah, the beauty of Absalom and Abishag, and the glory and comlinesse of Solomon, and all other formes and beauties named in histories, are but the ruines, reliques, di [...] shadowes and defaced scraps of that beauty and comelinesse which was in the naked bodies of our first parents, and in every part of them in the creation. And therefore our reason and senses may judge what comlinesse was in them.

This point considered is of great force to provoke and stirre Vse 1. Acknow­ledge Gods bounty. up men to acknowledge with all thankfulnesse Gods bounty to mankind in the first creation; and how exceedingly they are bound to love, and honour, and serve God for the naturall gifts & abilities with which God at the first did fully furnish man; not onely for necessity and welbeing, but also for glory, beauty, or­nament and comelinesse in the eyes of all creatures. And al­though our first parents forfeited these blessings by their diso­bedience, and have defaced by sin this excellent beauty: yet wee see Gods goodnesse abounding to us in this, that hee imprints in many of us some stamps and foot-steps of the image, in which wee were created, that wee may by the ruines which remaine, judge of the building of mans body, and of the beautifull frame wherein God at the first created us.

Secondly, wee may hence gather comfortable assurance, Vse 2. In Christ the glory of out bo­dies shall be restored. that as God did create man in admirable beauty at the first in the creation, and made him comely in the eyes of all creatures, in all parts of his body, so that it was no shame but a glory to walke naked without cloathes or covering: So, much more, in the work of redemption and restauration by Christ, God both can and will repaire our vile bodies, and restore unto them their first beauty and glory with great advantage, and make them like the glorious body of Christ, and reforme them after his heavenly image of holinesse, which so farre exceeds the first image, as heavenly excels earthly, spirituall and supernaturall excels naturall, and incorruptible and immutable surpasseth that which is fading and vanishing. For, the worke of redem­ption and restauration is a worke of greater goodnesse to men, then the worke of creation; and as it excels, so the effect of it must bee more excellent. In this worke God stretcheth forth his omnipotent hand, and all his goodnesse further [Page 212] then in the creation; there hee created all things by his eter­nall Word the Son, and by his Spirit working with him; but here hee gave his Son to bee incarnate, and the eternall Word to bee made flesh, and to suffer and dye, and bee made the price and ransome of our redemption; and, for the perfecting of this worke, hee doth in, and by, and through his Son give and com­municate his holy and eternall Spirit to dwell in their earthly tabernacles, to unite them to Christ in one body, to bring them to communion of all his benefits, and to renue them after his glorious image of true holinesse. Here therefore is ground of hope, and matter of rejoycing to all the elect and faithfull, and great incouragement against all feare and shame of wounds, stripes, and all deformities which cruell persecutors, and man­gling tyrants can inflict on their bodies. For the future beau­ty and glory which is purchased for them by Christ and pre­pared for them at last, shall cover, wash away, and utterly abo­lish all, when hee shall appeare in glory.

Thirdly, wee are hereby admonished, that the distempers, deformities, and all defects and infirmities, which appeare in Vse 3. our bodies, whereof wee may bee ashamed, are not of God the Creatour, but proceed wholly from our sin and fall in Adam, and from our owne surfeting and intemperance. For God made mankind most perfect in Soule and Body, even with full perfection of beauty in the first creation, as this Doctrine teacheth. And therefore so often as wee are ashamed of our deformities and our nakednesse; let us with griefe remem­ber our fall, and bee much more ashamed of our sins, and lay the blame on our selves and not on the Lord God our Crea­tour.

CHAP. XIV.

Of the estate and condition of our first parents: In five things. 1. The blessing of fruitfulnesse; A speciall blessing: Vses. Marriage free for all men. Colonies. 2. Dominion over all living creatures. Foure Requisites thereto. Degrees of it: Absolute, and Dependent: Vnlimited, and Limited. Restored in Christ. 3. Food for man. Not the living creatures: in innocency. 4. Mans habitation. Eden: What. Of the rivers. Twelve opinions about Paradise. Of the two trees in Paradise: Why the tree of life. How of the knowledge of good and evill. 5. Of Gods image.

ANd God blessed them, and said unto them, Be fruitfull and mul­tiply, Gen. 1. 28. and replenish the earth, and subdue it, and have domini­on over the fish of the sea, and over the fowles of the aire, and over every living thing that moveth upon the earth. Vers. 29. And God said Behold, I have given you every herbe bearing seed which is upon all the face of the earth; and every tree in which is the fruit of a tree yeelding seed, to you it shall be for meat. Vers. 30. And to every beast and foule and creeping thing wherein there is life, I have given greene herbe for meat; and it was so.

After the History of the particular creation of the Woman with the immediate Antecedents and Consequents thereof; The The con­dition of our first Parents; next thing in order is the historicall description of the state and condition of our first parents in the creation, in their integrity and innocency before their fall and corruption, while Gods image imprinted on them remained perfect, both in their Soules and Bodies; so that they had no least blemish or infirmity in their naked bodies, whereof they might bee ashamed. In five par­ticulars.

In this their first state of innocency there are divers things men­tioned by Moses, and historically laid downe in this History of the Creation, which are to bee unfolded in order.

The first is the blessing of fruitfulnesse, wherewith God 1. blessed them so soone, as hee had created them male and fe­male: This is laid downe in these words, And God blessed them and said unto them, Bee fruitfull and multiply, and replenish the Earth, Verse 28.

[Page 214] The second is the power and dominion which God gave them 2. over the earth, and over all living creatures in the water, aire, and earth: this is in the last words of the Verse; and subdue it, and have dominion over the fishes, fowles, and beasts.

The third thing is the bountifull gift of all herbes bearing seed, and of all fruits growing upon Trees; which God gave to 3. mankind for bodily food, Verse 29. And his free gift of green herbe or grasse for meat to the birds, beasts, and creeping things, Verse 30.

The fourth thing is the place of their habitation, the garden 4. which God planted in Eden; this is described, Chap. 2. 7. and so a-long to the 16. Verse.

The fifth thing, which is the chiefest of all, and which is first of all mentioned in the creation of Man and Woman, is the image 5. of God in which they were both created: This requires a more large discourse for the understanding of it; and for that cause I have deferred the handling of it to the last place next before the conclusion of the whole creation, even his viewing and ap­probation of every thing which hee had made for very good, laid downe, Verse 31.

The first is the blessing of fruitfulnesse for the multiplica­tion Of the blessing of fruitful­nesse. and increase of mankind, even to the filling and replenishing of the Earth, and the subduing of it. In describing this blessing Moses doth her first lay downe the blessing in a generall word, saying, God blessed them.

Secondly, hee sheweth more particularly wherein this bles­sing doth consist, to wit, in bodily fruitfulnesse for the increase of mankind, in these words, Be fruitfull and multiply.

Thirdly, the aboundance of the blessing and large extent of fruitfulnesse, even to the replenishing of the Earth, and subduing of it.

First, whereas God is said to blesse them, the meaning is, that God gave them the gift of fruitfulnesse, so soone as hee had made them in his owne image male and female: For the Hebrew word which is here used, signifieth first and primarily to bow the knee, or to kneele downe, as appeares, Gen. 24. 11. 2. Chron. 6. 13. Psalme 95. 6. Dan. 6. 10. And because bowing What the word sig­nifieth, of the knee is a kind of submitting and applying of the body in [Page 215] kindnesse to some person, to doe him some kind and pleasing service, hereupon this word is translated and used in the Scrip­tures to signifie, First Gods applying of himselfe to men, and 1. as it were bowing downe from the high throne of his Majesty to shew himselfe kind unto them, by giving them many both earthly and spirituall blessings in this life; yea, and himselfe with all his goodnesse to bee their portion, and to make them fully blessed in glory. Secondly, it is used to signifie mans applying 2. of himselfe to God, by bending his knees and his speech to praise God, and to laud and extoll his name, and to render pleasing thanks to his Majesty, and also one mans applying of his speech to ano­ther; and with bowed knees to salute him, as Gen. 24. 60. and 2 King. 4. 29. Also the action of Parents, publike Ministers, and superiour Persons whom God hath set over others bowing downe towards them, and applying themselves to them to wish all blessings unto them, and to pronounce them blessed of God, as Melchisedeck blessed Abraham, Gen. 14. and Isaac blessed Iacob, Gen. 27. and Iacob blessed his Sons, Gen. 49. and Moses blessed Israel, Deut. 33. In this place God is said to blesse them: that is, to apply himselfe to them, and as it were bowing downe kindly to give them a blessing. But because there are many blessings which God bestowes on men; Some are naturall, earth­ly and bodily blessings; Some heavenly and spirituall; And God Bodily blessings of two so [...]s. 1. blesseth men with bodily blessings two wayes, and in a two-fold respect; either by giving them gifts and abilities, as naturall wisedome and knowledge in their mindes; and strength and ability of body to doe some naturall and morall worke; or else by assisting them in the exercise of those gifts and abilities, and 2. giving good issue and successe unto them; as for example, ma­king their wisedome and knowledge effectuall, and giving good successe to the actions of them; and making the strength of their bodies, and their appetite, and actions of generation suc­cessefull to the bringing forth and increase of children. Now here wee are not to understand any heavenly or spirituall grace or gifts, but onely a naturall, bodily, even ability and strength of body and of nature for procreation of children and posterity without any defect or infirmity, or any failing of their endea­vours, or frustrating of the action of generation: thus much is [Page 216] here meant in these words. And this appeares plainely in the next words, which shew in particular what this blessing is even the blessing of fruitfulnesse in procreation of children: And God said u [...]o them, Bee fruitfull and multiply; which in effect, and in true sense and meaning is all one as if Moses had said. And God almighty by the eternall Word, his Son did give unto them the blessing of fruitfulnesse, even mutuall affe­ction for procreation, and strength and ability of body to pro­create and bring forth the fruite of the body, that is, children in that image of God, in which they themselves were made, and that according to their owne will and desire without failing, defect, or infirmity. Here then wee see this blessing was a perfect naturall blessing, even the perfect gift of pro­creation, for the multiplication and increase of mankind. And thirdly, that it was a blessing of great measure and aboun­dance, even fruitfulnesse and ability to multiply mankind to the replenishing of the earth, and subduing of it, the next words shew: And replenish the Earth, and subdue it. The first words, reple­nish the Earth, doe plainely shew, that God gave them the blessing of fruitfulnesse, and ability to multiply mankind un­till the earth were filled with inhabitants of the children of men. And the other word, subdue it, signifies not taking of The earth, how sub­dued by Adam. 1. the Earth into possession by violence and strong hand; as the word is used, Num. 32. 22. Ios. 18. 1. 2 Sam. 8. 11. where countries are said to bee subdued by force of armes. Neither doth it signifie subduing of the Earth by forcing it to bring forth corne, herbes, and fruit trees by hard labour, manuring, 2. and tillage: For, in the creation, the Earth was made fruitfull of it selfe, and brought forth aboundance of all herbes, plants, and trees, freely, without culture or labour of man forcing it; and there was no creature to resist mankind, and to keepe them out of possession; but the whole Earth was free for all men, and sufficient to satisfie them with all things needfull. But here it signifies mens inhabiting, occupying, and possessing of the 3. Earth, and that in such numbers and multitudes, as were then able to eat up the fruite of it, if man had stood in innocency; and now are able since mans fall, to till it, and bring it into subjection being cursed and made barren; so that no region or [Page 217] country may lye desolate and barren without tillage and habitation of men. This is the true sense and meaning of the words.

From whence wee learne 4. points of Doctrine: The first, Doctr. [...]. Procrea­tion of children a speciall blessing. That procreation of children in lawfull marriage, is a speciall bles­sing and gift of God, given in the creation for the multiplication and increase of mankind. My text here declares it to bee a bles­sing, and other Scriptures confirme the same. Psalme 137. the Prophet David proclaimes children to bee an heritage which cometh of the Lord, and the fruite of the womb to bee his reward, and the Man to bee happy who hath his quiver full of such arrowes, which are like arrowes in the hand of the mighty Man. And Psalme 128. 3. hee saith, that this is a blessing and happinesse of the Man which feareth God, and walketh in his wayes, that his Wife is as a fruitfull vine by the sides of his house, and his children like olive plants round about his table. And as Abraham the Father of the faithfull counted it a great defect, and want of a speciall and principall outward blessing, that hee did goe childlesse, and God had given him no seed, Gen. 15. so all Gods faithfull servants did pray to God for issue to themselves; and did wish it as a great blessing to others whom they loved; as wee see in the example of Isaac, Gen. 25. 21. who prayed to God for his Wife that shee might bee fruitfull: Of Moses, Deut. 1. 11. who prayed that Israel might bee multiplied a thousand times more: Of the Elders and People of Bethlehem, who prayed that God would give issue to Boaz of Ruth, and encrease his family like the family of Pharez; Ruth 4. 11. Of Hanah the Mother of Samuel 1 Sam. 1. Of Zacharie and Elizabeth Luk 1. And all the godly Matrones, the Wives of the Patriarches, counted it their reproach among Women to bee barren, and a great blessing to have chil­dren as wee see in Iacobs wives, Gen. 36. 23. and by Hannah's teares, 1 Sam. 1.

This serves first to teach and admonish all Men and Wo­men Vse 1. to seeke it as a blessing from God, and so to esteeme it, and to render unto God thanks accordingly, as Hannah and Zacharie, and the blessed virgins, as in their holy songs most evidently ap­peareth. If Men and Women could have grace thus to doe, it would bee a speciall meanes to make them respect their [Page 218] children, as great blessings, and pledges of Gods favour; and to make them strive to devote and consecrate their children to God and his worship, and to traine them up to bee fit in­struments of Gods glory, and pledges of their thankfulnesse to God.

Secondly, it serves to discover the grosse errour and heresy Vse 2. of the Manichaeans; who held that marriage and procreation of children was a worke of the Divell, as also of some Popes of Rome, who held marriage which is honourable among all, and the Syri [...]s. bed undefiled, as the Apostle affirmeth, Heb. 13. 4. to bee a worke of the flesh, which makes men unpleasing to God. The Lord despiseth not his owne ordinance; and marriage is ordained by him for increase of mankind, as this Doctrine teacheth; and therefore the opinion of these Hereticks and Popes is erroneous and abominable.

Secondly wee hence learne, that as the blessing of fruitful­nesse Doctr. 2. Marriage free for all men. was given to all mankind in the creation: so marriage, which God appointed for the increase of men on earth, is by the law of God, which is written in mans heart, and engraven in mans nature, free for all Men and Women, to whom God hath given abi­lity and strength of body for procreation and fruitfulnesse, for in­crease of mankind. As the text here openly expresseth so much, so in all the Scriptures wee have examples of holy men of all sorts, even of Priests and Prophets, not onely allowed, but also commanded by God to take Wives and beget children, as Isaiah cap. 8. 3. Ezechiel chap. 24. Hosea chap. 1. And the Apostle commends it as honourable in all, Hebr. 13. 4. And the Apo­stles who were most devoted to Christ, and to his worke, did lead about Wives with them, 1 Cor. 9. 5. And although in times of great trouble and persecution raised up against Christianity, Wives are a great burden, and breed much care and griefe to preachers of the Gospell, especially who must bee ready to run and flee whithersoever God cals them; and therefore in such cases the Apostle, by reason of the urgent and pressing necessity, holdeth it better for continent and chaste Men and Women to remaine unmarried, 1 Cor. 7. 26. And our Saviour doth approve, and well like it, in case when a mans heart and affection is so extraordinarily taken up with the love of the Kingdome of hea­ven, [Page 219] that hee is like an Eunuch without any desire of affection of marriage, Matth. 19. 12. Yet, wee have no word or pre­cept in all the Scripture to restraine any Persons of any order or calling from liberty of marriage. Saint Paul affirmes that he and Barnabas had power and liberty in this kind, though they used it not, 1 Cor. 9. 5.

The consideration whereof serves: First, to teach Men and V [...] 1. Women of all sorts to maintaine and retaine that liberty which God had given them from their first creation, and to admonish them to beware, that neither Satan by his suggestions, nor any of his wicked instruments by their cunningly devised fables, nor any misconceipt of their owne hearts, doe lay a needlesse snare upon their consciences, and possesse them with a false opinion, concerning that liberty which God hath written in mans heart in the state of innocency, which cannot bee taken away without violence offered to nature. They who are thus instructed and fully perswaded, if they doe marrie, they may have comfort in this assurance, that they are not out of Gods high-way, neither in this have swerved from his perfect law, and rule of liberty. If they find many crosses in the married life, yet let them know, that they are not curses laid on marriage for an unlawfulnesse of it. If they doe live single to avoid worldly cares, and to devote themselves wholly to heavenly thoughts and spirituall cares for the Kingdome of heaven, they have more cause to rejoyce and glory in the aboundance of Gods speciall grace to them, in that hee hath given them an heart to forsake lesser blessings for the gaining of greater, and bringing of more glory to God.

Secondly, this sheweth, that the Popes prohibitions of Priests Vse 2. Against Popish vir­ginity and vowes. marriage, and the absolute vowes of virginity and single life, taught and imposed by the Church of Rome, are cursed and corrupt inventions of men, and diabolicall devices, yea damnable haeresies, as the Apostle calleth them, 1 Tim. 4. 1. and 2 Pet. 2. 1. For, though divers holy Men of God, to whom God gave power over their owne wils, and the gift of continency to stand steadfast in their owne hearts have strongly resolved to keepe their virginity and to live single, that they might apply themselves to the service of God and his Church with greater free­dome [Page 220] from worldly eares, and have steadfastly held their re­solution, proving themselves such as our Saviour and his Apostle doe commend, Matth. 19. 12. and 1 Cor. 7. yet wee never read in Scripture, that they were commanded by God, or that they did bind themselves voluntarily by an unchangable vow, or under any execration to abstaine from marriage, and from pro­creation of children therein: but alwayes, without any absolute necessity imposed on them, remained at liberty to marry if just occasion were offered. If our adversaries object, that the law Ob. of nature must give place to the Evangelicall law, which hath greater promises, and tends to lead men to supernaturall and heavenly happinesse; and that for Christs sake and his Churches good wee must renounce liberty of nature: I answere, that the Evangelicall law doth not offer violence to the law of nature; Answ. neither doth it abolish any part thereof; but rather doth perfect it, by giving men grace willingly to neglect naturall liberty for the gaining of a better estate: As for example, the law of nature requires that men love Fathers, Mothers, Wives, Children, and their owne lives; and gives them liberty to hold lands and houses: but yet when the case so stands, by reason of tyrannie and presecution raging, that a man must either forsake all these, or deny Christ and renounce Christian religion; here a man ought to forgoe all for Christ, as the Gospell teacheth: And yet the Gospell never commandeth us to renounce Father, or Mo­ther, or Houses, or Land, and the like, and to expose our selves to death, when we may, together with Parents, Wives, Children, and Life, still cleave to Christ and enjoy him for salvation; yea it were frensie and fury for any Church to impose lawes on men for the hating of Parents, Wives, and Children, forsaking houses and lands, and giving themselves to death voluntarily when there is no inevitable necessity laid on them, but they may live good and faithfull Christians, and yet love Parents, Wives, and Children, possesse lands and houses, and live in safety. Wherefore, though wee highly commend them who more zealously fol­low Christ, and forsake the World, and make small account of naturall blessings in comparison of spirituall, but doe as Saint Paul did who made the Gospell free, and did not use lawfull li­berty, and power: yet wee cannot but count them execrable [Page 221] who tyrannize and lay cruell snares upon mens consciences, and impose lawes, and vowes upon themselves, or others, to forsake, and renounce utterly their lawfull liberty, and to bind them by that law and vow which either they must breake, or else fall into many wofull inconveniencies and abominable evils and mischiefes, as wee see in the Popes lawes and vowes; which have proved causes and occasions of secret Whoredomes, publike Stewes, many Rapes and Murders of innocents, to the staining and defiling of the whole Land.

Thirdly, we hence learne, that our first parents, in the state of 3. Doct. innocency, had in them both the affection and naturall desire to bring forth children, and to increase mankind with all con­venient speed, God so commanding them; also they had all strength and ability of body to beget and bring forth, and there was in them no defect to hinder procreation for a mo­ment.

The words of the text do plainely shew this: And reason Reas. 1. grounded on other Scriptures proves it fully. First our first pa­rents were created perfect in their kind, and God gave them the blessing of fruitfulnesse. Now where there are all naturall perfecti­ons and abilities accompanied with Gods blessing, there can be no hinderance of procreation, or any failing in any naturall action; therefore this Doctrine is manifest.

Secondly, all barrenesse and all multiplying and frustrating Reas. 2. of conceptions came in as a curse for sin, and upon the fall of our first parents, as the Lord himselfe sheweth, Gen. 3. 16. There­fore there was no place for it in the state of innocency.

This serves to admonish us all so often as we see barren­nesse Vse. 1. in men and women, and miscarrying wombes, and dry breasts; to remember our sin and fall in our first parents, and to grieve for our corruptions derived from them, and to hum­ble our selves under Gods hand.

Secondly, to perswade us, and to make us see and beleeve, Vse. 2. that our first parents did not stand long in their integrity and state of pure nature; yea, that they did not lodge therein one night as the Psalmist speakes, Psal. 49. 12. For reason and common ex­perience do teach us, that man doth readily and without any delay follow his will, and the affections which are most naturall in him; [Page 222] so soone as reason permits; now the affection and desire of procreation is most naturall, as all people of understanding do know, and the learned do grant; and his will must needs be acknowledged strongly bent and inclined to it, because God had commanded them to multiply and replenish the earth; and there was no reason moving man to restraine his will and affection, but onely till he had viewed the garden wherein God had placed him, considered the trees and fruites of it, and received Gods commandement of abstaining from the forbidden tree, all which must needs be done before the end of the sixth day. And if man in the state of innocency had knowne his Wife, sheehad without faile conceived a seed pure without sin, and had brought forth children in Gods image perfect and upright; wherefore they did without doubt fall in the end of the sixth day, as I shall more fully prove hereafter.

Fourthly, wee hence learne: That it is Gods will revealed from the beginning, and his ordinance and law given in the Doctr. 4. The whole earth given to Man. creation, that the Earth and every part of it should bee free for any man to possesse and inhabit it, untill it bee fully replenished with so many men as are able to subdue it by eating up the fruit thereof. This text teacheth plainely this point, by shewing that one end for which God blessed Man and Woman with fruitfulnesse, was, that they might replenish the Earth. And to the same purpose, the Psalmist speaketh fully Psalme 115. 10. The heaven and heaven of heavens is the Lords, but the Earth hath hee given to the children of men: and Deut. 32. 8. it is said, that God hath divided the Earth to bee the inheritance of the Sons of Adam. This truth the cursed Canaanites acknowledged by the light of nature, and therefore they suffered Abraham, Isaac, and Iacob to sojourne in their Land, and there to live with all their families, to feed their cattell, to digge wels, and to sow corne, and were so farre from driving them out, while there was roome enough, and they lived peaceably among them, that they entered into league with them, Gen. 14. 13. and 21. 27. and 26. 28.

First, this serves to cleare that doubt, and to decide that que­stion and case of conscience which is much controverted among Vse 1. godly and learned divines, and agitated in these dayes, to wit, [Page 223] whether it bee lawfull, to send people, and to plant colonies Of leading Colonies into other parts. in the vast countries of the west-Indies, which are not reple­nished with men able to subdue the Earth, and to till it: If wee bee Sons of Adam the whole Earth is free for us, so long as it is not replenished with men and subdued. The ancient straggling inhabitants or any other, who have taken possession before, they have right to so much as they are able to replenish and sub­due, and bring under culture and tillage; and no other people have right to dispossesse and expell them, or to disquiet them in their possession, or any way to doe injury and offer violence to them, except they have such a commission and warrant as God gave to the Israelites to expell the Canaanites; but it is lawfull for any Sons of Adam by the law, which God gave in the crea­tion (as this Doctrine shewes) to possesse and inhabite the vast places, and to subdue the barren untilled parts. And much more may true Christians, who bring the Gospell of salvation and word of life among them, by a second right in Christ, settle themselves there, and maintaine their possession of these lands which they have replenished and subdued by culture and tillage; and so long as they doe their endeavour to convert them to Christ by the preaching of the Gospell, and to make them par­takers of the blessing in him the promised seed; they deserve to bee received with all honour of those savages who come by this meanes to owe themselves to them. Wherefore, Let no man bee scrupulous in this kind; but proceed with courage in such plantations, and with confidence of good successe, and blessing from God.

Secondly, it discovers great iniquity and injustice in divers Vse 2. Against three sorts of men. 1. sorts of men. First, in them who having gotten the first posses­sion in some corner of some great continent and large region, do challenge the whole to, themselves as their proper right being no way able to replenish and subdue it; and by force seeke to keepe out all other people who come to live as neighbours peaceably in places neare unto them, for whom there is roome enough, and more land then they can subdue and replenish. Secondly, in them who think it lawfull for themselves to 2. invade countries replenished with men and subdued, and by force to expell or bring in subjection the old inhabitants with­out [Page 224] expresse warrant from God; as the Spanyards did depo­pulate many great countries in America, and root out and destroy the naturall inhabitants. Thirdly, in them who take possession of lands to the straitning of the natives; which the naturall inhabitants without their helpe can sufficiently reple­nish, and subdue, and bring under tillage. In these cases there is great injustice, and wrong offered to Gods law, which re­quires that as we would, that men should doe to us, so we should doe to them, and use no other dealing: and they who thus trans­gresse the bounds which God hath set in dividing the earth to all Nations and People, cannot justly hope for Gods blessing upon them.

The next thing after the blessing of fruitfulnesse, is the Lord­ship, rule, and Dominion, which God gave to man over all living II. Dominion over all living crea­tures. creatures; and that is in these words, Verse 28. And have Domi­nion over the fish of the Sea, and the fowles of the aire, and the beasts of the Earth, &c. For our full understanding whereof wee are to inquire, and search out: First, what things are necessarily re­quired in perfect Dominion and Lordship over the creatures. Secondly, the divers degrees of it. Thirdly, in what degree Do­minion over the creatures was given to man. Concerning the first, There are foure things required to perfect Dominion Requisites to it. and Lordship over the creatures; two in the Lord and Ruler, and two in the creature ruled and made subject. In the Lord and Ruler there is required, First, Power and ability to order, 1. rule, and dispose according to his owne minde, will and pleasure, in all things, the creatures ruled by him. Secondly, a true 2. right to use and dispose them according to his owne will and pleasure.

In the creature there is also required: First, a disposition fit­nesse, and inclination to serve his Lord and Ruler, and to yeeld 3. to him in all things whatsoever hee shall thinke fit.

Secondly, a bond of duty, by which hee is bound to obey his Lord, and serve for his use, and necessarily to yeeld to him in all 4. things. All these things are necessarily required in perfect Lordship and Dominion: And wheresoever all these are found to concurre in the highest degree, there is most perfect Do­minion; and where they are in a lesser degree, there is a lesser an [Page 225] inferiour Dominion; and where any of these faileth or is wan­ting, there the Lordship and Dominion faileth and is imper­fect: As for example; The Lord God, as hee is almighty and omnipotent, so hee hath absolute power in and of himselfe, and all ability to order, and dispose, and rule every creature as hee himselfe will: And as he is Iehovah, the author of all being, who hath his being, and is that which hee is absolutely of himselfe without beginning, and doth create and give being to all other things; so hee hath absolute right to use and dispose all creatures according to his owne mind and will; and in these respects hee is absolutely called the Lord; and is absolute Lord even in this confusion of the World and all things therein; as over all other creatures, so over the rebellious Divell and all his wicked in­struments; and hath absolute power to destroy them, or to make of them, even contrary to their disposition, what use he will. And because in the creation God made all things good and per­fect in their kind and nature, according to his owne will and wisedome, and every creature as it was good in the nature and kind of it; so was it most fit & inclinable to serve for the use unto which the Lord appointed it in the creation: and as it was the worke of the Lords owne hand by him brought into being out of nothing; so there was a bond of duty laid upon it to obey the Lords word, and to yeeld to his will without any resistance or reluctation. And in these respects Gods Dominion and Lordship was not onely most absolute over all creatures, but also most sweet and lovely unto them; even a most loving and fatherly rule of God over them, and a most free and voluntary subjection and obedience of them to him, and to his will in all things.

But now, ever since the fall and rebellion of the Divell against the light, and the fall and corruption of man, and the confusion which thereby came into the World; Though Gods power and right stand most absolute and unchangeable like himselfe, and hee both can and doth most justly over-rule the Divell and all creatures which are most corrupt and malicious, and makes even their enmity serve for his glory, and for the communion of his goodnesse more fully to his elect: yet this power and right he exerciseth not in that loving and fatherly manner over the rebel­lious [Page 226] and disobedient creatures; but by just violence and coaction; by necessity and strong hand forcing and compelling them to doe and worke, and to suffer and yeeld unto, and serve for that use, which they would not and from which they are most averse.

And because no other Lords have any such power or right over any creature, but all their power, and right is given them by God, and is but an image and shadow of his right and power; therefore their Dominion is not absolute and most perfect; but secondary and inferiour, depending upon Gods will, power, and pleasure. These things proposed as grounds and foundations, Degrees of it. wee may from them easily observe divers degrees of Lordship and Dominion.

The first and highest Lordship and Dominion, which is most 1. absolute over all creatures is that of God, which, in respect of Gods power and right cannot bee increased or diminished at all: For, as hee hath right, to doe with all creatures what hee will, because they are his owne, and hee gives them all their being; so he hath power as he is omnipotent, either to incline or to inforce them to doe his pleasure and to serve for what use hee will. The Angels in heaven and Saints glorified and made perfect, and all creatures in the state of innocency, as in duty they are bound to serve and obey God; so they have in them a fitnesse and inclination to serve and obey his will in all things to the vt­most of their power; and therefore this Dominion over them is lovely and amiable, and is paternum imperium, a fatherly rulo and Dominion over them. But the Divels, and wicked men, and all creatures corrupted are froward and rebellious; and his rule and Dominion over them is, in respect of them, violent and compulsive; and as a King he forceth them to doe what hee will, and compels them to serve for what use hee will, and justice requires it should bee so.

The second Degree of Dominion is, when a Lord hath both 2. power and right to rule over creatures, and they have an incli­nation and fitnesse to serve and obey; but all these are from a superiour Lord, giving this power and right to the one to rule, and disposing and binding the other to serve and obey.

This delegated Lordship and Dominion, is either unlimited, Dominion unlimited. [Page 227] or limited. Vnlimited is that which is not confined to some creatures, but is extended over all things in heaven and in earth; and it is a power and right to make them all serve and obey him in all things, whatsoever hee will. This unlimited Dominion is given onely to Christ as Mediatour; who as hee is man per­sonally united to God, and in his humane nature hath perfectly fulfilled the will of God, overcome all powers of darknesse, satisfied Gods justice, and redeemed the World, is exalted to Gods right hand, as David foretold, Psalme 110. 1. and hath all power in Heaven and in Earth given unto him, Matth. 28. 18. and hath a name given him above all names, even the name and title of the Lord Christ, so that in and at his name all knees must bow, both of things in heaven, and things in earth and things under the earth, that is all must either voluntarily as they are bound in duty, give all obedience and honour to him, and pray humbly in his name to God; or by his power bee forced and compelled to bow under him as a Iudge and yeeld to his will, Philip. 2. 10. 11.

Limited Dominion is not over all creatures, but onely over And limi­ted. creatures of the inferiour World fish, fowles, and beasts; nei­ther is it a right and power given to that Lord and Ruler to doe with the creatures what hee will, and to use them as hee li­steth; but onely to make them obey and serve him so farre as the superiour Lord doth thinke them fit and convenient for his use, & for his present state & condition. This limited Lordship & delegated Dominion doth vary and alter together with the state and con­dition of him to whom it is given; and it is sometimes, and in some Persons greater, and in some lesser; according to their se­verall states and conditions, and their severall dispositions and behaviour towards the supreme Lord, to whom all power and Dominion doth absolutely belong over all creatures. This Here meant. indeed is the Dominion which God in this text gave to our first, and in them to their posterity. This Dominion is limited to fishes, fowles, beasts, creatures living on earth, as the words of the text plainely shew. Secondly, while man continued in his innocency and integrity, as he had power & ability given, and continued to him to rule, order and dispose all those crea­tures aright in all things: so hee had a true right and interest in [Page 228] them given and continued by God. Thirdly, as there was a bond of duty laid by God on these creatures to obey man and to yeeld to his upright will: so there was a disposition, inclination and fitnesse in them to obey man in all things which hee in his wisedome thought fit: And therefore this Rule and Do­minion it may bee called dominium paternum, a fatherly, loving and sweet Dominion and Rule of man over them. But this Rule and Dominion being forfeited by man, and lost by mans sin and fall, together with his owne life and welbeing, is no more to bee challenged or usurped by man, or by any of his po­sterity, but onely so farre as it is restored by Christ who is the haire of all things, and the onely begotten Son, by whom the Father made all things, and by whom, as by the Lord creatour with himselfe, hee gave this Dominion to man created in his image. Now this Dominion, Christ hath restored to men in Restored in Christ divers and severall degrees, as they differ in state and condition.

First, to the elect and faithfull Christ hath purchased and 1. procured, that they, as they are his members united to him, and adopted to bee children of God in him, should have a right and interest in all things, not onely on earth but also in heaven; so that they may make use of all things so farre as they serve to helpe and further them in the way to heaven, and to the fruition of God; so much is testified, 1 Cor. 3. 21, 22. where the Apostle saith, all things are yours: whether Paul, or Apollos, or Cephas, or the World, or life, or death, or things present, or things to come, all are yours, and yee are Christs, and Christ is Gods.

Over the creatures on earth they have that Rule and Do­minion given which is mentioned in my text; but with some difference, as may appeare in divers particulars.

First, Adam had rule over them onely to order them, and make use of them for contemplation and delight.

Secondly, Adam had Rule and Dominion over them all in his owne Person; but the elect have now a generall right to all, but not a speciall right, every man in his owne Person, to every living creature: They may make use of all living creatures which come within their sight and knowledge, to contemplate on them; but they may not take into their possession, nor kill, eat, and take spoile of any but such as are wholly loose from other men, [Page 229] and which God by lawfull meanes gives and puts into their hands.

Thirdly, as Adam had power and ability to call and com­mand all living creatures; so they had an inclination and dispo­sition to obey him. But the elect have not that naturall power and ability, nor the creatures that inclination; because of the vanity and corruption, which still remaines untill the full re­demption come, and all things bee restored, and all creatures de­livered from bondage of corruption, and restored to the glorious liberty of the Sons of God, Rom. 8. 21. So much as God in his wise­dome findes fit for man in this estate of grace, so much power over the creatures hee gives to him; and so much inclination and fitnesse to the creatures.

Secondly, to men unregenerate, Christ hath purchased and 2. procured a kind of common and secondary Right and Domi­nion over the creatures; that is, both power and liberty to use them, so farre as they serve for the common weale and order of the World, and the benefit of the elect. Some have possession given them, and power over the creatures, that they may live, and grow, and continue in being till the time of their conver­sion and regeneration, when they shall have a true interest in Christ, and to all things in and through him. Some wicked men, not elect, have them lent of God; and Christ hath procured that they should have the use and possession of them, either for the good of the elect who live among them, or the benefit of their elect successors and chosen posterity which naturally shall come of them, and to whom they shall bee instruments of naturall being. So long as unregenerate men have possession of crea­tures either given by men, or gotten by industry, labour and other meanes which are not civilly and naturally unlawfull, so long they have Dominion over them, and power to use them joyned with civill right, which Gods law allowes by the procurement of Christ and for his sake. I have a little digressed, and gone beyond my bounds in speaking of this Rule and Do­minion as it is restored by Christ, for that is proper to the state of grace, and not to bee handled under the creation. It is do­minium regium, regall Dominion, or rather in part tyrannicall and violent, in respect of the creatures which are naturally so averse [Page 230] from it, and their native inclination is quite against it, in some measure and degree.

The third thing next in order after Dominion, is the foode which God allotted both to man and to other living creatures III. The food of man in the crea­tion. on earth in the state of innocency, expressed Verse 29. 30. I have given you every herbe, bearing seed, which is upon Earth, and every tree in which is the fruit of a tree yeelding seed; to you it shall bee for meat. 30. And to every beast, fowle, and creature living on earth, I have given greene herbe for meat, and it was so. Now here wee cannot understand the creating of herbes, trees, and grasse, fit for the use of man and other living things; that is rehearsed, Verse 25. Nor Gods bare direction of men and beasts to eat of these; nor a naturall appetite and inclination given to Man, and other creatures to affect and desire these things: but the words doe expresse thus much, that God the Creatour is the onely Lord, and all power and right is in him to dispose and give them, and the use of them; and man and beasts had no right to the herbes, trees, fruits, and grasse, but of the free gift of God. The [...], I give, or have given, doth fully expresse a free gift. In that hee saith, that herbes, bearing seed, and trees yeelding fruit, shall bee to mankind for meat, and greene herbe or grasse shall bee meat to the beasts, and fowles, and creeping things which live on earth; This shewes, that man in innocency was to feed onely on such things, and as yet hee had no other meat allowed, and other living creatures did all feed on grasse. Hereby also it is manifest, that all herbes, bearing seed, and all fruits of trees were wholsome food for man, and all green grasse for all other living creatures which move on the face of the earth: Otherwise God would not have given them to man and other creatures for meat. From the words thus opened, wee may observe some profitable instructions.

From all the words joyntly together, which shew the Domi­nion Doctr. 1. God the onely ab­solute Lord of all. which God gave to man, and the food which he allowed both to man and other creatures; Wee may learne, that God is the onely absolute and supreme Lord of all creatures, and no creature hath right to rule over others, or to meddle one with another; but, by Gods free gift, our meat, our drink, and what­soever wee have in this World, God gives it freely to us; and [Page 231] wee have no right to any thing but from him. If mans wise­dome, power, knowledge, and ability to rule the creatures, and their fitnesse and inclination to obey him, had intituled him suf­ficiently, and given him a true right, there had beene no need of Gods giving this Dominion; and so if his appetite to herbes and fruits, and their fitnesse to feed and delight him, and the concord. betweene the appetite of living creatures, and the greene grasse had given them a true right to it, what need had there beene of this gift, and that God should say, Behold I give to you every herbe and fruit for meat? &c. In that therefore these two are here recorded as free gifts of God, this doctrine flowes naturally from hence. And this is aboundantly con­firmed by other Scriptures, as Gen. 14. 19. where Melchisedeck, Gods high and royall Priest, in blessing Abraham, cals God the possessour of Heaven and Earth; that is, such a Lord as holds in his hand and possession by an absolute right, Heaven and Earth, and all that is in them, so that none hath any right to any thing in them, but of his free gift; And Deut. 10. 14. it is said, that the Heaven, and the heaven of heavens is the Lords, the Earth also with all that therein is. Also Psalme 24. 1. the Earth is said to bee the Lords, and the fulnesse thereof; the round World and they that dwell therein; and Psalme 50. 12. the beasts of the fi [...]ld, yea, and the whole World is mine saith the Lord, the same also is te­stified Psalme 89. 11. and Iob 41. 11. And Iob confesseth that all that hee had was Gods to give and take away at his plea­sure, Iob 1. 21. We have also a strong argument to prove this from the quit-rent which God requires, and men are bound to pay to God, and to whom hee assignes it in testimony of their homage, and that they possesse nothing, but of his gift as te­nants at will, that is, the tythes of the fruite of the Land, and of the Cattell, and of all increase, all are the Lords quit-rent, and were paid to God by all the faithfull, even to his Priests and Ministers who Minister before him, and have him for their portion, Levit. 27. 30. Gen. 14. 20. and 28. 22. and Num. 18. 20.

This shewes, that God may lawfully take away from wicked men, and appoint others to take from them whatsoever they have, if he be so pleased at any time; and it is no injustice, neither [Page 232] have they cause to complaine, because they doe not acknowledge him their Lord, nor pay due rent, nor doe homage to him by honouring him with their wealth and substance. It is held to bee no wrong, but just and lawfull for earthly land-Lords to seaze into their owne hands, and take away from their tenants the houses, lands and farmes for which they wilfully refuse to pay the due rent, and wilfully deteine it; much more is it justice in God, the chiefe and absolute Lord of all the earth and the crea­tures therein, to cast men out of those houses and lands, and to deprive them of all their increase and revenues, for which they refuse to pay their due homage tythe and quit-rent to him, and to his Ministers and Servants, whom hee hath assigned to receive them for his use and service.

Secondly, this admonisheth us to acknowledge, that all wee have is Gods, and all our houses, lands, goods, and riches, are Vse 2. but his talents lent to us to bee employed, as for our owne be­nefit; so for his glory chiefely, and the good of his Church. Also it justly serves to incite and stirre us up to render thanks, praise, and due service to him for all, and to pray to him daily for a blessing on our meat, drinke and all necessaries, and to begge at his hand the free use of his creatures, and a true right unto them.

Thirdly, it serves to shew Gods great mercy, bounty and fa­therly indulgence to us, in suffering us to have and enjoy so many Vse 3. blessings and good creatures, which wee have forfeited by our sinnes and doe daily forfeit by not using them aright, but abusing them, and neglecting to pay a tenth at least for our quit­rent to God; yea, and all or the most part, if hee requires it at our hands for the necessity of his Church and the maintainance of his truth. I feare, and justly suspect, that if we examine our selves, few will bee found among us not deeply guilty in this kind; as many other wayes, so especially for sacrilegious detaining of tythes and due maintenance, which God hath separated to himselfe for the upholding of his publike worship, and the preaching of his word, and continuing of a learned and faithfull laborious ministery in his Church.

Secondly, wee hence learne, that in the state of innocency man had no power over living creatures to kill, and eat them; Doctr. 2. [Page 233] Neither did one beast devoure another and feed on his flesh; but the food of man was onely herbes and fruits of trees; and the food of beasts and birds was the greene herbe and grasse of the field, the words of the text shew this plainely. And other Scriptures intimate so much, that in the state of innocency lyons and other ravenous beasts did live on grasse, and no creatures did hurt one another, as Isa. 11. 6, 7. and 65. 21. where the Prophet describing the aboundance of peace which shall bee in the Church in the most flourishing and happy times of the Gospell, and setting it forth by the state of innocency faith, that the Wolfe and the Lambe, the Leopard and the Kid, the young Lyon, Calfe and Fatling, and the Cow and the Reare shall dwell and feed, and lye downe together; and the Lyon shall eat grasse or str [...]w like an Oxe or Bullocke, and they shall not hurt, nor destroy in all Gods holy mountaine; that is, men shall not kill and eat up beasts, nor beasts one another. And indeed it is most manifest, that death eutered into the World by sin and mans fall, Gen. 2. 17. and death came upon all by mans sin, Rom. 5. 12. and that the corruption, vanity and confusion, which is among the crea­tures, did proceed and issue from the same roote, Rom. 8. 20. And they had never groaned under the killing knife and slaugh­ter, if man had not sinned and brought them into that subjection to vanity.

This shewes, that mans estate, wherein God created him Vse 1. was a most sweet and happy estate, full of ioy, peace, delight and contentment; and man had no want, nor any thing which hee could dislike; but all meanes to make him thankfull to God, and joyfull before him. The meat and food of man, and of all living creatures was such as the earth brought forth in aboundance by Gods blessing without labour; they needed not to seeke it by toile and travell; it was plentifull every where, and they had variety of all things which might give them content; there was no death, not so much as of a creeping thing; no hurt, nor killing, no crying nor groaning under vexation; no cove­ting, snatching and ravening, every creature had enough. And yet man by Satans temptation aspired higher, and so did fall into want misery and bondage to death. His fall was of the Divell and his owne selfe, God gave no just occasion. And [Page 234] therefore wee cannot now under this corruption expect any steadfast satisfaction and contentment in this World, now over­runne with confusion, nor in any worldly thing. Let us abhorre our owne unsatiable desires, and watch over our wandring lusts, and strive to keepe them under, lest they make us further stray from the right wayes of God, and plunge us deepe into per­dition.

Secondly, this serves to shew, that with Gods favour and Vse 2. blessing, and to man sober, temperate, and of a good constitution, the herbes, corne, and fruits of the Earth, and trees, are a satis­fying nourishment for this present life. It is not fish nor flesh, nor all the dainties and forced dishes of the World, which can so nourish and strengthen a man, as herbes and fruit could have nourished our first parents in innocency. It is not there­fore by bread or any strong meat, that any man can live or doth live, but by the word which cometh from the mouth of God, by that mans meat is blessed to him and made a refreshing nouri­shing and living food unto him.

Thirdly, in that all herbes, bearing seed, and all trees yeelding Doctr. 3. fruite, are here said to bee given by God as fit meat to nourish man, and all greene herbe or grasse to other creatures; Hence wee learne, that all fruits of all trees, and all herbes bearing seed, were wholesome meat for man, and all greene grasse to beasts in the state of innocency. All poison and unwholesome quality, taste and smell in herbes, plants, trees, and grasse, which hurt man, or beast; came into the World by sin, and are bitter fruits of mans fall and transgression, and of the curse which his disobedience brought upon the earth. For all whatsoever God made, was good in it selfe and evill and hurtfull to none; And if all herbes, trees, and grasse had not beene good, wholesome and pleasant, God would not have given them for meat to man, or any living creature.

The consideration of this point is of good use to keepe us Vse. from murmuring and grudging against God, as if hee had crea­ted the poison of herbes, and unwholesomnesse of fruits, upon which men and other creatures surfeit even unto death and de­struction. So osten as wee see any such thing happen and come to passe, or discerne any ill quality, taste and smell in herbes, and [Page 235] unsufficiency in fruits and herbes to nourish, and see living crea­tures killed, and their flesh eaten for necessity of mans nourish­ment, let it put us in minde and remembrance of our sin and fall in our first Parents, from that integrity wherein wee and all other things were created. Let us bee ashamed of our dis­obedience which makes the ground cursed unto us. Let the groanes of beasts slaine for us, and their bloud shed and poured out with strugling, and with cryes and sighes: Let the sowre­nesse of wilde grapes, the loathsome smell and bitternesse of some herbes, and fruits, and the poison of some plants, all and every one smite us with the sight of our naturall corruption, and make us loath our sinnes, and sigh and groane under the burden of them, and labour to subdue corruptions, and put away our sinnes by repentance.

The fourth thing, which I have propounded to bee conside­red IV. Mans ha­bitation in the state of innocency. Gen. 2. 8. after the creation of man, is the place of his habitation in the state of integrity, that is described by Moses in the second Chapter from the seventh verse to the sixteenth.

And the Lord, God planted a garden Eastward in Eden, and there hee put the mankind which hee had formed. 9. And out of the ground the Lord God made to grow every tree pleasant to sight and good for food, the tree of life in the midst of the garden, and the tree of knowledge of good and evill. 10. And a river went out of Eden to water the garden, and from thence it was parted, and became into fower heads, &c.

In the description, as it is here laid downe by Moses, wee may observe two maine things.

The first, that God beforehand provided a place of pleasant habi­tation, and of exercise for mankind; and so soone as the male and female were formed, he placed them therein. This is plainely af­firmed, Verse 8. where it is said, God planted a garden; and Verse 15. God put man into it to dresse and keepit.

The second is a plaine description of the place in the 8. Verse, and so along to the 15. Verse.

In the description it selfe, wee may observe divers notable things.

First, that the place of mans habitation was most pleasant; [...]. a garden, that is a plot of ground chosen out for pleasure and [Page 236] fruitfulnesse, planted and beautified with all both goodly and fruitfull trees and plants.

Secondly, that it was chosen and planted by God himselfe, and 2. prepared and made ready for man, that so soone as they were formed, hee and the Woman might bee put into it.

Thirdly, that this garden was scituate in Eden, that is, a region 3. Eden, what. and country most pleasant; for in the Hebrew text the name [...], signifies pleasure and delight.

Fourthly, it is said to bee Eastward in Eden, and that in a two­fold 4. respect: First, because being in Eden it was Eastward from Canaan the Land of the Israelites, for whom Moses wrote this History, and gave it to them, when they were come into the borders of the Land, and had taken possession of Bashan and Gilead. Secondly, because it was planted in the East-side of Eden towards the Sun-rising, which is commonly the most plea­sant place for scituation. That Eden was Eastward from Cannan in the land of Mesopotamin towards Babylon, it is manifest by this, because Euphrates was the river which went out of Eden, and watered the garden: and Euphrates r [...]s through the coun­try of Mesopotamia close by Babylon, which country when Ia­cob journed unto from Canaan, hee is said to come into the hand of the people of the East, Gen. 29. 1. That the garden was on the East-side of Eden; it appeares evidently by this, that the river which watered the garden, did run through Eden Eastward towards Assyriah and Babylon in one streame or great river, and when it came to the garden it was parted and became foure streames or chanels; one of which, to wit, that which runs by Babylon retaines the name of the maine river, and is called Eu­phrates, as appeares Verse 14.

Fifthly, this garden is described by the commodities of it [...] First, it had in it overy kind of tree both pleasant to the sight; [...]. both the goodly Cedar which is said to have beene in the garden of the Lord, Ezech. 34. [...]8 and also good for food, that is, all trees yeelding fruit. Secondly, it had in it two speciall fruit­trees, which were of singular use; the tree of life, and the tree of knowledge of good and evill. Thirdly, it was watered with a river which went out of Edon, that is, proceeded out of the West part of Eden, and [...] it by dividing it selfe into foure se­verall [Page 237] streames which did run through severall parts of the garden, to moisten the ground, and to cherish the roots of the trees; after which parting of the streames and running through severall parts of the garden, not by any labour or art of man, but by Gods appointment so ordering and disposing them, they did not meet againe nor gather themselves into one cha­nell; but ran apart from thence, and were parted, and became foure heads or streames running in foure chanels into seve­rall parts of the country, and into severall lands called by severall names.

The first here mentioned is Pishon, which takes a compasse The rivers in it. 1. to the land of Havilah, which is a countrie bordering upon the upper part of the Persian Gulfe: it was first inhabited by Havilah the Son of Cush, and by his posterity; it borders on that part of Arabia which Ishmaels posterity inhabited, which wee call Arabia deserta. For wee read, Gen. 25. 18. that they dwelt from Havilah to Shur, that is, in Arabia deserta; and when Saul was sent to slay the Amalekites, hee smote them from Havilah as thou goest to Shur, 1 Sam. 15. 7. that is, along the coasts of the Ishmaelites. In this land of Havilah, the text saith there is good gold, and Bdelium, that is, a tree which yeelds a whitish gum, and also there is Onyx-stone.

The second river, in Moses dayes, was called Gihon; and it 2. takes a compasse toward the land of Cush, that is, not Ethiopia which is also called Cush, but that part of Arabia which borders upon Chaldaea. For all Arabia and Ethiopia are in Hebrew called by the name of Cush, because all these lands were inha­bited at the first by Seba, Sabtah, Raamah, Sabtecha, Sheba, and Dedam, which were the Sons of Cush, as appeares, Gen. 10. 7. And that part of Arabia which the Midianites inhabited, is [...]. called Cush; For Moses his wife, being a Midianitish-woman as wee read, Exod. 2. is called a woman of Cush, Num. 12. that is of Arabia, not of Ethiopia as our translaters doe render the word.

Third river is called Hiddekell, & it is the streame which goeth 3. Eastward towards Assyriah, and runs into the great river Tigris, which parts Assyriah from Mesopotamia.

And the fourth river is that which retaines the name of 4. [Page 238] the maine river Euphrates, which in Hebrew is called Perah, because it makes the land watered by it fruitfull above others. This is the description of mans habitation in the state of inno­cency as it is here laid downe, and expounded by the helpe of other Scriptures, and not according to the vaine conceipts of men which have no certainty nor truth in them.

Before I come to observe from hence any speciall point of instruction, I hold it necessary, First, to shew the variety and multiplicity of vaine, uncertaine, and erroneous opinions of di­vers ancient Fathers and other later Writers concerning this garden, and the particulars thereof before mentioned; all which are by certaine ground laid downe in this exposition, and by cleare evidence of Scripture and strong reasons easily con­futed.

First, Saint Hierome, being missed by the translation of A­quila, Opinion 1. which runs thus, God had planted a garden from the beginning, doth hereupon conclude, that Paradise was planted before the Heaven and Earth were created: which Opinion is most ridi­culous, Comment. in Genes. cap. 2. and contrary to common sense and reason: For where there are trees growing out of the ground, and rivers and streames watering them, there must needs bee ground and earth. It was impossible for trees to bee planted and to grow out of the ground before any earth was created. Wee here may see, how wise men may sometimes build castles in the aire, and that the most learned of the ancients have their errours; and hee who was counted the most learned of all the Fathers in the Hebrew tongue, doth here miserably mistake the Hebrew phrase: For though the Hebrew word [...] Mikedem, which is here translated Eastward, or on the East-side, when it is spoken of God or of Christ, doth signifie in the Prophets from ever­lasting, or from eternity, as Mich. 5. 12. Hab. 1. 12. and Psalme 74. 12. And when other things are said to bee Mikedem, the word signifies either from old time, or from the dayes of old, as Psalme 77. 6. and 143. 5. where David saith, I will remember the dayes of old; and Nehem. 12. 46. from the dayes of old, even from David and Asaph they were chiefe of singers: Yet sometimes it signifies Eastward, or on the East-side, or from the East, as appeares most plainely, Gen. 3. 24. where it is used to signifie [Page 239] the East-side of the garden where God placed the Cherubins; and Gen. 12. 8. where it is said, that Abraham came to a mountaine which was Eastward of Bethel, and had Ai on the East-side, and so undoubtedly it is used in this text for Eastward, as our transla­tors truely render it.

Origen and Phile Iudaeus lib. de mund. opific. did conceive Pa­radise Opinion 2. to bee no earthly or bodily place, but to bee spiritually understood, which opinion Epiphanius proves to bee against reason: because trees growing out of the ground, and rivers, shew that it was a garden planted on the earth, and earthly not spirituall.

Some have held, that the whole World was Paradise, and that Opinion 3. this garden did extend it selfe over all the earth, which then was wholly a place of pleasure and delight; which is also very absurd, for then Adam had beene cast out of the whole earth when God cast him out of the garden, and the land of Cush, and of Havilah, and Assyria, towards which the rivers did run after they were gone out of the garden, had beene out of the World. Besides, wee read in the Scriptures, that Eden, in which the gar­den was planted, was a speciall country in Mesopotamia, neare Haran and Goz [...]n, and the people thereof did trade with Tirus, 2 King. 19. 12. and Ezech. 27. 23.

Ephrem held it to bee a remote place beyond the vast Ocean Sea, Opinion 4. and unknowne tous.

Damascene in his book 2 de fide, chap. 14. held it to bee a place Opinion 5. higher then all the earth.

Beda and Rupertus held it to bee a place next unto heaven, Opinion 6. reaching up to the Sphaere of the Moone.

Alexander Hales and Tostatus thought it to bee a place in the Opinion 7. aire farre below the Moone.

Others who held it to bee a speciall place in the earth doe Opinion 8. much vary and differ among themselves. Luther conceived, that it contained in it all Mesopotamia, Syria, and Egypt.

Others thought, that it comprehended all Asia and A­frica. Opinion 9.

Others, that it was that part of Syria, which is called the Opinion 10. region of Damaseus, because there was the Kings forrest of goodly Cedars, which is called Paradise, Nehem. 2. 8. and there is a [Page 240] towne called by the name of Eden and Paradise, which is men­tioned as some thinke, Amos 1. 5.

The Opinion of Bonaventure is, that the place of it is under the Aequinoctiall. Opinion 11.

Bellarmine in his booke de gratia primi hominis, chap. 10. con­fesseth, that it must needs bee an earthly and bodily place plan­ted Opinion 12. with trees; but farre remote from knowledge of men, and that no man can define where it is; that it was not destroyed in the generall deluge and flood of Noah, but remaines to this day; And that Enoch and Eliah were translated thither, and there are kept to fight with Antichrist in the end of the World. This Opinion is contrary to truth, and contradicts it selfe. First, the Scriptures testifie, that Eliah was not translated into an unknowne place on earth, but went up to heaven in a firie chariot. Secondly, that the waters of Noah's flood did prevaile 15. cubits above the highest mountaines. And therefore if Paradise was an earthly place as Bellarmine holds, it must needs bee destroyed in the generall deluge, Gen. 7. 20. Yea, if Paradise had beene preserved safe from the flood, it had beene needlesse and vaine labour for Noah to build such an huge arke. God might have saved him and all the creatures with him in the garden of Pa­radise. Thirdly, Moses doth here plainely define where this garden was, and whosoever with understanding reads this History, may easily define where it was. But where it is now, none can define; for it is destroyed, and onely the place of it re­maines still.

But, not to trouble my discourse with particular confuta­tions of these severall opinions; the very text it selfe, and that exposition which I have made of it by the helpe of other Scriptures, doth as it were with one blast blow them all away like chaffe, and with one stroke dash them all in pieces. For this text tels us, that this garden was planted in the earth; and God made the trees in it to grow out of the ground; that the speciall place of the earth, in which God planted it was Eden, that is, a place in Mesopotamia and Babylonia, knowne by that name, and mentioned by Rabshekeh among the countries which the Assyrian Kings had conquered, scituate betweene Iudea and Assyria, and neare unto Assyriah, 2 King. 19. 12. and [Page 241] by Ezekiel, cap. 27. 23. mentioned among the countries and cities, which from Mesopotamia did trade with Tyrus. The text also tels us, that it was in Eden Eastward, or on the East­side, watered with a river which came out of Eden from the other part thereof; which river having divided it selfe into foure streames, that it might run through severall parts of the garden and water it, did no more meet in one, but from thence, that is, from the garden was parted, and became foure speciall rivers, taking their course and compasse towards severall lands; to wit, Pishon to the land of Havilah, Gihon to the land of Cush, Hiddekel, to the land of Assyriah, and Euphrates through Ba­bylonia and Chaldaea: all which are to Iewes and naturall Israe­lites (who ever since the captivity of Israel to Assyriah, and of Iuda to Babylon doe live a dispersed and scattered people in those countries) knowne by those old names to these dayes, as appeares in the Itinerarie of Benjamin Tudalensis the Iew, and divers other histories. Now these things being plainely laid downe in the text, explained by other Scriptures; the places and rivers being often mentioned in histories, and knowne to the Iewes who dwell in those parts untill this day; there is now no least colour or show of reason left for the divers opi­nions before rehearsed; they all appeare to be vaine & erroneous; the manifest truth of this text overthrowes them all at once. And now from hence wee may learne a profitable point of in­struction, viz.

That nothing is more vaine and uncertaine then the opinion of Doctrine. Best mens opinion is uncertaine. witty and learned Men, both ancient Fathers and later Writers and Schoolemen, while they follow their owne reason, & their owne witty conceipts without warrant from the Word of God. There is no sure or certaine ground which a man may safely rest upon for the right understanding of the Scriptures, but onely the word of God it selfe, either speaking plainely in the very text it selfe, or by other places and testimonies which are more full and plaine, compared with the obscurer texts. By this meanes onely the Spirit of God doth enlighten our hearts and understanding to know infallibly the true sense and mea­ning of them. Besides, many other proofes which serve to con­firme this, which I omit as not necessary at this present; wee [Page 242] have a firme argument from our Saviours owne words, Iohn 16. ver. 13, 14. where hee saith, that now under the Gospell the Spirit speakes not of himselfe (by simple and immediate inspi­ration without any word, as in the Prophets of old) but what­soever hee shall heare, that shall hee speake, and hee shall take of mine and shall shew it unto you; that is, hee shall inspire and enlighten men, onely by my word which I have spoken with mine owne mouth, and by the Prophets and holy Men of God who have prea­ched and written. Also our Saviour and his Apostles, by their con­stant practise did shew, that the sure ground of expounding and understanding the Scriptures in any obscure places, is the plainer text and word of Scripture in other places. For they proved the truth which they preached and wrote in the Gospell by the Scriptures of the Law and the Prophets.

Wherefore let us not build upon the wisedome of men, nor Vse. upon the smooth words of mans reason; but on the word of God proved by it selfe, and made plaine one place by another; Let us hearken to such preachers, and follow them as the surest guides, who make the Scriptures by themselves plaine and ma­nifest to our understanding. As for them who can give no better reason for doctrines of faith, but testimonies of Fathers and Schoolemen, nor follow any surer guide for expounding of Scripture but expositions of Fathers framed by their owne conceipts, not proved by plaine texts; let us not build too much upon them. And, above all, Let us hate and abhorre the pesti­lent Doctrine of the Romish Doctors, and all the Popish fa­ction, who make the Canons of Councels, the opinions of Fa­thers, and the Popes determination, the onely sure grounds whereon men ought to build their understanding of the Scrip­tures and their beliefe of the word of God.

Another, and a second thing which comes here to bee more Of the tree of life, and the tree of knowledge of good and evill. fully opened over and besides the diversity of opinions, is the tree of life, and the tree of knowledge of good and evill, which are said to bee in the midst of the garden. These two trees are here in the history marked out and distinguished from the rest of the trees, as being set apart by God for another use more then meere naturall. Concerning these trees, there are divers and severall opinions of ancient and moderne Divines.

[Page 243] First, concerning the tree of life, Some thinke it had a natu­rall Why the tree of life. 1. power and vertue in it to make mans body lively, and to keepe it from all weaknesse, decay and mortality, till hee should bee removed to heaven: this is the opinion of Scotus and Aqui­nas, with others.

Some thinke, it had power and vertue in it to make man im­mortall, 2. and to preserve him from death for ever, as Tostatus: and that, if a man had once eaten of it, hee would not have dyed, but should have enjoyed such immortality, as wee have by Christ after the last resurrection.

Bonaventures opinion is, that it had such vertue and power 3. in it not naturall, but supernaturall. But these opinions are meere humane conceipts contrary to reason. For first, the fruit of a tree, which is pulled off, eaten, digested, and so changed from that which it was in a bodily nutriment by the operation of mans fleshly stomack, cannot in any reason bee conceived to have naturall power in it to give that to man which it selfe had not, to wit, immortality & immurability. It is a true rule, that no naturall thing can worke beyond the naturall strength of it, neither can it give to another that which it selfe hath not at all; and this tree had no immortality, for it was destroyed with the garden in which God planted it. Secondly, supernaturall power and vertue to give life is the proper vertue and power of Christ and of his Spirit which works in men, and derives life from Christ to them: but there was no such communion of the Spirit, not any such operation of the Spirit in any earthly creature before Christ was promised; such assistance and operation of the Spirit is proper to the elect of mankind, and came onely into the World by Christ, as the Scriptures testifie.

There are divers learned men of better judgement, and they 4. hold that this tree of life is so called, not for any vertue in it, either naturall or supernaturall; but because it was given of God a Sacrament and seale of life to man, and man was to eate of it, not for bodily food onely, but that by eating of it hee might bee, as by a pledge from God, assured that he should by God bee upheld in life; and also might bee admonished, that his life is upheld not by any power in himselfe, but by covenant from God confirmed by this seale.

[Page 244] But these differ among themselves, concerning the life Of what life. whereof it was a seale and pledge.

Some thinke, it was a seale of that present life which Adam 1. had, which in it selfe was mutable.

Some thinke, it was a seale of a better life, even of immortality 2. and life immutable, which Adam should have obtained by con­tinuing in obedience for a certaine time.

Others thinke, that it was a Sacrament, that is, an holy signe and seale of Christ who is our life, and of that spirituall life 3. which wee have in him: thus Junius, and others of our late Writers.

Now, to declare in few words what I conceive to bee the truth: First, I cannot conceive, that there were any Sacraments given to man before the promise of Christ, and the revealing of Gods purpose and counsell in him: For a Sacrament is an out­ward element or visible thing consecrated by God, to signifie and seale heavenly and supernaturall things, and grace spirituall and invisible: But heavenly and supernaturall things, which be­long to eternall life in Christ, and spirituall grace, were not revealed to man in the state of innocency, before the promise of Christ, which was made upon mans fall; Therefore there was then no use of any holy signe, or pledge of supernaturall grace, or of any thing which wee obtaine from above in, and by Christ. The tree of life could not bee any Sacrament, signe or symbole of Christ, or supernaturall life in him. All that I can conceive or affirme with any warrant from the Scriptures is this, that the tree of life had greater and more excellent naturall vertue and strength in it then other trees, and the fruit thereof was more sweet, lively and nourishing; and by this meanes it was more fit then other trees to bee not onely a signe, symbole, and pledge to man, whereby hee was to bee admonished that his life was to bee upheld by his obedience to God, and depen­dance upon him; and also to bee assured and confirmed, that God would uphold him in life: but also a seale of the covenant of works, whereby hee was to bee setled in that state of life, wherein hee was created. I confesse, that the wisedome of God (that is Christ as hee is made unto us of God wisedome) is called a tree of life to such as lay hold on him, Prov. 3. 18. and the fruite [Page 245] of the righteous, (that is eternall life, and all saving blessings, which are the fruite which the righteous, justified and sanctified in Christ, doe enjoy) is called also the tree of life, Prov. 11. 30. Revel. 2. 7. and a wholesome tongue, that is, the healing and saving word of the Gospell, and other powerfull meanes of salvation are called a tree of life, Prov. 15. 4. and Revel. 22. 2, 14. But all this is by way of allusion, and tends to teach us; not that the tree of life in Paradise was a Sacrament of Christ, and of saving grace and eternall life in him; but, that as that tree was a pledge and meanes to confirme man in his naturall life: so Christ and his graces, and his holy and healing word, are the pledges and meanes of heavenly and supernaturall life. And this is all that I can learne out of the Scriptures, concerning this tree of life.

The other speciall tree is called the tree of knowledge of good and evill; which I conceive to bee so called, not because How of the know­ledge of good and evill. it did beget reason and understanding in man, or did sharpen his wit by any vertue or power in it, as Iosephus and divers He­brewes imagined; for then it had beene good for man to eat of it, and hee should have gained thereby: Nor because Satan by the lying Serpent perswaded the woman that being eaten of, it would make them as God, in knowing good and evill; for it was so called of God before, when hee forbad them to eat of it: But the true reason why it is so called is, because God having forbidden man to eat of it, man could not eat of it but by diso­beying God and transgressing his commandement, and so bring sin, and the bitter knowledge, and the wofull experience and sense of evill upon himselfe, which taste and knowledge of evill makes the sweetnesse of good better relished, and the profit thereof better knowne and acknowledged. Againe, because the eating of this tree was mans sin and full; and gave occasion to God to promise Christ; and to the Son of God to undertake as mans surety to make satisfaction for him, and to redeeme him; and out of his evill to raise up a new kind of good, greater and better then that which man knew before, even to bring him to the knowledge of spiritual & supernatural good: In this respect, God might well call it the tree of knowledge of good and evill, upon his owne foreknowledge of that event, which hee in himselfe pur­posed [Page 246] to bring about upon that occasion.

As for searching and inquiring what kind of tree it was; whether a vine, as some hold; or a figge tree, as Theodoret thought; or an aple tree, as others; I hold it vaine curiosity, because the text cals it by another name, by which none of those trees were ever called. Certainly the fruite of it in it selfe was naturally good, and had no evill quality in it, which could corrupt or staine mans nature, or infuse malice into him; as I shall hereafter shew, when I come to Gods commandement by which hee forbad man to eat of it.

And thus much for the opening and expounding of this part of the history, concerning Paradise, the place of mans habitation in the state of innocency. The doctrines which hence arise, I will but as it were point at and name unto you.

First, wee here are taught, that Gods bounty to man, in the Doctr. 1. Gods great bounty to man. creation was great and wonderfull, in that hee made him not onely a reasonable creature endowed with wisedome, know­ledge, and ability, to choose out and make an habitation for himselfe above all other living creatures on earth: but also did provide and prepare for him before hand, and did plant for him a garden to his hand, a place of singular pleasure and de­light, stored with all delicacy for his dwelling and habitation. Wee count it a great bounty, that God gives us large places wherein to dwell, and gives us wisedome and art to build Houses and Cities; and materialls necessary for building. And if God blesse us with Sheepe, Oxen, and other profitable cattell, wee rejoyce to build stals, and folds, and enclosures for them; and Houses and Cities for our selves, and acknowledge our selves bound to bee thankfull. But God in the creation was so kind to man, that though hee left other living creatures to the wide World, yet hee provided a Paradise of pleasure for man to dwell in, and to delight himselfe; so that this point is manifest.

Whence wee may gather steadfast hope, and comfortable perswasion, that seeing God was of himselfe so kind to man, Vse. being then but a meere naturall creature, as to prepare for him so pleasant an habitation; now when wee are made spirituall, and by one Spirit united to him in Christ, and made Sons by re­generation [Page 247] and adoption, he will much more provide an excel­lent habitation for us, even an heavenly, which shal so farre exceed the earthly Paradise, as the state of a Son exceeds the state of a servant, and spirituall exceeds naturall.

Secondly, here wee see, how unnaturall and monstrous mans Vse 2. ingratitude was, and is declared to bee, in that hee would bee drawne by the subtility of the Divell, perswading him by the Woman, and the Woman by the Serpent, to yeeld upon any promise or hope of an higher estate, to transgresse any comman­dement of God, and disobey his word and revealed will, who had so highly magnified his kindnesse, and made his singular care and providence for him most cleare and manifest. But most of all may wee all bee ashamed and confounded for this, that our first Parents, and wee in them, would beleeve Satans lyes in the mouth of a Serpent, and would give more credit to them, then to the word of the Lord our Creatour; as if all his goodnesse and bounty were nothing in our eyes, which hee shewed in our creation, and in providing so pleasant and well furnished an habitation for us.

Secondly, Gods putting of Adam, into the garden that hee Doctr. 2. No idle­nesse al­lowed. might dresse it and keep it, doth teach us, That man in the creation was made, and is by pure nature, most averse and ab­horring from idlenesse; and his true content and pleasure in this World is to bee in exercise of his wit, reason, and bodily activity. The earth before mans fall was all fruitfull, and brought forth for mans use all necessary and delightfull things without art, toile or labour; so that man might have spent all his time in contemplating upon his creation, and all things created: but yet God would not, that man should live, neither did hee see or thinke fit for man to live idle, and therefore put him to dresse and keep the garden, in which hee had occasion to exercise his minde and body without toile or labour, onely for pleasure and contentment. And therefore this doctrine is naturally gathered from hence, and all those Scriptures confirme it, which condemne sloth and idlenesse, and send the sluggard, as a creature degenerate from his kind, to learne of the Ant and meanest creatures, as Prov. 6. 6. And tell us, that idlenesse and slothfulnesse bring hunger, and want, and ruine, and decay to the [Page 248] houses of the idle and sluggish, Prov. 19. 15. Eccles. 10. 18. and aboundance of idlenesse was the roote of all the evils, which came upon Sodom, Ezech. 16. 49. But the diligent hand maketh rich, and brings plenty of all blessings, Prov. 10. 4. and brings men to promotion, rule and honour, Prov. 12. 24. and makes their sub­stance precious, Verse 27. and their soules fat, Prov. 13. 4. and causeth even women to bee praised in the gates, Prov. 31. And that man is by nature, active and cannot brooke idlenesse, it ap­peares plainely by the stirring nature of children, who are ne­ver quiet nor content, unlesse they bee busied one way or other; and by the restlessenesse which is in wicked men, who de­vise mischiefe on their beds, and have working heads, and cannot cease from doing something, rather evill exercises then bee idle.

Now this being a manifest truth, may justly provoke and Vse. Detest it therefore. stirre us up to loath and abhorre idlenesse, sloth, and lazinesse, as speciall marks and igominious brands of naughty persons, miserably degenerated from humane nature, and from the frame and disposition, wherein they were at the first created by God. It was not good for Adam in innocency to live idly, and without exercise, but hee must bee busied as in mind by con­templation on Gods works; so in body by ruling the creatures, dressing and keeping the garden, when aboundance of all things flowed to him without toile or labour; much more will it be hurtfull dangerous and pernicious to us, who are a people corrup­ted, and in our whole frame out of order, perverse, and froward. If wee give way to sloth and idlenesse, for if wee labour not, wee cannot have what to eat: but poverty will come upon us, like an armed man; If wee bee idle and negligent in honest and good labour, our perverse, rebellious and restlesse nature will lead us into evill exercises and wicked works. As standing lakes of water grow corrupt, stinking and unwholesome; and ground not laboured, stirred up and tilled, will bring forth cor­rupt, stinking weeds, bryars, thornes, and thistles: So our cor­rupt, nature if it bee not exercised and busied about vertuous actions, and profitable labours, will grow more corrupt, noy­some and filthy; and will carry us away into frowardnesse, va­nity and sinfull practises, which will make us loathsome to [Page 249] God and men, and will speedily plunge us into misery and eter­nall perdition.

Thirdly, wee here see and are plainely taught, that man in Doctr. 3. A content­full estate in inno­cency. innocency had aboundance of all good things, needfull for pro­fit, pleasure, and full contentment; and wanted nothing which could bee required for earthly happinesse, to make him blessed in this World, and fully content with his estate and condi­tion.

First, his reason and understanding could not conceive, nei­ther 1. did hee know any good, which hee wanted and did not possesse, whereof hee was by nature capable: all wordly goods hee had at will; and of heavenly and spirituall good which was supernaturall, hee had no knowledge nor understan­ding.

Secondly, hee had all provocations to move him to serve 2. God, and all bonds to tye, and knit his heart in love to God, and to make him wholly obedient to God, and dutifull and ser­viceable to him in his whole heart and soule, body, mind, and strength. Hee had food at will, most sweet, wholesome and de­licate, in all variety and aboundance, without any care toile or labour; the Earth brought it forth of her owne accord; the whole­some and pure aire did cherish it, and the Sun and Heavens by their warme influence did ripen, perfect, and prepare it to his hand. Hee had a most pleasant dwelling, a garden beautified with all earthly ornaments, and a Paradise of pleasure and delight. Hee was high in honour, dignity and promotion above all living creatures both by Sea and Land, and had rule and Dominion over them all. His exercise was without toile, labour or paine, sweet and pleasant. Hee had for the exercise of his minde all Gods works, the contemplation whereof might, fill his soule with de­light and joy in God his Creatour; and for the exercise of his bodily strength and activity, hee had the dressing and keeping of the garden which was a worke of pleasure and delight, not of paines and labour, for it needed no digging, planting, culture or tillage: his businesse also was without care and feare; for there were no theeves to annoy him, no evill beasts to hurt and spoile his garden, and to trouble & waste his habitation; so that without further proofe, this Doctrine is most cleare in, and from the text.

[Page 250] The consideration whereof is of excellent use to confirme us in this assurance, perswasion and beliefe, that God in no respect Vse. God no way the cause of mans sin. any cause or Author of mans sin and fall, neither did give him the least occasion of discontent with his present estate, that by seeking to soare up higher, hee should catch a fearefull downe­fall into sin, and bring himselfe in bondage to death, Hell, and the Divell. For wee see, God gave him all occasions and aboun­dance of blessings as strong provocations to provoke him to love his heavenly Majesty, and as firme bands to bind, and tye him to obedience. It was the Divell who first breathed pride into man, to aspire and soare above his estate, and suggested into his heart evill surmises and thoughts of God, that God did seeke to keepe him from a better estate by restraining him from the tree of knowledge, which by eating of the fruit thereof hee might obtaine, and become like to God. Wherefore let no man charge God with giving the least occasion of discontent to man to provoke him to sin; but let us bee humbled with the sight of our owne mutability, frailty and vanity, who in our first Parents and best estate were so fragile and mutable, and much more now, being corrupted and made subject to vanity, and slaves of cor­ruption.

CHAP. XV.

Of the image of God on man in innocency. Sundry opinions of it. What the word signifieth: Zelem and Demuth. Image of God naturall, and supernaturall. Differences betweene the image of the first and second Adam. Images essentiall, and accidentall. Particulars of Gods image on Adam: in soule and body. Vses of all.

ANd God said, Let us make man in our image after our like­nesse. Gen. 1, 26. Verse 27. So God created man in his owne image, in the image of God created hee him; Male and female created hee them.

The generall Doctrine of the creation of our first Parents in [Page 251] the image of God, I have heretofore laid open out of these words. It now remaines, that I proceed to the Doctrine and Descrip­tion of that image of God in the speciall and particular points, thereof; which I reserved to the last place, because it is the maine thing which discovers to us the excellent state of man in in­nocency. As for the blessing of fruitefulnesse for the increase of mankind, and mans Dominion over the creatures, plenty and variety of bodily food, and a pleasant habitation, the earthly Pa­radise, they are but externabona, outward benefits: but the image of God containes in it internall blessings of the soule, & of the whole man, as well as externall & outward benefits; & therefore I have first dispatched them, & now come to that image of God, in which did consist the highest pitch of mans naturall perfection & felicity.

In the handling of this point, if I should rehearse the severall opinions of the ancients; how they make a difference betweene Opinion of the image and likenesse of God. the image & likenesse of God; how some make the image of God to be onely in the soule; some in the whole man; some holdthe reaso­nable soule, as it is endowed with understanding, will and memory, to be the image, and holinesse and righteousnesse to be the likenesse of God; others hold that Gods image consists in mans Dominion, & Lordship over the creatures; others, that Gods image consists in mans immortality; others in this, that man is a spirituall substance in respect of his soule, others that the image of God, after which God formed man, is God the Son as hee is the image and cha­racter of the Fathers Person, and the similitude is the holy Ghost; others that the image of God is the humane nature, which the Son was ordained to assume, and did in fulnesse of time take upon him: If I should rehearse all these, and lay them open, and confute so much in them as in unsound, I should spend time and weary my selfe to small purpose. Likewise, it would take up exercises of many houres, if I should rehearse the divers opinions, questions, and disputations of the Schoolemen; all which would trouble mens braines, and leave them in a maze or laby­rinth, uncertaine what to hold or beleeve; as also the many disputations, absurdities, and contradictions of the Iesuits, by which they contradict one another; and some of them them­selves, in many things which they teach and affirme concerning the image of God. As for the grosse opinions of old Hereticks, [Page 252] as of the Manichaans, who utterly denyed the image of God in man; and of the Audians and Anthropomorphites, who held that the outward forme and shape of mans body was Gods imagc; and of the Pelagians, who held that the image of God, in which man was created, was no other but that in which every man is now borne; they are not worthy to bee named, it were losse of time to confute them, and to discover the absurdities of them.

The maine ground which I will wholly build upon, shall bee the word of God, written in the sacred Scriptures; and what I find in the Fathers and best moderne Writers agreeable to the Scriptures, that I will commend unto you; and where I find them differing from Gods word, I will be bold to pro­fesse open dissert, and shew my dislike; that none may bee mislead by them, or by any who build upon humane autho­rity.

But, that wee may understand this point plainely and fully, I will first of all sift the words of the text, and shew what is the image and likenesse of God, and how we are to understand the phrase of making man in his owne image, and after his likenesse. And secondly, I will shew the particulars wherein man was made like unto God, and what is that image in which hee was made.

First, the image of a person or thing is that, which though it What the word mage signifies. differs in nature and substance, yet is formed by that person and according to that thing, and in all things made like unto that whereof it is the image; in so much that hee who knoweth the person or thing it selfe, when hee seeth the image, can dis­cerne that it is the image of such a thing or person, and that it is very like him; and by seeing the true image hee knowes and discernes what a one the person or thing is, whereofit is the i­mage: this is the first & the most proper sense of the word image, [...]. and thus it is used where statues of gold, silver, wood, stone, or other metall, made in the shape of a man to represent him, or in some other shape to represent a feined God, are called images, as Num. 33. 52. where God commands the Israelites to destroy the Idols of the Canaanites, and cals them molten images; and a King. 11. 19. the Idols or statues made to represent Baal [Page 253] the God of the Zidonians, are called the images of Baal. And man being made a fit creature to represent God, and to shew his glory, is in this sense called the image and glory of God, 1 Cor. 11. 7.

Secondly, the word [...], Zelem, image, is used [...], 2. Zelem. that is, abusively, to signifie a vaine shadow or bare forme and shape of a thing without a substance; such as is the shadow of a man or other creature; or a shape formed in the fansie, having no being but in mans imagination, as Psalme 39. 6. where every man is said, to walke in a vaine shadow, the word is [...], Zelem, image, and Psalme 37. 20. the vaine fansie and dreame of the wicked, that is, the vaine felicity, which they frame to themselves, is called by the same name Zelem, image.

Here in this text the word is used in the first sense, for such a thing, or such a creature as differing in nature and substance from God, yet in that nature and substance is so like unto God, and doth shew forth the glory, wisedome, power and other attributes of God; that they may bee seene and represented in some good measure in the things, and by the things which are proper to that creature.

And an image according to this sense hath in it two things Two things in an image. 1. to bee considered, to wit the matter and the forme.

The matter is the nature and substance of the creature, diffe­ring from the substance of the thing, whereof that creature is the image, and yet a very fit subject to receive such a forme, and such qualities as may make it very like the thing whereof it is the image; as for example gold, silver, wood, and stone, differ in nature and substance from man; and yet they are fit to re­ceive the whole outward shape of a mans body, and to bee like unto it in all parts. If things bee both of one kind and na­ture, though the similitude bee never so great, yet the one is not called the image of the other, except it bee made by, and according to it: as for example, One egge is not the image of another, nor one apple, nut, or figge anothers image; nor water, nor wine of the same kind in severall cups, though they bee very like, because they are both of one nature and of the same kinde, and one is not made and formed by another.

Secondly, the forme of the image is the likenesse and similitude, 2. [Page 254] which is in all the parts & properties of a thing, by meanes where­of it resembles that whereof it is the image, & is like unto it, & so becomes the image of it; as for example, the forme, & shape, & re­semblance, which is in the image of gold, silver, or stone, by which it resembleth and expresseth all parts of a mans body, and the co­lour of it, by which it resembles a mans haire, face, hands, and cloathes, that is the likenesse by which it becomes the image of a man, even of this or that particular man, and is knowne and discerned to bee his image, and in it his shape is plainely seene. Both these are here to bee understood in this word image, and Gods image containes in it both the similitude or resemblance, by which man is said to bee like unto God in all his naturall pro­perties, gifts, and endowments; and also his nature, and substance, which though it differs from Gods nature and substance: Yet is a fit subject of such properties, gifts, and endowments, which resemble Gods attributes and properties.

Secondly, the Hebrew word [...] Demuth, which is here translated likenesse, is used in a twofold sense: First, it signifies Demuth. 1. the similitude and likenesse, by which one thing resembles ano­ther in all the speciall properties of it; thus it is used Psalme 58. 4. where the poison, rancour, and malice of the wicked is said to have the likenesse of the poison of aspes; and Ezech. 1. 10. the likenesse of the faces of the foure living creatures, in Ezechiels vision is said to bee like the face of a man, and of a Lyon, and of an Oxe, and of an Eagle; and Dan. 10. 16. one is said to touch Daniel, who had the likenesse of the Sons of men. Secondly, it signifieth the same that the word image doth, that is a thing 2. which is made like to another, and is the very patterne which resembleth it in all parts, and properties, as 2 King. 16. 10. where the patterne of the Altar of Damascus which Ahaz sent to Vriah the Priest, is called the image of it. And 2 Chron. 4. 3. the images of Oxen which Solomon made under the brasen Sea, are called [...] Demuth, the likenesse of Oxen, and Isa. 40. 18. an image made to represent God, according to that conceipt of him, which men frame in their mindes, is thus called.

Here in this text the word is used in the latter sense, and signifies the same, that the word image doth in effect, but in a diver and manner. For the word [...] Image, signi­fies [Page 255] first a creature, and then the likenesse by which that creature so resembles God the Creatour, in all the speciall properties of it, that it becomes his image. And the word [...], likenesse, signifies first the similitude, and then the creature; that is, such a similitude and resemblance of God stamped upon the nature and being of a creature, as makes it the very image of God, and so these two words, Zelem, Image, and Demuth, Likenesse, are (as the best learned and most judicious expositors of this text doe affirme) the one the exposition of the other; The word Image sheweth, that the creature barely considered is not Gods image; but by the naturall properties, and gifts by which it re­sembles God. And the word likenesse sheweth, that the simi­litude alone is not the image, but as it subsists in a fit subject, and flowes from the nature and properties, which God gave it in the creation.

Vpon these grounds wee may easily understand, that the phrase of creating man in Gods owne image and likenesse, signifies Gods creating man of such a nature, and endowed with such naturall properties, gifts, and endowments; that hee doth in them all resemble himselfe, and is his lively image very like to him; shewing forth his divine properties and attributes of goodnesse, wisedome, power, knowledge, and in all things con­formable to his just will. Thus much for the opening of the words.

The next thing to bee considered, is the Image it selfe, and Image of God natu­rall, and supernatu­rall. the speciall things wherein it doth consist. And here I hold it necessary, first to distinguish the image of God, and his like­nesse into two kinds. The first is naturall, formed in the crea­tion. The second is supernaturall and spirituall, formed in man by the holy Ghost dwelling in him. This distinction, though divers people (lead by custome and humane authority more then the word of God) doe reject as a meere device of mine owne: yet I finde it plainely laid downe in the word of God. For the holy Apostle Saint Paul, 1 Cor. 15. 49. doth in expresse words affirme, that as there is both a first Adam made of the Earth, earthy, who by Gods breathing into him the breath of life became a living soule in the first creation; and also a second Adam made a quickening Spirit, even the Lord Christ from Heaven heavenly. [Page 256] So there is a twofold image of God in man; the first: The image of the earthy Adam, in which hee was created; which though hee forfeited, and lost by the law of justice: yet by Gods com­mon and generall indulgence in Christ, hee did so farre retaine and communicate it though, grievously mangled & defaced, that we are said to have borne it, who are Adams naturall progenie, and were created upright in his loynes. The other is the image of the heavenly Adam, the Lord Christ, who being in the forme of God, equall with God, did humble himselfe to descend from Hea­ven Phil. 2. by taking our nature upon him, and framing to himselfe out of the seed of the woman by the operation of the holy Ghost a most pure and holy manhood, which did beare (over and above the image of the first Adam deformed with many frailties and all our infirmities, sin onely excepted, Rom. 8. 3. Philip. 2. 7.) an holy and heavenly image created and framed in his humane nature by the working of the holy Ghost, which is given to him not by measure, Ioh. 3. 34. even from his first conception, Luk. 1. 35. And this image as the elect, regenerate and faithfull doe beare in part, in the state of grace, while they are by the inward worke of the Spirit conformed to the image of Christ, Rom. 8. 29. and Christ is formed in them, Gal. 4. 19. So they shall fully and perfectly beare it in heaven after the last resurrection, 1 Cor. 15. 49.

And as the holy Apostle doth distinguish these two images, and doth oppose the one to the other, making the one the image of the first Adam, who was of the Earth earthy; the other proper to Christ the second Adam, who is the Lord from Heaven hea­venly; so hee doth shew divers differences betweene them in his divine Epistles, which are confirmed also by other Scrip­tures.

First, the image of God in the first Adam was naturall, it Differences betweene the image of the first and second Adam. 1. was that which was given him in the creation; so my text here saith, God created man in his owne image: But the image of God in the second Adam was supernaturall and spirituall; for hee was conceived, and formed in the wombe by the holy Ghost, Luk. 1. 35. and his image is communicated to men, and they are changed into it by the Spirit of God, 2 Cor. 3. 18.

Secondly, the image of God in the first Adam was mutable, 2. [Page 257] and Adam did forfeit it, together with his life and naturall being, by his sin and disobedience: And although God, out of his common favour and indulgence in Christ, doth still con­tinue it in some degree to Adams posterity; yet it is much de­faced and deformed in all parts, and in some parts quite abolished, and is now stiled the likenesse of corruptible man, Rom. 1. 23. and the likenesse of sinfull flesh, Rom 8. 3. and the forme of a servant, and likenesse of fraile men even as it was in Christ, Phil. 2. 7. But the image of God in Christ is immutable; neither our sins which hee bare, nor all our infirmities, nor the Divell, nor the World, nor all the powers of darknesse, nor the curse of the law, which hee was made in his death, nor the wrath of God and the agonies with which hee wrastled in his agony, both in the time of his bloody sweat, and on the crosse when hee cryed out, My God why hast thou forsaken me? could deface or impaire that spirituall and supernaturall image of true righteousnesse and holinesse, which was stamped on his humanity, and in which it was framed by the holy Ghost; but over all those enemies and powers hee triumphed, even upon the Crosse, Colos. 2. 15. and in his cursed death hee offered up himselfe a sacri­fice most pure, holy and without spot, Heb. 9. 14. so that his holinesse was no whit stained, nor Gods spirituall image in him defaced, or diminished. And as this spirituall image could not bee diminished in Christ the second Adam, our head: so it Rom. 8. 35. Ioh. 4. 14. and 14. 16. is indeleble and cannot bee defaced in any of his members truely regenerate and united to him by the same spirit; but it dayly increaseth in them, and they are transformed into it, from glory 2 Cor. 3. 18. to glory, by his Spirit in them, which is stronger and greater then the Divell, the Spirit of malice which is in the World, and Ioh. 4. 4. 2 Cor. 1. 22. rules in the children of disobedience; For the Spirit seales them up, unto the day of redemption, Ephes. 4. 30. And they can­not sin by apo [...]acy, and fall into infidelity and impenitency, 1 Ioh. 3. 9. because the seed of God abideth in them.

Thirdly, the image of God in the first Adam was most per­fect 3. at the first, for hee was created perfect with naturall per­fection; and the naturall image of God was never so perfect in any of his naturall sons, as it was in him at the first. And as it decayed and was defaced in him by his fall: so in all of his po­sterity [Page 258] who are Gods elect, it gives place to the better image of Christ; And in his Sons who are reprobates, it shall bee utterly abolished at last, and changed into the image of the Divell, when they shall bee punished with everlasting destruction from the presence of God, and from the glory of his power, 2 Thess. 1. 9. But the image of God in the second Adam, is at the first in the least measure like a graine of mustard seed, and still it increaseth, till at last it commeth to fulnesse and perfection in glory. In Christ our head it was not so cleare, nor so full at the first, being ecclipsed with our infirmities; but that hee, did grow up in wise­dome, and stature, and favour with God and men, Luk 2. 52. and so this image increased in him, and hee was more and more full of the holy Ghost, till at length hee was perfected with glory. And so likewise in the state of grace, it daily increaseth in all the true members of Christ, till they come to glory, and beare the heavenly image of Christ, and attaine to the fulnesse of him, as appeares Rom. 12. 2. 2 Cor. 3. 18. and 4. 16, Ephes. 4. 13, 16. Coloss. 3. 10. 2 Pet. 3. 18. [...]

Fourthly, the image of God in Adam consisted onely in such gifts and endowments as made him a perfect naturall man, 4. capable of an earthly felicity: It did not enable him to search into the heavenly things of God, nor make him partaker of hea­venly glory: But the image of God in Christ consists of spirituall gifts and supernaturall graces, which doe enable a man to search into the deepe things of God, which never entered into the heart of Adam in innocency, 1 Cor. 3. 9, 10. or of any meere na­turall man; and which doe make him fit to see God and to inherite the Kingdome of heaven, 1 Cor. 15. 50. and Hebr. 12. 14.

The image of God in which Adam was created, did consist chiefely of originall righteousnesse, which was but a perfect na­turall 5. uprightnesse, and conformity of his reason, understanding, will and affections to the will and law of God, made knowne to him in the creation, and also in the perfect frame and dispo­sition of his body, and of all parts thereof, by which they were most apt and ready to follow his upright reason, will and af­fections in all things, and to move and worke accordingly; and the Scriptures attribute no more to man, while hee bare [Page 259] that image in the creation, but onely that God made man upright, Eccles. 7. verse last, this was the height and perfection of that image. But the image of God in Christ, the second Adam con­taines in it the righteousnesse and holinesse of truth, Ephes. 4. 24. that is, a righteousnesse wrought in us, by the holy Ghost, and a true holinesse and holy conformity to God, which cannot faile and deceive, and which doth elevate and lift us up to heavenly felicity, and the eternall fruition of God.

The image of God in which Adam was made, was but the 6. uprightnesse of servants, and conformity to the will of God; commanding as Lord and Creatour under paine of death, Gen. 2. 17. But the image of God in Christ is the image of Sons and Children, not onely adopted to God in Christ; but also begotten and borne of Gods immortall seed, even his Spirit, and made partakers of the divine nature, Ioh. 3. 5. Gal. 4. 5. 1 Pet. 1. 23. and 2 Pet. 1. 4. 1 Ioh. 3. 9.

Lastly, the image of God in which Adam was made, did 7. not in the greatest perfection of it give that fulnesse and suffi­ciency of contentment, which might settle his resolution never to desire more; for hee, out of a desire to know more, and to bee like God in knowing good and evill, was easily tempted and drawne by the Serpent to eat of the forbidden fruite: But the image of God in Christ, the second Adam gives such solid content to Gods people, even here in this fraile life in the state of grace, where they have it but in part, that neither life, nor death, nor Angels, nor principalities, nor powers, nor anguish, persecution, perill or sword, can make them willing to forgoe it for any other hope: and in the full perfection of it after the last resurrection, it brings fulnesse of joy, contentment and satisfaction, and fils men up with the fulnesse of God, Psalme 16. 11. and 17. 15. Rom 8. 35. Ephes. 3. 19.

Now these things which I have here laid downe by way of plaine Doctrine, concerning the true meaning of the words image and likenesse, and the difference betweene the image of God, in which the first Adam was created, and the image of God in the second Adam Christ, in which hee was formed by the holy Ghost, and into which all the elect are changed and renued, when they are regenerate and made new creatures in [Page 260] him may serve for excellent use: as I shall shew, when I have described the image of God, wherein our first Parents were created, and have laid downe, by way of Doctrine, the particu­lars wherein it doth consist.

But before I can distinctly describe the Image of which my text here speakes, I must yet a little more distinctly shew the severall sorts of images which, are images of God, and of other things.

There are images which are essentiall and perfect, to wit, every Images essentiall, and acci­dentall. person begotten by another of his owne nature; and images which are accidentall and imperfect.

An essentiall image, is either absolute and most perfect; or lesse perfect.

The essentiall image which is most perfect and absolute, is one person begotten by another of the same undivided substance 1. and being, in all essentiall properties equall and alike, distinct onely by personall properties and subsistence. Thus the eternall Son of God is the image of the Father of whom he is begotten from all eternity, of the same nature and individuall substance. For the second person the Son, considered according to his divinity simply as God, before his assuming of our fraile nature; is said to bee in the forme of God, that is, his person is of the same essence, glory, and majesty with the Father, and hee thought it no robbery to bee equall with God, that is to have all essentiall properties of God equall which the Father, as the Apostle testifieth, Philip. 2. 6. and in this respect, hee is called the image of the invisible God, Coloss. 1. 15. and the brightnesse of his glory, and the expresse image of his person, Hebr. 1. 3. which words though they have respect to Christ, as hee is the Word made flesh, and God incarnate, revealing God in his goodnesse, wisedome, justice, mercy, power, and the like: yet they must not bee limited to his incar­nation; but are extended to his deity as hee is the eternall Word the Son the second Person, by whom the Father created all things, and who with the Father doth uphold and sustaine all things as the words immediatly following doe shew. For indeed the eternall Word the Son, is in the forme of God, one and the same God, of the same substance, glory, and majesty with the Father, and onely distinguished in personall properties, [Page 261] relatiom, and subsistence: And therefore hee alone can truely bee called the image of God in this sense, which is most per­fect and absolute.

The essentiall or substantiall image which is lesse perfect then 2. the other, is either naturall or supernaturall.

A naturall essentiall image is one person begotten by ano­ther Naturall. of the same nature and kind of substance, and equall and alike in the same kind of naturall properties, but not of the same singular substance and individuall properties; thus every Son of man is the image of the Father which begets him; for though hee hath a severall soule and body, and severall properties which are of the same kind, but not the same singular with those of his Father: yet because his body and soule, and all the faculties of it, are of the same kind, and in the outward forme resem­bles his Father, and his Father may bee seene as it were in him, therefore hee is his Fathers image and made in his like­nesse.

A supernaturall essentiall image is a nature or person, who And su­pernatu­rall. is so begotten of God by the holy Ghost, given to bee and abide in him, as the immortall seed of God, that hee is made partaker of the divine nature; that is, hath not onely supernaturall, and spirituall gifts wrought in him, by which hee is made fit to see and enjoy God: but also is united to God, and God becomes his portion for ever.

This image is either primary or secondary. The primary image [...]. of this kind is onely Christ as hee is man, or the humane nature of Christ, which God formed and made in the womb of the virgin so pure and holy by the holy Ghost from the first con­ception, in which the holy Ghost came upon her, and the power of the Almighty over-shadowed her, Luk. 1. that it was not onely most pure and holy, and full of the holy Ghost from the first being of it; but also was personally assumed and united to the eternall Son of God, the second Person in the blessed Trinity, and so became the first borne of every creature, Coloss. 1. 15. and the first fruits which doe sanctifie the whole masse of the elect, 1 Cor. 15. 23. and hee head from whom the Spirit is derived unto all the elect, Ephes. 4. 15, so that they become a kind of first fruits of Gods creatures, Iam. 1. 18.

[Page 262] The secondary supernaturall image is every elect, regenerate child of God, begotten and borne of his Spirit, shed on them through Christ, Tit. 3. 6. and so created a new man after God, in righteousnesse and holinesse of truth, and made partakers of the divine nature, one with God in Christ and by Christ, Ioh. 17. 23. I call this a secondary image, because the elect become this image not immediatly, but after a secondary manner, by deriving the Spirit from Christ, and by union with God in him. I call it a supernaturall image, because it is above mans nature, and be­longs not to him in the creation, nor consists in any naturall properties or resemblance. And I call it an essentiall image, be­cause every regenerate man, hath in him the holy Ghost dwel­ling as the soule of his soule, quickning the whole man; which Spirit is of the same essence with the Father and the Son. And in respect of this Spirit, and his gifts dwelling in his taber­nacles their bodies, and furnishing them throughout; they are truely called, and are indeed, a new image of God, and new crea­tures.

All these sorts of images are to bee excluded out of this text, for our first parents are not here said to bee created after God essentially or supernaturally, but onely in the accidentall and na­turall image of God; as I have in part shewed before, and shall also hereafter more fully shew in all the particulars.

The accidentall or imperfect image of a thing or of a person, is a thing or person so framed and made by another, as by a pa­terne, and after the likenesse of that paterne, that it doth very much resemble it in likenesse and similitude, but yet is not every way equall, nor in all things fully alike, nor of the same nature and substance with it.

In an image of this kind, there are required two things ne­cessarily:

First, that the thing which is the image bee very like, that whereof it is the image; yea so like, that it must resemble and 1. represent either the nature and essentiall forme of it, or the outward forme and figure, or some speciall properties and pro­per qualities of it; or all these together, and yet in a different substance.

Secondly, that it bee formed and made by that whereof it is [Page 263] the image, and according to the paterne of it: Where any of these two is wanting, there can bee no image at all; as for example, One egge is like another in nature, substance, and all naturall properties; yet that egge is not the image of the other, because the one is not made by the other, as the paterne of it: so wee may say of an apple, or a figge, and of many other things; but the forme of an egge or apple made in chalke, or paste, or wax, is the image of an egge or apple, though not so like it as ano­ther egge or apple, and farre different in nature and substance, because it is formed by it as by a paterne. And againe, though an egge bee formed in the body, and of the naturall substance of a bird, and sometimes wormes are bred in the bodies of men and beasts; and the egge resembles the bird in whitenesse or in variety of other colours, and the wormes seeme like mans flesh, in whom they are bred, both in colour and substance, and in life, sense, and motion: yet they cannot bee called images, be­cause they are not like in shape nor outward forme, nor in any property, but onely in some qualities, and small resemblance. But the picture or statue, made after a man, and in many things like him, though more like another man then him, yet it is his image, and not the image and picture of another: so the figure of a man appearing in a glasse when hee stands before it; though it differs in nature and substance, and is but a vanishing shadow: yet because in outward shape, forme and colour it is very like, and is expressed in the glasse by him looking in it, therefore is his image. And the impression of a stamp or seale made in wax or well tempered clay is the image of that stampe or seale, though it bee not perfectly like, by reason of some small defects in the wax, clay or stamping; and the impression of another seale engraven with the same figure or letters may bee in all points more like, and yet not the image of it, because it was not made after it, but by another seale engraven with the same figure.

Now then, that wee may plainely see that man was created, Man made after Gods image, how. and how hee was created in the image of God, and made after his likenesse, and that hee is a true accidentall image of God his Creatour, Wee are to observe and take notice of these two things:

[Page 264] First, that God did frame mans nature, even his whole soule and body after himselfe, with intent that both his substance, 1. and naturall properties and endowments might take their pat­terne from him his Creatour; that is, in a word, God himselfe was the originall and chiefe patterne by which alone man was made and formed.

Secondly, that though divers other creatures had in divers 2. things more resemblance of God, then man had; as the heavens in large comprehension of the visible World; the Sun in glorious brightnesse, beauty and Majesty; the highest heaven in glory and immutability; And all creatures, as they have essence and being, and were made good and perfect in their kind, have, some more, some fewer impressions and resemblance of God in his essence and attributes: yet none can bee called the image of God among all visible creatures but onely man; because, though God formed all things after his owne will, wisedome, and goodnesse; yet hee made no visible creature living or without life, so farre re­sembling himselfe in his nature and essentiall properties, that it might justly or with good reason bee called his image, but onely man. As man alone of all creatures under heaven was made in the image of God; so man alone doth so plainely resemble God, is so stamped with the impression of Gods properties, and in his whole nature and frame is made so fit a subject for God to dwell in, and to bee conformed to God; and wherein God may shew his wisedome, power, goodnesse, liberty of will, justice, mercy and other attributes, that hee onely of all visible crea­tures can truely bee called the image of God.

Let us now therefore, in the next place, come to the things Particulars wherein the image of God stood. Conformi­ty of Adam to God. wherein this image of God did consist, and in respect of which things man is said to bee created in the image of God, and to bee the image of God his creatour.

First, it is a most certaine truth that the image of God, in which man was created, is nothing else but the conformity of man unto God; and man is truly called the image of God in respect of all those things wherein hee doth, more then any other vi­sible creatures, resemble God in his divine essence and properties. Now this conformity of man unto God is twofold, primary, or secondary.

[Page 265] Primarie conformity, is seated in the Soule of man, or in man In soule. according to his soule the chiefe part of his substance.

Secondary conformitie is that which is in man according to his bodie, and consists in the body and in things which belong to his body.

Conformitie of Man to God in his Soule, is either in the Nature of substance of his Soule, or in the naturall Faculties, Properties, and Endowments of it.

First, conformity to God in the Substance of his Soule, is the 1. In the sub­stan [...]e o [...]t. similitude which mans Soule hath unto the nature and substance of God, in that mans Soule is not a Corporeall substance, as all visible Creatures are, nor a Materiall body created of any former matter, but it is a pure Spirit, even a spirituall, incorporeall, invi­sible and living substance, and so it is called. 1 Cor. 2, 11. & Heb. 12. 23. and both here in my text; and 1 Cor 15. 45. a Living Soule which lives and gives life to the body; and in these things it is like unto God who in his nature and being is a Spirit, or a spi­rituall substance, as our Saviour affirmes, Joh. 4. 24. & is called the Invisible God Coloss. 1. 15. & Tim. 1. 17. and the Living God Psal. 42. 2. & Ier. 10. 10. & Ioh. 6. 96. and his Eternall power and Godhead are called Invisible things, Rom 1. 20. yea as God saith of himselfe, Isa 40. 18. So wee may truely say of mans Soule, that it cannot truely be likened to any visible thing, neither can any bodily substance resemble it.

Conformity to God in the naturall faculties, properties and in­dowments 2. In the na­turall fa­culties of it. of his Soule is the likenesse, and similitude which man in respect of his reason, understanding, liberty of will desires and affections, all upright and perfect, had unto Gods wisedome, knowledge, goodnesse, libertie, justice, mercy, and the like.

First, man in his perfect understanding, naturall light, wise­dome 1. and knowledge, did resemble Gods wisedome, and know­ledge of all things. For man in his creation, and naturall integritie did rightly know God and himselfe, and did perfectly understand all the workes, and the nature of all the creatures of God, and what was good both for himself and them, so far as was needfull in his kind, and in that naturall estate, and what was just for him to do: and how to beare himself uprightly towards God and all his creatures. That he had the knowledge and understanding of [Page 266] all these things sufficiently to make him perfect and happie in that estate; and that there was no errour or ignorance in him of any thing which was meet for him to know, appears most plainely by divers things.

First, by Gods giving to man dominion and rule over all living creatures, and puting him in the garden to dresse it, and puting all the earth in Subjection to him; which God would never have done, being infinitly wise and just, except he had knowne man to be one who understood and knew the nature of the earth, and all Herbes, Plants, and Trees in it; and by his reason, wisdome and knowledge was able to rule all Creatures with discretion, and to order them according to their severall natures, and to dresse the garden, and subdue the earth.

Secondly, by Adams naming of all the Creatures, every one by such a name as did shew the nature of it; so that God did approve and confirme the names, Gen. 2. 19 and every Creature did in all likelyhood come to Adam being called by that name.

Thirdly, by the understanding which he had of the nature of the woman (when God shewed her to be formed of his Rib) and presently giving her the name [...], Woman, or shee Man, Gen. 2. 23.

Fourthly, by Adams free conversing with God, and hearing of his voice without fear or dread; which was a strong evidence of an upright heart and pure conscience, and that he knew God, and his goodnesse; and that though God was greater then he could comprehend, yet God would not hurt him, but uphold him so long as he did obey Gods will revealed to him.

Secondly, man did resemble God in the perfect liberty and freedome of his will, and in the perfect conformity of it to the re­vealed [...]. and knowne will of God, and in the readinesse and natu­rall forwardnesse of it to will whatsoever good was within his power, and of himself to will nothing which was unjust and evill: by these things he resembled the free will and liberty of God, and his justice and equitie in all his doings. That mans will was most free to good, and that he had power of will to obey God appeares,

First by this, that the Law of God was written in his heart as the rule of his life and actions; and that so deeply, that it remaines Rom. 2. [Page 267] in the heart of his corrupt seed in some measure, & cannot be quite blotted out. As he knew by his understanding and in his minde, so he was willing in his heart, to will and to do all accordingly; & of himself would never have fallen, if the Devill, that Spirituall wickednesse, had not by the Serpent seduced and deceived him.

Secondly, by the power and Dominion which God gave to him over all Creatures visible; which he would not have done, if man had not been as ready in will, as perfect in knowledge to rule them aright. It is not knowledge alone, but uprightnesse of heart, and will, and power, and freedome to will just things justly, which God requires to make an able and sufficient Ruler, as Da­vid 2 Sam. 23. [...]. testifieth in his last words.

Thirdly, it is manifest by the commaundement which God gave to man to be obeyed under paine of death, which he being a good God would never have imposed on man, if mans will had not been free and upright; for then he had laid a snare which man could not have avoided; and had required more of man, then man by his naturall power was able to performe.

Thirdly, man was also conformable to God, and to his just [...]. will, goodnesse, purity and happinesse, in all the desires and affe­ctions of his heart and soule. He of himself desired no more but that which God gave him and allowed him; hee loved God as his Creatour, and the author of all his good; He did rejoice in Gods favour, love, and bountie; He delighted himself in all the naturall gifts which God had given him, and in the good creatures of God; there was perfect Harmonie and sweet consent between his reason, understanding, will, and his desires and affections: whatsoever he knew to be good and just, that he freely willed, desired and affected: there was no disorder, discord or repugnancy and dissention in any power or faculty of Soule, or Body; no least cause of griefe, but all joy and content. And of himself he never would have desired more then God had given, nor coveted an higher estate, if Satan had not suggested such desire, and sedu­ced him.

This, and indeed all the whole perfect uprightnesse of man in all the powers and faculties of his Soule, in his understanding, will, desires and affections is most clearly confirmed by plaine testimonies of holy Scripture.

[Page 268] First, by the last verse of this Chapter, where it is said that when God had created man Male and Female, and finished the Creation, he saw every thing which he had made, and behold it was very good. If man was very good; then was he upright in all the faculties of the Soule, in his understanding, will, desires and affections, and there could be no discord among them; for that is evill and miserable.

Secondly, we have the testimony of the wise Preacher Eccles. 7. 30. that God made man upright, that is, in Originall righteous­nesse, conformable in his upright reason, understanding, will and affections to the just revealed will of God.

Thirdly, experience teacheth that the things which make man ashamed, are ignorance and errour in mind and understanding, perversnesse of will, disorderly lusts and affections, and deformity and distemper either in Soule or Body. Now Man and Woman had no cause of shame in them, neither were they ashamed when they were naked and went uncovered in all parts, as wee reade Chap. 2. 25. and therefore in the state of innocencie all these causes of shame were far from him, and he most free from them.

The Secondary conformity of man to God, which is in man In body. 1. according to his Body, consists in things which belong to the body and to the outward visible man.

First, wee must not conceive, that God is any kind of body or bodily substance (as blasphemous Vorstius and other Arminians have written) neither that God hath a forme and shape like a mans body, as the Anthromorphites of old dreamed: For it is manifest, that in him, who is infinit, and so present in all places, that he is in his whole essence in every place; should have any difference, or limitation or dimension, or measure of severall parts, which is necessarily required in the forme, shape and sub­stance of mans body and every bodily thing.

But yet, because in the most wise, and artificiall frame, and 2. naturall temper of mans body; and the most fit disposition, and order of all parts, by which it is a fit subiect for a reasonable Soule, and the principall parts of it fit instruments for the seve­rall faculties of the Soule, whereby to performe their many and severall workes and operations the wisedome, power, and good­nesse of God did shine forth of mans body, more then in all vi­sible [Page 269] creatures; and the Image of God appeared in it. Mans eyes, sight, and all outward senses did represent Gods omniscience and knowledge of all things; his hands did shew and represent Gods power to do and worke whatsoever he will; his armes did repre­sent Gods strength and power to save his People, and to destroy his enemies; The beauty, comelinesse, & naturall majesty which appeared in mans body & upright stature, by which he did over­looke all creatures, as one most fit to rule them, did shew forth and represent the glory and majestie of God and his Lordship, dominion, providence and power, by which he governs all things. In a word, though mans body was mutable in the Creation and state of innocency, and might fall from that state: yet so long as man did continue in that state, and did not sin, he had that lively vigour, & perfect temper of body, which did free him from death, and all evills which tend to hurt and destruction; which also was able to uphold him in life and strength for ever, if sin had not en­tred, and so in some sort he was immortall and impassible, not subject to death or any passion and suffering of hurt and evill in his body, and so there was in his body some likenesse of Gods im­mortalitie.

For proofe of this wee have good arguments in Scripture: First, God himself sheweth that murther, and shedding of mans bloud is a defacing of his Image in which he created man; and for that cause he threatens revenge of murther, and of violence offered to Mans bloud, Gen. 9. 5, 6. Now murther and shedding of mans bloud [...]s a defacing of mans body; therefore the body also is a secondarie Image of God.

Secondly, the Scriptures which set forth Gods attributes and workings by severall parts of mans body; as his omniscience and providence by Eyes, Psal. 33. 18. 2. Cron. 16. 9. his activity and working by Hands, as Exod. 15. 16. Psal. 44. 3. Isa. 51. 9. his love, and mercy by Bowells, as Isa. 63. 15. Jer. 31. 20. his pu­nishing and revenging Iustice by breath of mouth and nostrills Psal. 38. 15. and Isa. 11. 4. his secret thoughts, counsells and purposes by Heart, Psal. 33. 11. his utterance of his mind and will by Mouth, Jer. 9. 12. these Metaphors do shew that the body of man and chiefe parts of it have some similitude of Gods attributes and workes, and so mans body is secondarily the Image and likenesse of God.

[Page 270] Thirdly, the Scriptures shew that death is the wages of Sin, and all mortality and subjection to evills and passions, which tend to hurt and corruption came in by mans disobedience and fall, as appears, Rom. 5. 12. and 6. 23. and by Gods, commina­tion, Gen. 2. 19. But in the Creation and state of innocencie man had in him no Sin, nor any inclination of himself to any evill or Sin; therefore he was after a sort [...]mmortall and incorruptible in his body, and had even in it a similitude of Gods immortality.

Fourthly, the body was in all things conformable to the Soule, fit and ready in all things to follow the motions of the Soule, to be directed and moved by the upright reason will and affections, and to doe all workes unto which they move it; and therefore as the Soule was made in the primary Image and likenesse; so the body in the secondary Image and likenesse of God.

Lastly, to conclude this doctrine of Gods Image in which man was created, wee may not unfitly affirme, and with good reason hold; that though man in the state of innocency, before the pro­mise of Christ, had no Supernaturall gifts, nor any part of the Spirituall Image of the second Adam; but was onely a perfect naturall man, and not immediatly, & proximâ potentiâ capable of supernaturall grace, nor of the Divine nature: yet because his na­ture and whole frame was such as had a possibility, or remote power, to be made partaker of the Holy Ghost; united to God in Christ, and made pattaker of the Divine nature, and a new crea­ture, or new man framed after God; therefore he in this respect may be said to be Created in the Image of God; that is in such a forme, and of such a nature, as had a possibility to become like unto Christ, and a new creature made in the Spirituall Image of God.

Now this Doctrine of Gods Image briefly and compendiously Vse proved in all parts, is of excellent use.

First this discovers the infinite riches of the bounty of God pas­sing 1. Riches of Gods bountie to man. all bounds; and declares his goodnesse to be like a great deep which can never be sounded, in that he hath overcome all our evill and malice towards him with his great goodnesse to us, and and when wee had forfeited our being, and his Image in which he created us good and perfect with all naturall perfections, and did justly deserve to degenerate and be turned into the Image [Page 271] of the Divell, and to become in the likenesse of his malice, and and misery; he out of his owne meere mercy and free grace and bounty, did give his Sonne, and the Sonne did freely undertake to humble himself, to become a second Adam, made in a better Image, even an heavenly and spirituall, that he might not onely suspend the execution of Gods just sentence upon mankind, and procure to the first Adam and all his posterity the continuance of their naturall being for a time, and of some reliques of the Image which they had wholly forfeited: but also might renue a great number chosen out of mankind, and restore them to a better, even an heavenly Image; by transforming and changing them in­to his spirituall and supernaturall Image, and making them con­formable to it, and partakers of the Divine nature, by the mysti­cail dwelling and powerfull operation of his spirit in them. Here is that which may dazle the eyes of men, and the sight of Angells, when they looke into it; and which may astonish all hearts of men, and confound all humane reason, when they thinke of it, and heare it preached; That God infinitely just and holy, to hate and punish Sin, should, by our evill, and Sin committed against him and his just will and Law, take occasion to be more good, and to shew greater goodnesse to us; and when wee deserved, to have no being but in Hell and eternall misery; hath raised us up to the spirituall state of grace, from which we cannot be hurled and cast downe by all the powers of darkenesse, and by which wee shall ascend to the blessed state of Heavenly and Eternall glory. Here is love surpassing all knowledge, the depth whereof wee may admire, and adore in silence; but neither can our hearts conceive, nor our tongues expresse the fulnesse thereof.

Secondly, this former discourse shewes, what a vaine and foo­lish 2. Vse Not to stick in re­ceived opi­nions, as unerring. thing it is for Christian people, to be so wedded to the opi­nions of godly learned men in all points, which have beene formerly received and commonly beleeved; or to be so strongly conceipted and perswaded of their full understanding and per­fect knowledge of all the Scriptures, and of all truth taught in the written word of GOD; that whatsoever they have taught, and commonly held, they will cleave too till death; and they will receive and embrace no truth, nor any ex­position of any Scripture, which hath not beene before observed, [Page 272] taught and published in the Sermons and writings of the godly learned Ancient Fathers, and the soundest Orthodox moderne Divines. I confesse the Scriptures alone, dayly read and heard by men of ordinary capacity and learning, are able to make them wise to Salvation; For the way to life may easily be discerned by their guidance, and direction. But there are degrees of know­ledge, and divers measures of gifts; and when a man knoweth enough to bring him on in an ordinarie way to life, yet there is still more knowledge to be learned, and a greater depth of know­ledge to be found in the Scriptures which are doubtfull, obscure, and more hard to be understood; and many new expositions of divers places, which more plainly and fully confirme solid truthes formerly beleeved; which he that searcheth out and dis­covereth, doth thereby get more strength in faith, and growth in grace, and more spirituall joy and comfort, and runs on faster and more speedily and steadfastly in the way to Salvation. Wee see here for example, the common opinion of Ancient and moderne writers to goe currant; that there is but one kind of Image of God in man; and that the Image unto which Christ restores us, is the very same in which Adam was created; that Adam had power by that Image to obtaine Heavenly glory, and to grow up to that estate, which the elect Saints come to in Christ; that Christ re­stores no more but that which Adam lost, and unto which he should have attained after some time of continuance in innocen­cy; that he was created in holinesse as well as Christ, and true Christians are, and so partaker of the Holy Ghost. And when any thing is taught out of the Scriptures to the contrary, many mouthes, even of more learned men, are opened to gainsay and oppose: And yet you see the Scriptures more narrowly sifted do teach most plainely to the contrary, and have not any plaine speech tending to prove these common opinions: yea the Scrip­tures which are alledged for them, & are so applied & expoun­ded, do prove the contrary, if they be well weighed and conside­red with a cleare judgement, not forestalled with prejudice and partialitie: wherefore let us wholly depend on Gods word, and not on mens reason or jugdement to subject either the Scriptures or the sense of them thereunto; and let us still more and more thirst after increase of knowledge and understanding of Divine [Page 273] truths hid in the harder places of Gods written word, knowing that these are the last times wherein knowledge shall be increased, as wee read, Dan. 12. 4. Let us not consider the Person which preacheth and teacheth, but what is by him taught. If new expo­sitions and Doctrines, not formerly taught, yea crossing the com­mon opinions, be proved by better grounds and clearer evidence of Scripture, and tend more to advance other saving truthes, to beate downe errours, and to increase Piety, and godly affection in men; let men take heed, and beware of rash opposition and gaine­saying, lest they be found to fight against God, while they stand Act. 5. too much for the authority of men, though such as have beene holy and godly servants of Christ, and famous in their gene­rations.

Thirdly, this doctrine of Gods Image in Adam doth both dis­cover Vse 3. Of confu­tation of erroneous opinions. and also minister strong arguments whereby to confute divers erroneous opinions much dissenting, and dissonant from the solid truth and word of God, to wit, not onely those mentio­ned before, but others also; as, that Gods Image was onely ori­ginall righteousnesse or justice, and that the naturall faculties of Soule and Body did not concurre to it; that the whole Image of God in Adam was utterly lost by his fall, and is quite abolished till it be repaired and restored by Christ, with divers others of the same stampe; concerning which I finde many hot disputations among the learned; all which appeare superfluous, if this do­ctrine were well weighed, and made a rule whereby to measure them; for it will, like a just measure, shew which of them come short, and which goe too farre beyond the truth and true line of holy Scriptures.

Lastly, in this wee see as in a cleare glasse the dignity and Vse 4. Excellency of man to be hence noted. excellency of humane nature, above the nature of all other visible creatures; in that he was made completely in Gods Image, and con­formable to God, and like to him in his whole frame, and in all faculties of Soule, and parts and members of body: And let this stirre us up to walke worthy, and beseeming such a nature and frame, and labour to keep both our whole Soule and Spirit, and all members of our bodies unspotted and unstained with sinne, which is the defacing of Gods Image: and let us reverence Gods Image in other men, especially seeing it is repaired and made of a [Page 274] better kind by Christ, and above all take heed of cruelty and of defacing Gods Image in any part, by cuting of members and mangling the bodies of men, especially of Gods Saintes whose bodies are Temples and Tabernacles of God by his Spirit.

Thus much concerning the first externall worke of God, the creation and the state wherein God created man, and wherein the state of Innocency did consist.

CHAP. XVI.

Of the actuall providence of God. The Obiect of it. What the word signifieth: in 3. things. Proofe that there is a providence: by Texts, and Arguments. Description, shewing what it is: de­monstrated in the parts, and branches of it. Providence gene­rall and speciall: Acts of it. Speciall providence in saving the elect by Christ, what: and in what parts. Uses.

THe next great externall worke of God after the creation, is his actuall providence, by which hee doth rule and dispose all things created, and doth order all actions which are done, and all events which come to passe in the World, to the mani­festation of his glorious goodnesse.

This great worke of God doth reach through all other ex­ternall Object of provi­dence. works, which are done either by God himselfe or any other; and doth comprehend with in the compasse of it all Gods works which hee doth in the World, whether they bee works of wisedome and power in ruling and preserving his creatures, or workes of iustice in punishing and destroying, or workes of mercy and grace in redeeming repairing and saving the World; and in bringing his chosen to eternall blessednesse. Yea there is no worke done, nor any event which comes to passe at any time, or in any age of the World; which God doth not over­rule and order by his providence. For, as hee is infinite in wise­dome and power, able to decree and ordaine from all eternity all things most wisely, and to create and bring to passe all things according to the counsell of his will by a mighty hand of power, [Page 275] which cannot bee resisted. So also hee is wonderfull in goodnesse and bounty, to provide, most carefully all things needfull in aboun­dance, for the being and welbeing of his creatures, and to order governe and dispose all things good and evill, most wisely to the good of his elect, the iust punishment and destruction of the wicked, and to his owne glory.

Wherefore that wee may better understand this point, and proceed profitably in the handling of it. We are first to con­sider the signification of the name, and the true sense of the word; And after to insist upon the thing it selfe, and to define and describe this actuall providence of God.

The word providence is sometimes taken in a large sense, and What the word sig­nifieth. signifies Gods care and respect of all creatures; both in decreeing, and ordaining their being and all things which befall them, and in executing his eternall decree according to the counsell of his owne will; for in all these things God did shew a provident care and respect.

Sometimes the word is used more strictly and that three 1. wayes.

First, for the provident care and respect of God in decreeing things for the best, that they should so come to passe as they have done, or shall doe at any time hereafter, of this providence the Apostle speakes Hebr. 11. 40. where hee saith, God having provided some better thing for us, that they without us should not bee made perfect, this may bee called Gods providence in willing and decreeing.

Secondly, it signifies Gods provident care, which hee shewed 2. in the creation of the World, and all things therein. For hee first created things above which could subsist, and bee perfect by themselves without the inferiour elements and the crea­tures in them, as the highest heavens, and their inhabitants the Angels; then hee created the visible heavens, which might bee ready by their light to bee of use for other th [...]ngs below in such measure as was needfull; then hee created the spacious regions of the aire, through which that light might shine to other ele­ments, and all creatures which hee was about to create in them; and before hee created any living creatures, which could not well subsist nor move themselves without greater light then [Page 276] that of the naked heavens, hee created the Sun, Moone, and Starres, which might both give light sufficient to those creatures, and also might cherish and comfort them and all other things, which were made to serve for their use. And before hee crea­ted mankind male and female in his owne image, fit to rule un­der him in the inferiour World, hee prepared and made ready for them all creatures, which they might rule over; all kinds of delicate food in great variety and aboundance, and a Lordly palace and place of pleasure wherein to dwell, in which he put them so soone as they were created. As God in all this shewed his provident care for man and all creatures, to make them every one perfect in their kind with naturall perfection in the creation: so I have noted this his actuall providence in the severall pas­sages of the creation and have unfolded it so farre as for the present was necessary.

Thirdly, this word is frequently used to signifie Gods provi­dent care in ordering and governing the whole created World, 3. and preserving all creatures therein, and in disposing every thing which doth befall them and come to passe in the World, to some good end, according to the counsell of his owne will. This is the actuall providence which now comes to bee distinctly handled, and unfolded in the next place after the creation.

But before I come to describe this providence of God, and to Proofe that provi­dence is. lay open the nature, object, severall parts and kinds of it, I hold it necessary to prove clearly out of the holy Scriptures, that there is in God such a providence and provident care, which hee doth shew and exercise in the ruling and governing of the whole World, and ordering, and disposing all things to their severall ends; And that God is not a carelesse, sleepie and slumbering one, who doth neglect, and not see, regard, and care for any things here below, as some blind fooles, desperate Atheists, and wicked Men have imagined and spoken, as the Psalmist sheweth, Psalme 10. 11. 13. and 94. 7. who say, that the Lord doth not see, God hath forgotten, [...]ee hideth his face, hee will never see, nor regard, nor require what is done among men in the World.

For the manifest proofe of Gods providence, I will first rehearse some notable testimonies, even plaine texts of holy Scripture, which being laid together may minister to us suffi­cient [Page 277] matter, and occasion, to describe and set forth the actuall providence of God, and all things wherein it doth consist, and which thereto belong.

Psalme 14. 2. The Lord looketh downe from heaven upon Texts of Scripture which set forth Gods actuall provi­dence. the Children of men to see if there bee any that doe understand and seeke after God.

Psalme 33. 13, 14, 15. The Lord loooketh from heaven, hee beholdeth all the Sons of men, from the place of his habita­tion, hee looketh upon all the inhabitants of the Earth. Hee fashioneth all their hearts alike, hee considereth all their works.

Psalme 34. 15, 16. The eyes of the Lord are upon the righ­teous, and his eares are open unto their cry. The face of the Lord is against them, that doe evill to cut off the remembrance of them from the Earth.

Psalme 36. 6. Thy iudgments O Lord are a great deepe▪ thou preservest man and beasts.

Psalme 104. 27, 28, 29, 30. All living things wait upon the Lord, that hee may give them their meat in due season. Hee giveth to them, and they gather it; hee openeth his hand, and they are filled with good, when he hideth his face they are trou­bled, when hee taketh away their breath they dye and returne to their dust; when hee sendeth forth his Spirit they are created, and hee renueth the face of the Earth.

Psalme 113. 5. Who is like unto the Lord our God, who dwel­leth on high. 6. Who humbleth himselfe to behold the things that are in Heaven and in Earth. 7. He raiseth the poore out of the dust, and lifteth the needy out of the dunghill, that he may set him with Princes.

Psalme 138. 6. Though the Lord b [...] high: yet he hath respect to the lowly.

Job 13. 7. But aske now the beasts, and they shall teach; and the fowles of the Aire, and they shall tell thee. 8. Or speake to the Earth, and it shall teach thee; and the fishes of the Sea shall de­clare unto thee. 9. Who knoweth not in all these, that the hand of the Lord hath wrought this. 10 In whose hand is the soule of every living thing and the breath of all mankind.

2 Chron, 16. 9. The eyes of the Lord run to and fro through­out [Page 278] the Earth, to shew himselfe strong for them whose Heart is perfect.

Isa. 41. 22. and 4 [...]. 8, 9. The Lord proveth himselfe to bee the onely true God by his provident care over all things, and his foresight and prediction of things which afterwards hee brin­geth to passe; and that Idols are no Gods, because they cannot do any such things.

Matth. 6. 26. Behold the fowles of the Aire, they sow not, neither doe they reap, nor gather into barnes; yet your heavenly Father feedeth them.

Matth. 10. 29, 30. Are not two sparrowes sold for a farthing, and not one of them shall fall on the ground without your Father; But the very haires of your head are all numbred.

Hebr. 4. 13. All things are naked, and opened to his eyes, neither is there any creature, which is not manifest in his sight.

1 Pet. 5. 7. Cast your care upon him for hee careth for you.

These texts laid together doe aboundantly shew Gods actuall providence, and the extent of it to all things created, and doe Minister to us every Doctrine which concernes the object, parts, and kinds of it.

And besides these Scriptures, wee have strong Arguments to prove the actuall providence of God.

First, hee who is the Omnipotent Creatour, Lord, and Pos­sessor of Heaven and Earth, and all things therein, infinite in Arg. 1. wisedome, knowledge, goodnesse, mercy, justice, must needs have a provident care to order, rule, dispose, and preserve all things which belong to him: Now such a one is God, as I have aboundantly proved before in unfolding his attributes; hee is infinite in power, wisedome, knowledge, goodnesse, and the like; the Creatour and supreme Lord of all things. The whole World is his, and all things therein belong to him; Psalme 50. 12. Therefore, undoubtedly, hee hath a provi­dent care of all, and an eye and hand in ordering all things.

Secondly, the workes which God doth, and the things Arg. 2. which hee brings to passe in the World, doe shew his wi [...]e care and providence. Hee giveth raine in due season for a bles­sing [Page 279] to his obedient people; & he withholdeth it from the wicked for a iust punishment, & makes their heaven as brasse, & their Earth as iron; he blesseth men in their basket and store, & in the increase of their cattell and the fruite of their ground; and he againe for sin maketh fruitfull lands barren, and destroyes their cattell with murraine and with thunderbolts, Levit. 26. Deut. 28. Iob 12. 12. Psalm, 107. 34. By him Kings are set up to rule, and Prin­ces and Iudges to execute iustice, and to judge, not for themselves but for him, Prov. 8. 15. 2 Chron. 19. 6. He breaketh downe and shutteth up, and none can resist him, hee leadeth counsellors away spoiled, and maketh Iudges fooles; Hee looseth the band of Kings, and poureth contempt upon Princes; Hee increaseth he nations and destroyeth them, hee enlargeth the nations and straiteneth them, Job 12. 14, and all Kingdomes are disposed by him, Dan. 2. 37.

Thirdly, the miracles which God worketh by them who Arg. 3. call upon his name, and the extraordinary things which come to passe, whereof there is no naturall cause, nor any cause at all but his owne will, and pleasure, and provident hand do prove the same. The miracles and wonders which hee shewed in Egypt and the wildernesse, so often as Moses called and prayed unto him: His staying of the Sun for a whole day at Iosh [...]ah's prayer, Iosh. 10. His thundering on the Philistines at the prayer of Samuel, 1 Sam. 7. 10. His raising of the dead at the prayer of his Prophets and Apostles, 1 King. 17. 2 King. 4. and Act. 9. His giving of heroicall gifts, strength, and courage beyond all humane reason to some men for the deliverance of his op­pressed People, as to Samson, David, and his worthies, and di­vers others. All these shew Gods watchfull care over the World, and his actuall providence, ordering and disposing all things.

This point thus, proved, as it serves to discover the impiety, Vse Of confu­tation and [...]eproofe. profanenesse and desperate blindnesse of Epicures, who utterly reiect and deny the whole providence of God; and those despe­rate Atheists, such as Caligula, Nere, and others, who scoffed and derided all them who taught and beleeved it; and those heathen Philosophers, who held that God had no care or respect of things u [...]der heaven, but blind fortune ruled here below; [Page 280] and all things here are casuall and come by chance: So it admo­nisheth us & all men to beware of giving way to such doubts and feares of infirmity which their owne corrupt flesh, or Satan by mears thereof doth suggest into their hearts to weaken & destroy their faith in Gods Providence: Let no man admit such a thought into his heart, That God hath forgotten to be gracious, and that it is in vaine to serve God: there is no profit in walking humbly before him, in keeping his ordinance, in mens purging their hearts, and washing their hands in innocency; because they that worke wickednesse and tempt God doe prosper, and they who deale trecherously are set up, and exalted. But above all, let us ab­horre all presuming conceipts, that all things come to passe by blind chance, and God doth not see nor regard our wicked thoughts, purposes, and practises; neither will hee call us to account for them. For what is this, but to deny the Lord to be God? It is even the way to pull speedy wrath, and vengeance on our owne heads.

Gods providence being proved, that it is: I proceed to shew by way of plaine description what it is; and wherein it doth con­sist. The summe of which description is this.

The actuall providence of God is Gods exercise of his wisedome, power, goodnesse, iustice, and mercy in ruling, ordering, and go­verning Descripti­on of Gods actuall provi­dence. the whole World, in watching over all his creatures with a carefull eye, in doing all good, and permitting all evill which are done in the World; and in disposing all things, good and evill, to the manifestation of his glory, and the eternall salvation of his elect in Christ, according to his owne eternall purpose and the counsell of his will.

This description consists of two maine and principall parts. The first sheweth, what Gods actuall providence is in generall, in these words, Gods exercise of his wisedome, power, goodnesse, iustice and mercy. The second sheweth the speciall nature of it, and the speciall things wherein it doth consist, and whereby it is distinguished from all Gods other outward actions, and exer­cises of his wisedome, power, and goodnesse. This is comprised in the rest of the words.

First, it is Gods exercise of his wisedome, power, goodnesse, mercy and iustice and in this it agreeth with the creation, and all other Parts 1. [Page 281] outward actions of God, for every such action is either an exer­cise of his wisedome, or of his power, or of his goodnesse, or of his mercy, or of his justice, or of all, or the most part of them all together. And indeed Gods actuall providence beareth sway in all his outward actions, which hee doth either immediatly by himselfe, or mediatly by the ministery of his subordinate instruments; and it also over-ruleth and disposeth things which are evill, which are not done by God himselfe moving the doers of them; but come to passe by the permission and sufferance of him, wittingly, and willingly suffering his creatures to abuse the power which they have from him. This point is manifest by the Lords owne words, Isa. 45. 7. where hee saith, I forme the light and create darknesse; I make peace, and create evill; I the Lord do all these things: And by that speech of the Prophet Amos. Chap. 3. 6. Shall there be evill in a City, and the Lord hath not done it.

The true sense and meaning of which words Saint Augustine Enchirid. ad Laur. c. 95. doth notably expresse; where he saith, nothing is done, unlesse God omnipotent doth will that it be done, either by doing it him­selfe, or suffering it to be done; for it could not be done if he did not suffer it; neither verily doth he unwillingly without or against his will: but willingly and with his will suffer every thing to be. To which purpose hee hath divers other speeches; as that God being good would not suffer any evill to be done, unlesse as he is omnipotent he could bring good out of them; neither is that done without Gods will which is done against his will, that is, his word and approbation.

In the second maine part there are divers speciall branches 2. Branches in parti­cular. shewing the speciall things whereby Gods actuall providence is distinguished from his other outward actions. The first is, that it consists in Gods ruling ordering and governing the whole World, and watching over his creatures with a carefull eye. The second, that it comprehends in it Gods doing of all good, and his permission, and suffering of all evill. The third, that by it God disposeth all things, which are done in the World to the manifestation of his glory, and the eternall salvation of his elect in Christ. The fourth and last is, that it is no other exercise of wisedome, power, goodnesse, mercy, and justice, [Page 282] but in executing things which hee hath decreed from all eternity, even ruling, ordering, and disposing all things wisely after the counsell of his owne will.

For the first point to wit, that God exerciseth his actuall 1. providence in ruling, ordering, and disposing, the whole World and all therein as supreme Lord, King. Iudge, and Ruler there­of; the Scriptures aboundantly testifie, as Gen. 18. 25. and Psalm. 50. 6. Psalm. 82. 1. and 2. Chron. 19. 6. where God is said to bee the Iudge of all the Earth; yea the Iudge both in Heaven and Earth, who sitteth chiefe among all Iudges and is with them in the iudgement. Also in those places where the Kingdome, Dominion, and Rule over all is said to belong to God, and hee is said to bee the King which reigneth and ruleth all to the utmost ends of the Earth, yea to be a great King above all Gods; and the onely potentate King of Kings and Lord of Lords, as I Chron. 29. 10. 11. Psalm. 10. 16. and 29. 10. and 4. 27. and 95. 3. and his Kingdome is said to rule over all, Psalm. 103, 19, and that not for a time, but from generation to generation, Psalm, 145. 13. It is he who setteth bounds to the tumultuous Seas beyond which they cannot passe, Iob 38. 8. Psalm. 104. 9. and ruleth over the raging waves, Psalm. 89. 9. and stilleth th [...] when they arise. And that hee hath a watchfull eye over all creatures, even to preserve man and beast, it appeares Psalm. 36. 6. and that as his eyes are upon them that feare him, and hope in his mercy to deliver their soule from death, and to keep [...] them alive in famine, Psalm. 33. 18. 19 So his face is against them that do evill, to cut off the remembrance of them, Psalm. 34. 16.

The second point is, that Gods providence is exercised both in the doing of all good, and in permitting, and suffering wittingly 2. and willingly all evill, which commeth to passe in the World, and so it consists of two parts, action, and permission. This also is fully proved and confirmed, Isa. 41. 23. and 45. 7. where the Lord proves himselfe to bee the onely true God by disposing all things, both forming the light, and making peace by his active hand and power; and also creating evill and darknesse, by per­mitting and giving up the Divell and his wicked instruments to abuse his power, which hee hath given them to doe evill and [Page 283] to worke wickednesse as wee see in Pharaoh whose heart hee is said to harden, yea and to raise him up, by giving him up to his owne lusts, and into the hand of Satan who hardened him and made his heart obdurate; so that the more God plagued him with great plagues, which naturally tend to breake a stout heart, and to pull downe pride; the more did his corruption rise up and rebell, and the more did Satan stirre him up against God, and his people; and made him run desperatly into the devouring gulfe of destruction. Wee see this also in Gods permitting Satan to afflict Iob, and to tempt him to blasphemy by stripping him naked of all that hee had; tormenting his body, and battering his soule with sore temptations of his wife and friends, and with skaring dreames and terrible visions as wee read, Iob 1. and 2. and 7. 14. Also the Apostle in expresse words affirmeth, that God being provoked by mens wilfull sins, doth in just wrath give them to uncleanesse through the lusts of their owne hearts, and to vile affections and a reprobate minde to worke all iniquity with greedinesse, Rom. 1. 24, 26, 28. and doth give them the Spirit of slumber, eyes that they should not see and eares that they should not heare. Rom. 11. 8. not by putting such a Spirit into them, so as hee sheddeth his Spirit on men through Christ, but by suffering Satan, the Spirit of lying, and of all blindnesse and wickednesse to enter into them (which hee would doe into all men, if God did not restraine him); and by casting them out of his protection; as wee see in the evill Spirit which vexed Saul, and in the lying Spirit which deceived Ahab by entering into his Prophets and speaking lyes by their mouths, 1 Sam. 16. 14. and 2 King. 22. 22. And thus wee see, that in all evils of sin Gods providence is exercised by way of voluntary per­mission. But as for all good things which come to passe, God hath in them an approving will, and a working hand, and wor­keth in men both to will and to doe; yea every thought and purpose of good, 2 Cor. 3. 5. Philip. 2. 13. and without him we can doe nothing, Ioh. 15. 5. So that in all morall duties, and in all good and godly workes, God worketh in men by his Spirit immediatly, and giveth them, hearts will and power to doe them, and they are but his instruments to performe these good things, as Ioseph professeth ascribing all his piety and charity which [Page 284] hee shewed in nourishing his bretheren and their families to God. And all naturall good things, God worketh either imme­diatly by his owne hand alone, as in the creation, wherein hee gave being to all things without any meanes at all: or by instruments and meanes which hee himselfe hath first created, hee giveth light by the Sun, Moone, and Starres, and by them, and the whole Heavens which are turned about by his counsels, and by their influ [...]nce hee refresheth and nourisheth all creatures on Earth; and also doth by them both use correction and shew mercy, Iob 37. 12, 13. and Matth. 5. 45.

There are besides these other things, which are good and profitable, not simply in their owne nature, but by accident and in some respect, as for example, for men to abstaine from mar­riage and from begetting children for the increase of mankind is not a thing naturally or morally good in it selfe, being a re­fraining from the use of Gods ordinance; but yet in case of urgent necessity, when Gods Ministers and Servants doe live in times and places of persecution, and are driven to flee and wander from place to place naked, and destitute of meanes, whereby to maintaine Wives, and Children; Saint Paul tells us, it is good for a Man to live single, and not to touch a Woman, 1 Cor. 7. 1, 35. for by this meanes he shall avoid much distraction, and more freely attend the service of God. Also for men to fast, and afflict their bodies by abstaining from comfortable nou­rishment, and necessary food for a time is not simply good in it selfe: but yet it is profitable for taming the proud and rebellious flesh, and for furthering of our humiliation in times of private and publike calamities, when Gods hand is heavy upon us, or upon our Land, and the feare of his threatning judgments which hang over our heads doe terrifie us, these and such like are called good things, that is, profitable, expedient, and by accident, and in some respect and condition good.

Other things there bee which in their owne nature are evill and hurtfull, and evils of affliction and punishment, as crosses of Gods people, and plagues which though they hurt and destroy the outward man and the flesh, yet by God grac [...] they worke to the saving of their soules, and the amendment of their lives as wee read Psalme 119. 67, 71. and 1 Cor. 5. 5. and 11. 32. [Page 285] and in that respect are called good. And the plagues and destru­ctions which befall the wicked, which to them are dreadfull and wofull evils and curses; but as they tend to the deliverance of Gods Church from their [...]rsecutions and oppressions; to the purging of his land; and the magnifying of Gods justice and power; so they are good in the issue and event, and in respect of Gods purpose intending good by them.

Now in all these, God hath an active and working band, as well as a permitting will; and his actuall providence ruleth in them. Hee gives men the gift of continency, and power over their owne wils to live single, and to make themselves Eunuches for his Kingdomes sake as our Saviours words shew, Matth. 19. 11, 12. and the words of the Apostle, 1 Cor. 7. 37. Hee cals upon men in his word, and by his grace stirres them up to fasting, weeping, mourning, and afflicting of their bodies for the greater humiliation of their soules. Joel. 1. 14. and 2. 12. and Zach. 12. 10. Hee doth sometimes by his owne hand af­flict his people when hee sends among them sore diseases which are the stroke of his hand. Job 36. 18. and Psalme 39. 10. and by his owne immediate hand hee strikes and consumes the wicked. Iob 34. 25, 26. as wee see in the drowning of the old World, in the destruction of Pharaoh, Ananias, and Saphyra, and divers others. Sometimes hee doth by good instruments afflict and punish his people, and plague and consume the wicked; as by his Angell hee punished Israels sin and Davids pride. 2 Sam. 24. 17. and destroyed the host of Senacherib, 2 King. 19. and smotte Herod, Act. 12. And by Joshua, Moses, David, destroyed the Canaanites and the Philistines, and other enemies of his Church. Sometimes by evill instruments hee afflicteth and pu­nisheth his owne people, and plagueth and destroyeth the wicked; by Absalom and Shimei hee punished David, and by wicked Jehu hee destroyed the wicked family of Ahab; by Satan and the wicked Sabaeans and Chald [...]ans hee afflicted and tryed Job; and by the proud King of Ashur hee punished Israel and Judah, and destroyed the Idolatrous nations as appeares Isa. 10. where hee is called the rod of Gods wrath, and proud Nebuchad­nezar is called his servant in punishing his people the Iewes, and destroying the obstinate among them, and in crushing the [Page 286] wicked nations, Ier. 25. 9. For he in whom all doe live, move, and have all being, Act. 17. 28. gave to those wicked Kings power and might; and though their owne lusts, and unsatiable desire and ambition stirred them up, and so [...]he act was in the wicked themselves, yet hee over-ruled and disposed their malice to performe his purpose, and to execute his most just judge­ments.

And thus wee see, that Gods actions are most wise and just in those evils which hee executeth by wicked instruments, and that which they doe with a wicked mind and for an evill end; God doth justly give them power to doe, and permits them to abuse his power, to their owne ends, when hee purposeth to direct all to a good end, and so doth. And therefore though no evill is done in the World, but by his providence; yet is hee no author or efficient cause of sin: the sinfulnesse of the action is of the evill instruments and the power of it, and the disposing of it to good, that onely is Gods. And although men who are li­mited Rom. 3. 8. by Gods law, may doe no least sin or evill for a good end, that greatest good may come thereof, and if they doe, it is sin in them; yet God, who is supreme Lord of all, and whose will is the rule of all righteousnesse, and who by his omnipotency can raise out of the greatest evill a farre greater good, and can make the Divels malice and mans fall, the occasion of bringing Christ into the World, and a way to shew his infinite goodnesse and mercy in saving and redeeming his elect, and to magnifie his glorious power and justice in their eyes, by destroying the wicked with eternall destruction, the sight whereof brings them to a more full fruition of his glory, and makes them farre more sensible of his goodnesse to them, and of their owne eter­nall blessednesse; hee may doe what seemes good to his hea­venly wisedome: and evill so farre as he willeth it, and hath an hand in the ordering of it, is no sin, but doth more shew his good­nesse, and unspotted purity, and holinesse.

The third thing is, that God by his actuall providence disposeth all things which are done in the World, to the manifestation of 3. his glory, and the eternall salvation of his elect in Christ. The glory of God is two wayes made manifest by his actuall pro­vidence.

[Page 287] First, in a more generall way, by a more generall providence. Gods actuall providence is generall or speciall. 1. Secondly, by a more speciall way, which is called his speciall pro­vidence.

First, by the generall, th [...] whole World is ruled by an univer­sall motion, and all things in the World, every one according to the proper nature and naturall disposition and inclination of it. For, as the Apostle saith, Hee giveth to all life, and breath, and all things; and in him wee all live, move and have our being, Act. 17. 25, 28. Hee by his mighty word sustaineth all things, Hebr. 1. 3. His name is excellent in all the World, in which he sheweth his glory, Psalme 8. 1. The Heavens declare his glory, and the firmament sheweth his handy-worke: day unto day uttereth speech, and night unto night sheweth knowledge; and that by the Suns going round about the World, and discovering by his light all things from one end of Heaven and Earth to another, Psalme 19. 1, 2.

This generall providence appeares, First, by his consecration of things. Secondly, by his destruction of so many as hee in his just will and judgement thinks fit. Thirdly, by his gover­ning of all things according to his eternall counsell, and just will.

First, hee doth universally conserve and uphold all things Gods con­servation of his crea­tures. in the World, by the light, motion and influence which hee hath given to the heavens in the creation; which are continually turned about by his counsels, that they may doe whatsoever hee commandeth them upon the face of the World in the Earth, Iob 37. 12. Hee maketh his Sun to shine on the evill and on the good, and sendeth raine on the iust and uniust, Matth. 5. 45. Hee giveth food to all flesh, Psalme 136. 27. H [...] giveth meat to the beasts, and feedeth the young ravens which crie, Psalme 147. 9. He provideth for the fowles of the aire their food, though they neither sow, nor reape; and cloatheth the grasse of the field, Matth. 6. 26, 30.

This conservation is, first, by succession. For when any crea­tures 1. By Suc­cession. passe away, hee maketh others of their race and kind to succeed by a continuall generation and propagation, as it were by a continued creation. The forming and fashioning of men in the wombe is ascribed to him, Iob 10. 8. 9, 10. and 31. 15. [Page 288] and Psalme 139. 13. So that as men and other living creatures dye; their off spring and progeny succeed in their place, and by this meanes, he doth renue the face of the Earth, Psalme 104. 30. and not onely one generation of living creatures passeth away, and another commeth in the place, so that the earth is alwayes re­plenished; but day and night succeed continually by the going and returning of the Sun; and the winde whorleth about continually going and returning according to his circuits; The waters doe all run into the Sea, and yet the Rivers are supplied by springs which come from the Sea, by secret passages under the Earth, as the wise-Man sheweth, Eccles. 1. 4, 5, 6, 7.

Secondly, hee preserveth all things universally by changing 2. By mu­tation. mutable things from an evill to a good, and from a lesse good to a better condition. Hee girdeth the weake with strength, Job 12. 18. 1 Sam 2. 4. Hee maketh the barren wombe fruitfull, Psalme 113. 9. Hee turneth the wildernesse into standing pooles of water, and dry ground into water springs, and maketh the barren desert a fruitfull field, Psalme 107. 35. Isa. 41. 18. and 51. 3. Hee raiseth the needy out of the dust, and lifteth up the beggar from the dunghill, 1 Sam. 2. 8. and Psalme 113. 7. And because the universality of creatures cannot bee preserved without Gods carefull keeping and preserving every particular; there­fore God hath an eye to every singular thing, and his pro­vident hand is reached forth to every one of them, in so much that our haires are numbred; and not one small sparrow can fall on the ground without him, Matth. 10. 29, 30. Hee cloathed the grasse of the field, even every Lillie, Matth. 6. 30. Hee reckons up our teares, Psalme 56. 9. and is with every one in his going out and comming in; in his downe sitting and uprising, Psalme 139. 1. 2. Isa. 27. 28.

Secondly, his generall providence appeareth, and is exer­cised in the destruction which hee himselfe according to 2. Gods destroying of crea­tures. his just will bringeth upon the whole Earth, or upon whole Nations and Cities, or upon some notable persons. The de­struction of the whole World in the dayes of Noah came by his hand and providence, for hee said, Behold I will bring a flood of waters and will destroy all flesh, Gen. 6. 13. and hee foretold his purpose so to doe an hundred yeares before. [Page 289] And the destruction of Sodome and Gomorrha was by fire which hee rained upon them, Gen. 19. Hee smotte Egypt with plagues and destroyed the first borne, and also Pharaoh and his host, Exod. 12. and 14. Psalme 135. 10. And the Cana [...]nites by Joshua and Israel, Josh. 10. and 11. and Se­nacheribs host. 2 King. 19. And the murmuring Israelites together with Corah, Dathan, and Abiram, Num. 16. Vzzah, 2. Sam. 6. 6. Herod. Act. 12. and many others. By this destroying, and abolishing of men and other creatures, and by his consuming and wasting of them; by smitting the earth with barrennesse, and sending pestilence, and warre, hee makes men know, that hee is Jehovah the righteous Iudge, and the Nations to see and feele that they are, but mortall men as the Psalmist testifieth, Psalme 9 21. and 46. 11.

Thirdly this generall providence is seene in his government Gods go­verning of his crea­tures. of all things, according to his owne just will and good plea­sure; Hee doth after a generall manner rule inferiour things by the light and influence of the Heavens, and of the Sun, Moone, and Starres; By the Sun hee rules the day, and by the Moone and Starres hee governes the night, Psalme 136. 8. 9. And as his eyes are upon all things, and upon all the wayes and workes of men; so hee fashioneth their hearts, Psalme 33. 15. Hee keepeth the waters of the Sea within their bounds beyond which they doe not passe, Psalme 104. 9. Hee hath a set time and season for every thing, and for eve­ry purpose under Heaven, Eccles. 3. 1. And this govern­ment hee exerciseth by motion and direction of motions; and by cohibition.

First, by motion, for hee moveth all things, not onely the mindes 1. By mo­tion. & wils of men by turning their hearts at his pleasure, Ier. 12. 24. Act. 17. 28. Psalme 105. 25. and Prov. 21. 1. but also things without life by a naturall inclination, which hee giveth to every thing in his kind as the Psalmist sheweth in the Sun, Moone, and Starres, the windes and the waters, Psalme 104. 19. 25.

And as hee moveth every creature, so hee directeth all their And by di­rection of all mo­tions. motions as appeares, Psalme 37. 23. Prov. 20. 24. Ier. 10. 23. In so much, that what men do with a wicked mind, & for an evill end, God turns it to the contrary, & brings good out of it. Iosephs bre­theren [Page 290] intended his hurt & destruction in selling him for a slave; God turned it to his honour, and to the saving of them and much peo­ple alive, Gen. 50. 20. Pharoh rose to magnifie himselfe against God, and his people: God so ruled and directed his rage and furie, that hee shewed his power in him, and magnified his name in all the Earth; by turning Pharaoh's fiercenesse to his owne praise and glory, and to Pharaoh's destruction, Exod. 9. 16. The Iewes out of malice and envie crucified and murdered Christ: God out of his death raised life, and made his death, which they devised for his shame and ignominy, a glorious triumph over the Divell and all the powers of darknesse, and a way to exaltation, Act. 2. 23. They hardened their hearts to persecute the Apostles, and to drive the Preachers of the Gospell out of their land, and to quench the light thereof: God turned this their hardnesse and fall to the salvation of the Gentiles; for by this meanes the Gospell came to bee preached in all nations, Rom. 11. 11. Wicked heretiques raise up heresies to corrupt Gods Church, and God so orders their doings, that they who are approved, are thereby made manifest, and come to shine as lights in the midst of a perverse generation, 1 Cor. 11. 19. Pauls trou­bles and persecutions were intended for the overthrow of the Gospell: God made them fall out to the furtherance of it, Phil. 1. 12. The Philistines invaded the land of Israel, with purpose to doe mischiefe to Israel, and to wast their land: but God directed this motion of their hearts, and by his providence appointed it as a meanes to recall Saul from pursuing David, when hee had inclosed him on every side; and so saved him to bee a Saviour of Israel, and a destroyer of the Philistines, 1 Sam. 23. 27, 28.

Secondly, God governs the World and all things therein by cohibition, that is, restraining, and hindering the actions and mo­tions 2 By cohi­bition. of creatures, in his wisedome and by his power, when hee thinks it fit Hee with-held Abimelech from touching Sarah Abrahams wife, that hee might not sin, and staine himselfe igno­rantly, Gen. 20. 6. Hee suffered not the destroyer of the first borne in Egypt to enter into the house of any of the Israelites, Exod. 12. 23. Hee kept back the waters of Jordan from running downward, so that it was dryed for Israel to passe over on foote, [Page 29] Iosh. 3. Hee restraineth the influences of Heaven, and the clouds from raine, and makes the Heavens as brasse, and the Earth as iron, for the punishment of wicked transgressors, and rebellious people, Deut. 28. 13. Iob 26. 8. and 38. 31. Hee bringeth the counsell of the heathen to nought, and maketh the devices of the people of none effect, Psalme 33. 10. Hee withheld Laban from his evill purpose of hurting Iacob, Gen. 31. 42. And his terrour restrained the Cities round about, so that they pursued not after Iacobi Sons to take revenge on them, for the slaying of the She­chemites, Gen. 35. 5. And by his Spirit he forbad Paul and his companions to preach the Gospell in Asia, Act. 16. 6. In a word, as hee doth by a generall governing order all things universally and all events, even the heavens, the Earth, the Seas, Winter, Summer, and all seasons of the yeare, men and beasts, and makes an harmony and concord among things which are contrarie, tempering, moderating and keeping them in their pro­per places, and doth set up and pull downe Kingdomes & states. Dan. 2. 37. and 4. 25. So hee rules every singular creature and every singular event, turning harvest dayes into a tempestuous time of thunder and raine; as when hee terrified Israel to shew them their sin in asking a King, 1 Sam. 12. 16. So that wee need no further proofe of this point. Let that which is before said and proved, suffice to shew how God by a generall way of providence actually disposeth all things to the manifestation of his glory.

The speciall way by which God manifesteth his glory is by Gods spe­ciall provi­dence. working things, and by ordering, ruling and disposing them to the revealing of his glory, more specially in the salvation of his elect in Christ, which divines doe call his speciall pro­vidence.

This providence God exerciseth by his Son Christ, as hee is the Mediatour, Redeemer, Saviour, King, and Head of the Church universall; and by his Spirit sent forth in the name of Christ, and shed on the elect aboundantly through him in their regeneration. This consists and sheweth it selfe in all the gra­cious benefits and blessings which God bestoweth upon men for salvation; and in the judgements which hee executeth on his enemies, the wicked, by which hee delivereth his Church out [Page 292] of their cruell, bloody persecuting and oppressing hands; and doth magnifie and declare his justice and power, and more fully reveale and communicate himselfe to them for their greater blessednesse.

The briefe Description of this speciall providence which I conceive to bee most plaine is. That it is Gods exercise of his wise­dome, Described. power, iustice, mercy, and all his goodnesse in executing his speciall decree of predestination, by which hee ordained all the elect both Angels and men to eternall blessednesse; and all the rest to eternall distruction, and withall did decree all the meanes which serve and tend to bring every one of them to their sevreall ends; and by which in the time appointed they are all brought to their decreed end according to his eternall purpose, and the counsell of his will.

In the large prosecution of this point of Gods speciall pro­vidence, wee have just occasion offered to lay open all the rest of the great works of God, which fall within the compasse of the Divine art of sacred Divinity. For they all are contained under these two maine heads, to wit: 1 The meanes which serve for the effecting, and obtaining of the utmost end of reasonable creatures unto which God hath ordained them. 2. The end it selfe the manifestation of his glory more specially in the eter­nall blessednesse of his elect, which blessednesse doth consist in the eternall fruition of God in all his glory; and the sense thereof is exceedingly increased by their beholding of the eternall misery and destruction of the ungodly, their escape and deliverance, from which whole they consider and remember their joy and rejoycing shallbee doubled.

For in all wise providence there is a good end purposed, in­tended and decreed, and a provident ordaining, ordering and actuall disposing of the meanes which are necessary for the ob­taining and effecting of that end, and therefore the speciall pro­vidence of God who is most wise and provident, infinite in goodnesse and power, must needs bee exercised in doing the most excellent workes, and in ordering and disposing them ac­cording to his eternall counsell and decree, to the best, and most excellent end of all, which is the fourth and last point in the Description of Gods actuall providence.

[Page 293] Now the meanes which God hath ordained for the manifesta­tion of the glory of his grace and goodnesse in the eternall bles­sednesse of his elect they goe before in execution; though the end is first in Gods intention. And therefore they come to bee handled in the first place. And they all may be reduced to two maine heads. The first is mans fall; The second is mans restau­ration.

In the fall of man, sive things come to bee considered [...] First, the Commandement of God at which man stumbled and which the Divell made the occasion of mans fall. The second is the fall it selfe, what it was, and wherein it did consist. The third is the state of rebellion, into which man did fall. The fourth is the multitude of evils, which did accompany and follow mans sin and fall. The fifth is the small reliques of good, which remai­ned in mans nature after his fall.

The Commandement of God is plainely laid downe, Gen. 2. 16, 17. And therefore I will first insist upon that portion of Scripture, and after will proceed to the description of the fall, as it is laid downe in the third Chapter.

But before I proceed further, let me conclude this Doctrine of Gods actuall providence with some use and application.

First, it is matter of admirable comfort to all true Christians Vse 1. Comfo [...] to the faithfull. and faithfull people of God, in that the Lord whom they have chosen for their God, their rocke and confidence, is so wise and provident above all; ordering and disposing all things which come to passe in the World in wonderfull wisedome and by an om­nipotent hand to his owne glory and the salvation of his elect in Christ. Whatsoever good commeth at any time, it is the gift of God; and all good blessings and benefits which they receive and enjoy from any hand or by any meanes, they are so many tokens and pledges of his love and fatherly care, and of his eye of providence watching over them for good. And whatsoever evils of any kind breake into the World by the malice of the Divell, and the outrage of wicked men; they are no other, nor no more, but such as God in his wisedome and goodnesse is plea­sed willingly to permit and suffer for a far greater good to his own people; and as he over-rules them all: and hath set them their bounds beyond which they cannot passe; so he disposeth and tur­neth [Page 294] them all to his owne glory, and the manifestation of his justice and power in saving of his Church and people, and in confounding and destroying all his and their enemies, wherefore in times of peace, plenty and prosperity, when all good things and blessings of all sorts abound; Let us rejoyce and glory in the Lord and give him the praise of all, and offer up daily and con­tinuall sacrifices of thankfulnesse with cheerefull hearts and wil­ling Who learne also to bee thankfull. minds; studying and striving with all our might, and to the utmost of our power; to use and employ all his blessings to the best advantage for his glory, the good of his Church, and the profit of our owne soules; being well assured, that these are his talents committed to our trust, which if wee by our faithfulnesse doe increase, wee shall in the day of account and reckoning, re­ceive the reward of good stewards and faithfull servants, and bee received into the joy of our Lord.

But on the contrary, in evill and perillous time; when iniquity aboundeth sinnes of all sorts are increased; piety and charity are waxen cold, religion is skorned, the godly persecuted and oppres­sed, justice judgement and truth troden downe and trampled: Let us not faint nor feare nor bee dejected as men without hope; For the Lord our God, and our keeper is a provident God, his eyes neither slumber nor sleep; hee seeth and observeth all these things, and without his will and knowledge no evill can come to passe. As the Scripture saith of Pharaoh, to may wee say in this case; that even for this same purpose God hath raised up these wicked persecutors and outrageous sinners; that is in his just wrath hath given them up to Satan and their owne lusts to multiply sin and oppression, that he may shew his power in them, and make his justice glorious, and name famous throughout all the earth: When the nations rage, and the Kingdomes are moved, God can give his voice, and the earth shall melt and all the works of the wicked shall bee dissolved.

Secondly, here is matter of terrour to the wicked, both them who commit sins in secret, and presume to goe on in their lewd Vse 2. Terrour to the wicked. courses with a conceipt, that none seeth nor taketh notice of their abominations; and also them who multiply their sins openly, and without feare increase their persecutions and oppressions, and vex and afflict the meeke of the Earth, and breake Gods [Page 295] people in pieces; thinking that they shall never bee called to account, and putting farre from them the day of reckoning: Be­hold here, the Lord who is the judge all the earth, is a most provi­dent God; all their doings are naked and opened to his eyes, and he observes all their wayes and wicked workes; their power strength and greatnesse is from him, and he wittingly and willingly suffers them to abuse them to sin, and to oppression and wrong, and onely so long as he pleaseth, that when they have filled up their measure, hee may bring them to judgement, and may make them a skorne, derision, and footestole to the righteous whom they have skor­ned, hated and oppressed.

Thus much for the actuall providence of God.

FINIS.

This keyboarded and encoded edition of the work described above is co-owned by the institutions providing financial support to the Text Creation Partnership. This Phase I text is available for reuse, according to the terms of Creative Commons 0 1.0 Universal. The text can be copied, modified, distributed and performed, even for commercial purposes, all without asking permission.